Id | Vlad | Saved | Scrape Time | Status | Scrape Result | Original Ad | Adarchiveid | Creative Links | Title | Body | Cta Type | Link Url | Pageid | Page Name | Page Profile Uri | Page Like Count | Collationcount | Collationid | Currency | Enddate | Entitytype | Fevinfo | Gatedtype | Hasuserreported | Hiddensafetydata | Hidedatastatus | Impressionstext | Impressionsindex | Isaaaeligible | Isactive | Isprofilepage | Cta Text | Pageinfo | Pageisdeleted | Pagename | Reachestimate | Reportcount | Ad Creative | Byline | Caption | Dynamic Versions | Effective Authorization Category | Display Format | Link Description | Link Url | Page Welcome Message | Creation Time | Page Profile Picture Url | Page Entity Type | Page Is Profile Page | Instagram Actor Name | Instagram Profile Pic Url | Instagram Url | Instagram Handle | Is Reshared | Version | Branded Content | Current Page Name | Disclaimer Label | Page Is Deleted | Root Reshared Post | Additional Info | Ec Certificates | Country Iso Code | Instagram Branded Content | Spend | Startdate | Statemediarunlabel | Actions |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
2,511,499 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512337}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464828830_843144794562317_225584756959474354_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=104&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=67ArCc5xE-wQ7kNvgGnBt1w&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYBfohlZG-_ugPSU4O4W7h7AkIs7Bl93_PGG0pAK4tlYJw&oe=6748200A | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,529 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512337}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461342866_403665495877678_8039372569247806790_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Ekn73mAbfKUQ7kNvgHmHrqo&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A80Lk30kXYHH8vbjivm007l&oh=00_AYCdFDZ3ATxlFwgjro6Dtpp70OM-ycDpuzV0rOTcJtkRiQ&oe=67480AF5 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,512,843 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512337}' |
Yes | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461342461_541393011637127_6694870967050170909_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=NrGMnzKq9qQQ7kNvgFOMAkw&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Ahlm0DIrIqs4rpvahhKiqCh&oh=00_AYDaIepFzl51CQrAN6_Ii385ZpbNWZx22lO4YE8cYvsJiQ&oe=6747FAFC | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,252 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2511462}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | "Mr. Nichols, your wife is experiencing severe postpartum bleeding. Please, come and see her for the last time." The doctor anxiously pleaded with the person on the other end of the phone. But Juan Nichols's voice was filled with indifference. "She's still alive? Call me when she's dead." With that, he hung up the phone. All the light disappeared from the eyes of the woman lying on the bed. 'Juan, do you hate me so much? ' The machine emitted a flat, cold beep, indicating Debra's vital signs had disappeared. In Debra's lifetime, she loved Juan dearly. As the only daughter of the Frazier family, she should have enjoyed the best life. But to marry Juan, she sacrificed herself and her family. In the end, she died alone and tragically. Debra slowly closed her eyes. Given another chance, she would never make the same mistakes. ... "Madam, Mr. Nichols wants to take you to the auction. Which outfit would you like to wear?" Sophie asked. Debra gasped and opened her eyes. Everything in front of her was strikingly familiar. This place was Juan and her home. They had been married for a month, but Juan had rarely visited her. She remembered that Juan was attending a land auction, and due to the occasion, he had to bring his family along. But this was all five years ago. 'How could it be? ' she thought, deeply confused, 'Am I reborn?' "Mr. Nichols has never stayed overnight before. You should seize this opportunity." Sophieâs voice brought Debra back to reality. She picked out a white gown, hesitating. "How about this one, Madam?" Looking at it, Debra gave a self-deprecating smile. It was well known that Juan favored Shelia. In the past, she often dressed like Shelia to please Juan Miles. Shelia liked white dresses, so she followed suit, just to earn a little favor from Juan. For this auction, Juan didn't inform her of the change in companion and brought Shelia instead, making her look ridiculous in a white dress similar to Shelia's. The thought of the past made her laugh. "No, I'll wear that one," she said, picking up a red dress. Debra never liked plain clothes. Shelia was just a poor college student. Debra felt that she must have lost her mind to wear cheap clothes for a man. "But Mr. Nichols likes white dresses," Sophie said hesitantly. Debra simply ignored her hints. "I'll wear this one," she said. "Throw away all those white dresses. I don't like them." Sophie sighed and complied. Debra looked at herself in the mirror, still vibrant and beautiful. But in a few years, she would be worn down by Juan's torment. Before that happened, she would end it all. In the evening, Debra appeared in a burgundy dress that accentuated her curves. Her delicate makeup, curls, and a mole under her eye made her mesmerizing. She looked like a painting, untouchable. Not far away, a man in a white shirt and black leather combat boots saw her. With a cigarette dangling from his mouth, Marion Houston asked, "Who is she?" "You don't know her? She's Debra, the daughter of the Frazier family and Juan's wife," said his friend, Randy Osborne. "I just saw Juan entering with another woman. Maybe we'll witness a showdown between the mistress and the wife. It will be fun." Marion made no comments. Randy clicked his tongue. "Juan's taste is just terrible, preferring a skinny woman to his beautiful woman. Don't you think?" Randy turned around, but Marion was nowhere to be seen. "Damn it!" he cursed, quickly catching up with Marion. Meanwhile, Shelia, in a white dress, held Juan's arm timidly. "I've never been to such an event before. Maybe I should go back." "You'll get used to it. You'll be attending these events frequently in the future," Juan said. Shelia nodded. Juan was about to enter with Shelia when Joe spoke up. "Sir, won't we wait for Mrs. Nichols?" Juan frowned. "Didn't I ask you to tell her not to come today?" Joe glanced at Shelia, and she quickly said, "It's not Joe's fault. I told him not to inform Debra. With my status, I'm afraid of gossip, so I thought it would be better for Debra to accompany you in." Shelia lowered her head like a scared hare. Juan rubbed his temples. He didn't want Debra to show up at all. "Mr. Nichols," Shelia murmured, biting her lip. "It's alright." Juan patted Shelia's head and said to Joe, "Go intercept her and send her away." In the crowd, there were murmurs of surprise and praise. Joe looked over and was also shocked. "I'm afraid it's too late." | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | DCO | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13914&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463426648_540373671927723_8627590461251621442_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=BopnEx6WF7kQ7kNvgGw1UvR&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYBynfKhym6JsmshJbT6Aj8mtWDgyzQZru7hBs5fGGyTTw&oe=6748073B | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,537 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512337}' |
Yes | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461342866_403665495877678_8039372569247806790_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Ekn73mAbfKUQ7kNvgHmHrqo&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A80Lk30kXYHH8vbjivm007l&oh=00_AYCdFDZ3ATxlFwgjro6Dtpp70OM-ycDpuzV0rOTcJtkRiQ&oe=67480AF5 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,510,715 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2510719}' |
Yes | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463739219_933768168563373_5870892638427917721_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=ggooWIypYBEQ7kNvgEUWRzJ&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A6ypE6coIzKWchkZRVwfG6s&oh=00_AYCuEhXrLdItNvy1wIWRg8ZzanjyoN8v-OCoWV5z4-tdJQ&oe=67480104 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,326 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2510822}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | After a tragic accident left Emily Yates without her memories, she fell in love with her savior, Justin Yates, unaware that he was hiding the truth and using her as a stand-in for his first love. For three long years, Emily poured everything into the relationship, hoping he would love her back. But on the day Justin proposed, he held his "one true love" in his arms and left Emily stranded on a foreign street, still expecting her to remain his secret mistress. * âDidnât I tell you to go home? Why are you still here?â Justinâs voice dripped with disdain and impatience, as if his irritation had taken on a life of its own. Emily stood her ground, unafraid. She needed answers. âYou proposed to me in Merika State just 16 hours ago, but now youâre holding another woman and completely ignoring me. And youâre not even coming home? Staying out all night?â âStop being unreasonable. Leave. Now,â he ordered, his voice cold and commanding, his gaze on her as though she were an unruly employee who had crossed the line. Emily wasnât leaving without answers. âYou think Iâm being unreasonable? Iâm your fiancĂŠe. You left me on the street in a foreign country to carry another woman away without a second thought. Did you ever consider how I felt? âIâll go, but only if you leave the hospital with me. There are doctors and nurses here to care for that woman. Right now, youâre coming home with me.â Desperate, Emily reached out to grab Justinâs arm. But before she could make contact, her arm was blocked by Justinâs personal bodyguard, William Carter. Emily was stunned, unable to believe what she was seeing. It felt as though her heart was being torn in two. âWhat do you mean by this?â Emilyâs voice trembled, mirroring the unease in her heart. Justin didnât respond. He stared at her with cold, detached eyes, as if she were a stranger and not the fiancĂŠe he had just proposed to. Finally, he spoke, his words sharp and emotionless. âDonât be childish.â Childish? Once, he had said he loved how she depended on him, how she claimed him for herself. And now he was calling her childish? âIf you want to stay here with her, then what about our marriage? You proposed to me just today!â | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15056&ut | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=15056&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464524242_869324355322502_5461206031477697920_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=_B6lCVrByTwQ7kNvgEXH7j3&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYCjrF9I6ZOqhnJKQskOPI4q2A_7RPJ6YmJWErOyDgtiwQ&oe=67480AAA | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,510,805 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2510809}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
â¤ď¸đWhat happens nextđ | Chapter 1 Yvette Snyder stood at the entrance of the hospital, her body frail, clutching a report in her thin hands. Three words on the report stood out: "No conception detected". "You've been married for three years. How are you not conceived?" Her mother, Yara Cadwell, demanded, jabbing a finger in Yvette's face disappointedly. Yara was dressed lavishly and wore high heels. "Why are you so useless? If you don't get conceived soon, the Lanes are going to kick you out of the family. What's going to happen to our family then?" Yvette looked at Yara blankly. She had a lot to say, but the words were stuck in her throat. In the end, all she could manage was, "I'm sorry." "I don't want you to be sorry. I want you to give birth to Xavier's child. Do you understand me?" Yvette's throat felt tight; she didn't know how to answer Yara. In their three years of marriage, her husband, Xavier Lane, had never slept with her. How could she ever have his child? Yara stared at Yvette. The latter's weak demeanor was so unlike her own. Finally, she said coldly before leaving, "If you really can't give him a child, then find him a woman who can. At least he'll appreciate you for that." Yvette stared after Yara's retreating figure in disbelief. Had her own mother just told her to find another woman for her husband to sleep with? ... As Yvette made her journey home, she couldn't stop thinking about Yara's parting words. Suddenly, a loud ringing in her ear drowned out her thoughts. She knew that her condition had worsened. Just then, she received a message on her phone. It was from Xavier, and the content was the same as always. "I'm not coming home tonight." In the past three years they had been married, Xavier had never spent the night at home before. He had never so much as touched Yvette either. Yvette could remember their wedding night three years ago. He had told her, "Since your family is bold enough to trick me into marrying you, you'd better be prepared to spend the rest of your life in loneliness." Three years ago, the Snyder and Lane families had decided to form an alliance through marriage. Both families had agreed to mutually beneficial terms in the agreement. But when the day of the wedding came around, the Snyder family went back on their word and transferred all of their assets away, including the billions that Xavier had paid to marry Yvette. Yvette's eyes dulled at the memory. She replied to Xavier's text with her usual response: "Okay." Without her realizing it, the report she was holding got scrunched up in her hands. When she got home, Yvette tossed the report into the trash can. Every month, around this time, she would feel unusually lethargic. Yvette didn't prepare dinner for herself. She just leaned back on the couch, blearily drifting in and out of sleep. The rumbling in her ear persisted. That was another reason why Xavier hated herâshe was hard of hearing, which, to the rich and powerful, was no better than being crippled. Xavier would never allow her to carry his child. ⌠At 5 o'clock in the morning, the pendulum clock on the wall chimed dully. Xavier would be home in an hour. Yvette realized too late that she had fallen asleep on the couch. She got up hastily and went to the kitchen to prepare Xavier's breakfast. Xavier was a meticulous man who was strict about punctuality, not only with himself but also with the people around him. He arrived home at six o'clock sharp. Xavier was a tall and handsome man. Clad in a smart tailored suit, his demeanor was quiet and reserved, yet undoubtedly masculine. However, to Yvette, he was cold and distant. Xavier didn't even look at Yvette. He walked right past her to look at the food on the table and said with a scoff, "You do this every day. Are you a nanny or what?" Over the past three years, Yvette had been doing the same things over and over again. She wore the same dark clothes and replied to his messages with the same singular word. If it hadn't been for the business alliance and the Snyders' deceit, Xavier would never have married a woman like Yvette. At the word "nanny", the rumbling in Yvette's ears returned. She swallowed, feeling a lump in her throat, and said bravely, "Xav, do you have someone that you like?" Her sudden question surprised Xavier. His eyes darkened. "What do you mean by that?" Yvette raised her head and stared at him, swallowing the bile rising in the back of her throat. "If you love someone else, you can be with herâ" Before she could finish, Xavier interrupted her. "You're mad." ... After Xavier left, Yvette sat on the balcony alone, staring out into the cold rain. The sound of the raindrops drifted in and out of clarity. She took off her hearing aids, letting the world around her fall into silence. A month ago, her doctor had told her, "Ms. Snyder, there's been a pathological change in your auditory nerves and some of your cranial nerves, causing your hearing to worsen. If this goes on, you may lose your hearing completely." Not used to a silent world, Yvette went to the living room and turned on the television. She turned up the volume to the max, which allowed her to hear some sound. By coincidence, the television was showing an interview with Daphne Reyes, an internationally renowned singer known for her love songs. Yvette's hands trembled slightly as she gripped the remote control. Daphne was Xavier's first love. It had been a long time since Yvette had seen her, but Daphne was still as pretty as ever. She was confident and relaxed in front of the cameras, unlike the shy and frightened young woman who had begged the Snyders for sponsorship in the past. When the interviewer asked Daphne why she had returned to her home country, her answer was bold. "I came home to get my first love back." The remote control slipped out of Yvette's hands. Her heart also fell to her stomach. Flustered, Yvette turned off the television and went to the table to clean up the uneaten breakfast. When she got to the kitchen, she found that Xavier had forgotten to take his phone. She picked it up and saw the unread messages on the lock screen. "Xav, you must have been unhappy over the past few years, right?" "I know you don't love her. How about we meet up tonight? I've missed you." Yvette stared blankly at the messages until the screen went dark again. Then, she called a cab to Xavier's office. On the way, she stared out of the window. The rain fell incessantly. It felt like it would never stop. Xavier never liked it when Yvette visited him at his office, so whenever she was there, she would take the service elevator from the loading bay. When Xavier's assistant, Mark Xyrax, saw her, he just greeted her impassively, "Ms. Snyder." No one around Xavier considered Yvette his wife. She was nothing but a smear on his reputation. When Xavier saw Yvette bringing him his phone, he frowned. She was always like this. No matter what he forgot, be it his lunch, his documents, a shirt, or even an umbrella, she would bring them to him. "I thought I told you that you didn't need to deliver my things to me yourself." Yvette froze. "Sorry, I forgot." Since when had her memory been so bad? Maybe she had panicked after seeing Daphne's message and became afraid that Xavier would disappear from her life suddenly. Before she left, she looked back at Xavier. Unable to help herself, she blurted out, "Xav, do you still like Daphne?" Xavier thought that Yvette had been behaving rather strangely lately. She kept forgetting things and asking weird questions. How could a person like her be his wife? Impatiently, he replied, "If you have so much free time, go find yourself something to do." Yvette had tried getting a job before, but Xavier's mother, Shannon Guetta, had reprimanded her without holding back. "Do you want the whole world to know that Xav married a disabled woman with hearing issues?" Therefore, Yvette had given up on finding a job and focused on her fruitless life as "Mrs. Lane" at Dewberry Estate. ⌠At home, she sat alone until nightfall. She couldn't sleep. Just then, the phone on her bedside table rang loudly. It was a call from an unfamiliar number. Yvette picked up the call. A familiar voice, yet one she dreaded, sounded from the other end. "Is this Yvvy? Xav is drunk. Can you come pick him up?" When Yvette arrived at Sternhow Club, she heard loud coaxing and jeering from the wealthy heirs inside the private room. "Daph, didn't you say you came back to get our dear Mr. Lane back into your arms? This is your chance now. Go on, tell him how you feel!" Daphne was a pretty woman who was popular wherever she went. She was also Xavier's first love, so the rich young men of the upper crust were happy to push the two together. Daphne wasn't shy at all. She turned to Xavier and said without any reservations, "I like you, Xav. Please be with me again." That was what Yvette heard when she arrived at the door of the private room. Inside, the other people were urging Xavier to answer Daphne. His best friend, Tristan Shaw, was the most vocal among them. "Xav, you've been waiting for Daphne for three years. She's back now. So, go on, answer her!" Yvette stood frozen outside the door. Her heart was pounding. Just then, one of the men pulled the door open. "Ms. Snyder?" Chapter 2 Everyone in the private room looked over at the door. For a moment, the room was eerily silent. Yvette immediately caught sight of Xavier in the middle of the room. His eyes were clear and bright. He was clearly not drunk. She knew that she had been tricked by Daphne. When Xavier saw Yvette, his pupils constricted. Everyone else in the room looked awkward, including Tristan, who had been the most vocal in getting Xavier to accept Daphne's confession earlier. Yvette shouldn't have gone there. Daphne was the first to break the silence. "Please don't get the wrong idea, Yvvy. Tristan was joking. Xavier and I are just friends." Before Yvette could answer, Xavier stood up impatiently. "There's no need to explain it to her." Then, he stalked over to Yvette. "What are you doing here?" "I thought you were drunk, so I came to take you home," Yvette answered truthfully. Xavier scoffed. "You really didn't retain anything I told you, did you?" Lowering his voice, he said softly so that only she could hear him, "Are you here to remind everyone that I was tricked into marrying you three years ago? Did you think they forgot?" Yvette was stunned. Xavier gave her a cold look. "Stop seeking attention. You're only making me hate you more." With that, he turned away, leaving Yvette standing alone. Yvette stared after his retreating figure, unable to snap out of her shock. None of the other scions in the room took pity on her when they saw Xavier ignoring her. Tristan even had no qualms in telling Daphne, who was feigning distress, "You're too kind, Daphne. You didn't need to explain anything. "If Yvette hadn't scammed Xav, he would've married you in the first place. You wouldn't have needed to suffer abroad as well." Despite the constant ringing in her ears, Yvette could still hear every word clearly. She knew better than anyone that even if Xavier hadn't married her, he wouldn't have married Daphne. Daphne was a nobody with no background, after all. Daphne was well aware of this as well. That was why she had chosen to break up with Xavier and leave the country. How had everything turned out to be Yvette's fault? When Yvette left Sternhow Club with her umbrella, she felt as if she had been enveloped by darkness. Just then, a lithe figure appeared beside her. It was Daphne. She was decked out in fine clothes, complete with high heels. She looked smug. "It's a cold night, isn't it? So, how does it feel to get scoffed at by Xavier after you came all the way here at this time to get him?" Yvette didn't answer her, but Daphne didn't mind her silence. She just continued speaking. "I do pity you, you know. You've never experienced true love before, have you? "Do you know that when I was with Xav, he would cook for me himself? When I was sick, he would drop everything and stay with me. "Has Xav ever told you he loves you? He used to say that to me all the timeâŚ" Yvette listened to Daphne's rambling quietly, her mind going over the past three years she had been married to Xavier. He had never so much as stepped into the kitchen during that time. When she had gotten sick, he had never comforted her. He had never told her he loved her either. ⌠That night, Yvette couldn't fall asleep. She had only just found out that the man she had loved for the past 12 years had once loved another with all his heart, in the spectacular way that only young people could. At that moment, she realized that it was time for her to give him up. She had a sleepless night. The next morning, Xavier returned home. The glare he gave her was cold. "How attached are you to the Lane family's money, to me, your money-making robot?" he demanded. Yvette was stunned. She didn't know what had gotten into him so early in the morning. Instinctively, she said, "I never wanted your money." She had only ever wanted Xavier. Xavier laughed in disdain. "Then, why did your mother come to my office and beg me to give you a child?" Yvette was stunned. She stared into Xavier's eyes. It was only then that she realized that he wasn't angry about what had happened last night. Xavier had no desire to waste his breath on her. "If you want to continue staying with me and keep your family afloat, tell your mother to behave herself!" ... In the end, Yvette didn't need to look for Yara. Yara found Yvette instead. She was no longer cold and distant; she gripped Yvette's hands and said gently, "Yvvy, you should ask Xavier to give you a child. He doesn't have to do it biologically. He could do it through scientific measures." Scientific measures. Yvette stared at Yara in shock as the latter continued, "Daphne told me that Xavier hasn't slept with you in the past three years." That was the last straw for Yvette. She didn't know why Xavier would tell Daphne about that. Maybe he really loved Daphne a lot. With that thought, she suddenly felt relieved. "Just let it go, Mom." Yara paused. She frowned. "What?" "I'm tired. I want to get a divorceâ" Before she could finish, Yara slapped her hard across the face. The kind, motherly facade was gone in an instant. She jabbed a finger at Yvette and gritted out, "You have no right to ask for a divorce! "Without the Lane family, what do you think you're going to do? Who's going to remarry a disabled divorcee like you?" Yvette felt her body go numb. Yara had never liked Yvette, even when the latter had been a child. Yara had been a famous dancer. The fact that she had given birth to a daughter with hearing issues was one of her biggest regrets. Therefore, she had sent Yvette away to be taken care of by a nanny. She had only allowed Yvette to return home when the latter started school. People used to tell Yvette that every mother loved their child. So, she had done everything she could to excel at everything in hopes of making Yara happy. Despite her hearing issues, she had been at the top of her class in dance, music, and art classes. But no matter how hard she tried, Yara still didn't consider her a good daughter. In Yara's words, Yvette wasn't "complete". Not only physically, but also in love and familial relationships. After Yara left, Yvette used some makeup to cover up the red print on her face. Then, she packed her bags quietly. Even after three years of married life, all her personal belongings fit into a single suitcase. After she finished packing up, she gathered her courage and sent Xavier a message. "Are you free tonight? I need to talk to you." Xavier didn't reply to her. Yvette's eyes darkened. She knew that he didn't want to reply to her messages. All she could do was wait for him to come home in the morning. She had thought that he wouldn't come home that night, but he got back at midnight. Yvette wasn't asleep at the time. She went up to him and took his coat and bag from him with familiarity in her actions. It was as if they were a normal married couple. Xavier's cold voice broke the peace. "Don't send me inane texts again." As Yvette held Xavier's coat, her hand trembled slightly. "I won't do it again," she mumbled. Xavier didn't notice anything wrong with her tone. He went straight to his study. Generally, if he came home, he would stay holed up in his study. He probably thought that someone who was hard of hearing would live in a silent world. Either that, or he simply didn't care about Yvette. That would explain why he got straight to discussing his acquisition of Snyder Group in his study as if nothing was wrong. When Yvette brought him some soup, she heard Xavier animatedly discussing work with his employees. He was talking about the acquisition of Snyder Group, her father, James Snyder's company. She didn't know how to feel about that. She knew that her brother, Terrence Synder, was useless at running a business, so it was only a matter of time before Snyder Group fell. However, she had never thought that her own husband would be the first to cause Snyder Group's downfall. "Xav," she interrupted. Xavier was slightly startled. Out of guilt, or maybe some other emotion, he quickly hung up the phone and closed his laptop. Feigning ignorance, Yvette walked into the study and placed the bowl in front of him. "Have some soup, then get to bed soon. Your health is more important than work." For some reason, Xavier felt himself relax when he heard her soft voice. She probably hadn't heard anything. Feeling conflicted, he stopped Yvette before she could leave. "You said you wanted to talk to me. What is it?" Hearing this, Yvette turned back to look at him. Softly, she said, "I just wanted to ask if you're free in the morning so we can go and file for divorce." Chapter 3 Yvette's voice was calm and impassive, as though divorce were a menial matter to her. Xavier's pupils contracted. "What did you just say?" Over the last three years, no matter what he had done, Yvette had never brought up divorce. In truth, Xavier knew that Yvette loved him. Her eyes, which were usually dull and empty, were clear and bright now. "I'm sorry for being a burden over the last few years, Mr. Lane. We should get divorced." Xavier clenched his fists unconsciously. "You heard what I said earlier, didn't you? Snyder Group was already failing; it won't matter whether I buy it or someone else does. What are you trying to do by bringing up divorce? "Is it because you want money? Or a child? Or do you want me to leave Snyder Group alone?" he asked coldly. "Don't forget that I don't love you. Your threats won't work on me!" At that moment, he seemed like a stranger to Yvette. A lump formed in her throat as her ears began throbbing. Even though she was wearing her hearing aids, she could barely hear what Xavier was saying. She could only answer his last question. "I don't want anything." Afraid that he would notice something wrong with her, Yvette left the study in a hurry. As he watched her leave, Xavier felt frustrated for some reason. He had never felt like this before. Not one to hold in his emotions, he flipped the table over. The bowl of soup that Yvette had brought him spilled all over the ground. ... Back in her own room, Yvette forced herself to swallow a handful of pills. She reached up to touch her ear. As she retracted her fingers, she saw crimson blood on them. Thanks to the medicine, her hearing recovered a little by the time it was dawn. Yvette stared blankly at the soft rays of sunlight streaming from the window. "The rain has stopped," she said quietly to herself. Xavier didn't leave the manor that day. He was in the living room bright and early, settled on the couch, waiting for Yvette to apologize and express her regret to him. This wasn't the first time Yvette had lost her temper with him. However, after every tantrum, she would apologize to him before long. Xavier figured that it would be the same this time around. Soon, he saw Yvette coming out of her room, all freshened up. She wore her usual dark-colored clothes. She dragged a suitcase with one hand while holding a piece of paper in the other. She handed the paper to him. It was a divorce agreement. "Let me know when you have time, Xav." With that, she left the manor, pulling her suitcase behind her. It was bright and sunny outside. Yvette felt as if she had gotten a new chance at life. Meanwhile, Xavier sat frozen on the couch, still clutching the divorce agreement in his hand. It took him a long time to come back to his senses. It was Saturday. Usually, around this time of the year, Xavier would take Yvette back to his hometown to pay respects to his ancestors. During this time, they would have to endure strange looks from his extended family. However, he was alone that day, which made him extraordinarily happy. At Lane Mansion, Shannon and the rest of the Lanes were surprised to see him alone. In the past, Yvette had always been the first one to turn up every year and the last to leave since she had been trying to please everyone. Why wasn't she there today? Shanon frowned and asked Xavier, "Where's Yvette, Xav?" Xavier's expression turned cold. "She wanted a divorce and left me." Everyone fell silent in disbelief when he said that. Shannon was shocked. She knew that Yvette probably loved Xavier more than anything in the world, only surpassed by his own parents. Seven years ago, Yvette had even protected Xavier with her own body when someone had attempted to stab him. Four years ago, not long after the two had gotten engaged, something had happened to Xavier while he had been on a business trip in Dibay. Everyone had been convinced that he was dead, but Yvette had refused to believe that. She had dropped everything and gone to the foreign city just to look for him. Then, after they had gotten married, Yvette had taken care of almost everything in his life with meticulous precision, including being polite to everyone around him, even his secretaries. She had always been afraid of offending them. Yvette clearly couldn't live without Xavier. So, why had she suggested getting a divorce? Shannon had no idea, but she was glad that Yvette had finally decided to let Xavier go. "She's not worthy to be your wife anyway. It's a good thing that you're divorcing her. She doesn't deserve you," she said The others immediately chimed in. "Yeah, you're young and handsome, Xav. You're in your best years now. Yvette's been dragging you down all this time!" Instantly, the gathering turned into a slander fest. They spoke of Yvette as if she were an unforgivable criminal. Xavier should have felt happy that they were defending him, but for some reason, he found their words too sharp and crass. He left Lane Mansion earlier than usual and made his way back to Dewberry Estate. The sky was just starting to darken when he arrived home. He opened the door and entered the manor. When he saw nothing but darkness, he remembered, with a start, that Yvette had left. He changed into his house slippers and tossed his coat into the washer. For some reason, he felt unusually exhausted today. He went to the wine cellar to get a bottle of wine so that he could celebrate Yvette's leaving. However, when he got to the wine cellar and saw the locked door, he realized too late that he didn't have the key. He didn't like strangers in his house, so there were no maids or servants at Dewberry Estate. Ever since he had married Yvette, she had been the one taking care of the household affairs. He could only go back to his room. Picking up his phone, he scrolled through his messages only to find work-related texts. Yvette hadn't called or texted him to apologize at all. Tossing his phone aside, he got up and headed over to the kitchen. When he opened the door of the fridge, he was stunned. Apart from food, there were also a lot of supplements. He picked one of the bags up and read the instructions on it. "Take five times a day for incapable of conceived." He took a whiff of the supplement. It smelled disgusting. He recalled that Yvette always smelled strange. So, this was why. He scoffed silently. They had never slept, so no matter how much medicine she took, she would never have gotten conceived. ... Meanwhile, over in a dark and dinky hotel, Yvette opened her eyes blearily. Her head was pounding. The world was silent. She knew, then, that her condition had worsened again. Before this, she had still been able to hear some sounds, even without her hearing aids. She pushed herself up and felt around on the bedside table until she found her medicine. She popped the pills in her mouth, tasting their bitterness. The day before, she had left Dewberry Estate, which had been her home for the past three years. At first, she had gone to her parents' house, Snyder Residence. However, at the door, she had overheard Yara and Terrence discussing how they would marry her off to an old man if the Lanes kicked her out. Yvette had blanked upon hearing that. It was then that she finally realized that she had no place to call home anymore. Even though she hadn't eaten anything in two days, she still didn't feel hungry. However, it was too quiet. The silence scared her. It had been raining more frequently in Tirion this year than it had in previous years. Yvette stared out at the passing pedestrians. Most of them were paired up or in groups. She was the only one alone. She bought a bus ticket heading out of the city. She decided to go to her nanny's house in the countryside. Viola Xenos, her nanny, had taken care of her when she was a child. It was already 9:00 pm when Yvette got there. When Viola saw Yvette, she looked pleasantly surprised. Yvette teared up when she saw Viola's warm smile. She reached out to her and hugged her. "Viola." Due to health issues, Viola had never married and didn't have children of her own. Yvette was closer to her than she was to her own mother. That night, Yvette cuddled up in Viola's embrace, just like she had when she was a child. Viola wrapped her arms around Yvette, only to realize that the latter was very thin. She pressed a hand on the Yvette's bony back, trembling uncontrollably. Forcing herself to calm down, she asked cautiously, "Has Xavier been treating you well, Yvvy?" Yvette felt a sharp pain in her throat when she heard Xavier's name. She wanted to lie to Viola and tell her that Xavier had treated her well, but she knew that Viola wasn't silly. Since she had already made up her mind to leave him, there was no need to lie to herself or to the people who loved her any longer. "The person he loves has returned. I've decided to let him go and divorce him." Viola was stunned. She couldn't believe her ears. Yvette had told her multiple times before that she wanted to spend the rest of her life with Xavier. Not knowing what else to say, she comforted Yvette by telling her that there were plenty of other fish in the sea. There was bound to be one who would love her. Yvette just nodded silently. The buzzing in her ears drowned out Viola's comforting voice. That night, she managed to get a good night's sleep, which was rare. However, when she woke up, she was greeted with the alarming sight of blood staining the spot where her head had laid on the pillow. Yvette touched her right ear. Her fingers felt sticky. She looked at her hand. It was covered in blood. Chapter 4 Even Yvette's hearing aids were stained red. Her pupils contracted, and she quickly grabbed some tissues to wipe her ear. Then, she stripped the bedsheets and washed them. She was afraid that Viola would worry about her if she found out that her illness was worsening. So, she cleaned up the mess and found an excuse to bid goodbye to Viola. Before she left, she placed a part of her savings on the bedside table without telling Viola. Viola walked Yvette to the bus stop and waved goodbye reluctantly. ⌠After Yvette left, Viola couldn't stop thinking about how thin the former was. Unable to just sit by, she called Lane Group. When the secretary heard that Viola was Yvette's nanny and wanted to speak to Xavier, she transferred the call to Xavier's line. It was the third day after Yvette had left Xavier. It was also the first time in three days that he had received a call about her. Sitting behind his desk, he felt exceptionally pleased. Just as he had expected, Yvette wouldn't be able to last more than three days without himâor so he thought. Viola's voice came through the other line, sounding weighed with age. "Mr. Lane, I am Yvvy's nanny. I've been taking care of her since she was a baby. "Please, I beg you, treat her well. Don't hurt her more than you already have. She's not as strong as she seems on the surface. "When she was born, Mrs. Snyder left her in my care because she didn't like that Yvvy is hard of hearing. Yvvy only returned home when she had to start going to school. "The Snyders have never treated her as one of their own. Apart from Mr. Snyder, everyone else treated her like she was a maid. "You and Mr. Snyder are the most important people she has in this world. I'm begging you, please. Please be kind to her." Xavier's mood darkened when he heard what Viola said. "Did she tell you to give me this sob story because she didn't want to face me herself?" he asked coldly. "Why should I care about her life? If you ask me, she deserved everything she got!" That said, he hung up the phone without waiting for an answer. Viola had heard Yvette gushing about how nice Xavier was to her. So, it was only then that she realized the truthâXavier wasn't a good man at all. He wasn't a good husband to Yvette. ... Yvette sat on the bus, heading home. Just then, her phone vibrated. It was a message from Xavier. "You said you wanted to get divorced, right? I'll see you at 10:00 am tomorrow." Yvette stared at the text blankly for a while before replying, "Okay." Just one word. It infuriated Xavier and completely ruined his mood. Unable to work anymore, he called up his friends and invited them out for drinks. Daphne was also at the club when he arrived. "I'm not going home until I'm drunk!" she declared. Tristan sat down beside Xavier. He couldn't help asking curiously, "How's Deaf Yvvy?" Xavier raised an eyebrow at him. "There's no need to talk about her ever again. We're filing for divorce tomorrow." Tristan was stunned. He couldn't believe his ears. "Really?" Beside them, Daphne brightened. She poured out a shot for him. "Congrats on getting back your freedom, Xav!" Xavier drank a lot that night. Daphne offered to send him home, but he rejected her suggestion. "No need. It's not appropriate." If he and Yvette were going to get divorced tomorrow, she might come home that night. Daphne wasn't happy about the rejection. "Why? You're divorcing her anyway. Why wouldn't it be appropriate? Are you still scared that she might find out about our relationship?" Their relationship? Xavier narrowed his eyes. "You're overthinking this." He got into his own car. Out of consideration, he also called a cab to send Daphne home. On the drive home, he kept unlocking his phone to check if Yvette had sent him any messages. She hadn't. When he reached Dewberry Estate, it was dark. With a stormy expression, Xavier opened the door and turned on the light. Yvette was nowhere to be seen. She hadn't come home. The manor was left exactly the way it had been when she had left. Still feeling the effects of the wine, Xavier threw himself heavily onto the couch and soon fell asleep. In his nightmares, Yvette was covered in blood, but there was a smile on her face. "I don't love you anymore, Xav," she said. When Xavier jolted awake, the sky outside had just brightened up. He rubbed his forehead and went to the bathroom to freshen himself up. Then, he changed into a smart suit and made his way to the courthouse. At the entrance of the courthouse, he spotted Yvette standing under a tree not far off. As usual, she was dressed in dark-colored clothes. From the distance, she looked incredibly frail and thin as she stood amid the drizzle. It was as if a single gust of wind could knock her over. Xavier could still remember how young and lively she had been when they had first gotten married. She hadn't been as thin and gloomy back then. Holding an umbrella, he walked toward Yvette. It took her a few moments to notice him. Xiaver hadn't changed much over the last three years. He was as handsome and as confident as ever, with the added hint of matureness that came with age. Yvette was a little dazed. The last three years felt like a blink in time to her, yet she also seemed to have exhausted a whole lifetime. Xavier stalked over to Yvette and gazed at her coldly. He was waiting for her to apologize to him. She had been sulking enough. It was time to put an end to this. However, Yvette just said, "I'm sorry to pull you away from your work. Let's go in." Xavier stiffened, but he quickly recovered. "Don't regret this." With that, he turned and headed into the courthouse. Yvette stared after him sadly. Would she regret this? She didn't know either. In the courthouse, the judge asked them if they were sure about going through with the divorce. Yvette's answer was firm. "Yes." Her determined expression frustrated Xavier. After filing for divorce, they still had to return to the courthouse in a month. If they didn't show up, then the divorce would be considered null. As they left the courthouse, Yvette looked at Xavier, her expression unusually calm. "I'll see you next month. Take care." With that, she stepped out into the rain, hailed a cab, and left. Xavier was left standing on the spot. He didn't know how to feel as he watched her car leave. Relieved, probably. Relieved that he wouldn't need to put up with her any longer or endure others' ridicule for having a disabled wife. ... In the cab, Yvette leaned against the window and stared blankly at the rain droplets on the glass. In the rearview mirror, the driver suddenly saw blood dripping from her ear. He was shocked by the sight. "Miss? Miss!" Yvette didn't answer him. The driver hastily stopped the car. Yvette was confused. They weren't at her destination yet. Why had they stopped? She looked over at the driver and saw him mouthing silently. She realized that she had gone deaf again. "I'm sorry, I can't hear you. What are you saying?" In the end, the driver had to type out what he wanted to say on his phone so that he could tell her about her bleeding ear. Yvette reached out belatedly and felt the warm sensation in her ear. She was used to it now. "It's alright. This happens all the time. I'm fine." She was hard of hearing, but her ears hadn't bled like this before. Two years ago, at a gathering, Tristan had pushed her into a swimming pool. Yvette didn't know how to swim, so she had almost drowned. At the same time, her eardrums had also expanded due to the pressure. She had been sent to the hospital, but the damage had been done. At the time, she had been told that everything was fine. Why was this happening again? The cab driver was still worried, so he dropped her off at the hospital she told him. After thanking him, Yvette went into the hospital on her own. This time, she saw her usual doctor, Tom Jensen. "Dr. Jensen, my memory has been rather bad lately. I kept forgetting what I'm doing," she said. When she had woken up at the hotel that morning, it had taken her a long time to remember that she had to file for divorce with Xavier. Tom looked at her latest report worriedly. "Ms. Snyder, I think you should consider getting tested for other things. Specifically, mental health issues." Mental health⌠Following Tom's recommendation, Yvette went and got a psychiatric diagnosis. She was diagnosed with depression. It turned out that patients with severe depression often experienced memory loss. Before heading back to the hotel, Yvette stopped and bought a notebook and a pen. She wrote down everything that had happened lately. She placed the notebook right beside her bed so that it would be the first thing she saw when she woke up in the morning. News of her and Xavier's divorce spread quickly. That night, Yara called her multiple times, but she didn't hear anything. ⌠When she woke up the next morning, she saw a barrage of texts from Yara. "Where are you?" "Who do you think you are? Even if you're getting a divorce, Xavier should have been the one to ask for it!" "You're such a jinx! Back when you got married, your dad got into a car crash and died. What's going to happen now that you're getting divorced? Do you want Snyder Group to go bankrupt? Is that it?" Yvette stared at the messages. She was used to the verbal bully by now. She typed out a reply. "Mom, it's time that we live by our own merits. We shouldn't depend on others so much." Yara's response was swift. "You're such an ingrate! I shouldn't have given birth to you in the first place!" Yvette didn't bother replying to that. She placed her phone aside. She just had to wait a month. Once the divorce was finalized, she would be able to leave Tirion and start a new life. ⌠Yvette's health worsened over the next few days. She often found herself completely deaf. Sometimes, it took a very long time for her hearing to go back to normal. Her memory was deteriorating too. On the bright side, even though her hearing loss was incurable, at least she could do something about the depression. She tried everything she could to keep herself happy. She busied herself by registering as a volunteer online. She spent time taking care of abandoned old people and orphans. Helping them made her feel like she had a reason to continue living. A few days later, Yvette woke up in the morning and checked her notebook as usual. Then, she got ready to head out to the orphanage. When she picked up her phone, she saw several unread messages. There were messages from Terrance and Yara, as well as Daphne. She opened the texts one by one. Yara: "As you wished, Snyder Group is no more." Terrence: "Keep hiding. You're the most cowardly and cruel person I've ever seen." Daphne: "My condolences, Yvette. Actually, I think Snyder Group would thrive better under Xav." Daphne: "Since your family has helped me so much in the past, do let me know if you need anything. I'll help you if I can." Yvette had no idea what was happening. She closed the messaging app. Almost immediately, she got a notification about the latest news. Chapter 5 Yvette watched the news and saw the press conference held by Lane Group. It was an announcement that Xavier had successfully acquired Snyder Group. James' company no longer existed in the world. ⌠Things on Xavier's end had been extra pleasant lately. He had acquired Snyder Group and gotten his revenge. "The Snyder family finally got what they deserved for tricking you into that marriage three years ago." Tristan chuckled. Yet, he changed the topic in the next instant. He asked Xavier, "Xav, has Deaf Yvvy approached you during the past few days?" Xavier froze halfway through signing a document. He didn't know why, but people around him kept mentioning Yvette these days. "No," he replied coldly. That shocked Tristan. After all, how could Yvette not do anything when something this massive had happened to her family? With that in mind, he spoke again. "Could it be that she's finally come around? I heard her family has been looking everywhere for her. Nobody knows where she's goneâ" He kept blabbering on. Xavier frowned, feeling utterly annoyed. "Get out!" Tristan jolted. That was when he realized that Xavier was furious. Not daring to say another word, Tristan bolted out of the CEO's office. Once outside, he took his phone and called his assistant, Avery Fitzpatrick. "Have you found Yvette?" "Yes, she's in a small hotel in Hexim Pass," answered Avery. Tristan had Avery send him the location before he drove there. He refused to let Yvette off the hook so easily. So what if she was willing to divorce Xavier now? She had already prevented Xavier and Daphne from being together for over three years! Besides, Daphne had saved Tristan's life once, so he owed her. It rained outside. Yvette finished her volunteer work and picked up her medication from the hospital. Then, she held an umbrella while walking back to the hotel. There were very few people on the road. Tristan drove his car but kept his eyes on Yvette's slim back. He deliberately sped up as he drove past her, sending a puddle of rainwater splashing onto her. Yvette shot him a blank stare. Tristan happened to meet her emotionless gaze through his rearview mirror. He didn't know why, but he felt inexplicably nervous. Yvette recognized Tristan's luxurious, dark gray Bugatti. Yet, she retracted her gaze and pretended not to notice him. Even so, Tristan refused to stop there. He deliberately slowed his car and followed her. "Hey, Deaf Yvvy. So, you have a temper now, huh? "You're not even going to greet me now? Didn't you used to love greeting me? Didn't you enjoy tickling my fancy?" Yvette remained stoic while the former mocked her. She used to do everything to win over those around Xavier, including his friends. It was all because she liked him. She had figured that Xavier's family and friends would one day accept her. Alas, it seemed she had been too naĂŻve. At the previous gathering, Tristan had declared that he was Daphne's friend. He couldn't care less about maintaining his gentlemanly, upper-class image when siding with Daphne. He had insulted Yvette and called her shameless. In the end, he had also thrown her into the pool, leaving her to die. Since then, Yvette had steered clear of him. Upon receiving no reaction or response from Yvette, Tristan stopped the car, opened the door, and strolled toward her. He grabbed her arm and asked, "What stunts are you planning to pull this time?" Yvette's arm hurt, so she looked up at him. "I don't know what you're saying." She wanted to pry his hand off her arm, but he flung her aside. "Don't touch me with your filthy hands!" Tristan bellowed. Yvette stumbled backward before falling to the ground with a loud thud. Tristan froze on the spot in slight disbelief. It baffled him to see Yvette resorting to such tricks. He had only pushed her with a slight force, so how could she fall like that? Seeing people looking their way, he nervously got back into his car. Still, he gave her a warning before driving away. "Don't mess with Daph just because you're a disabled person, Yvette! "She's different from you. It's taken her a lot of effort to get to where she is now, so you'd better not disrupt her and Xav's relationship again!" After driving away, he even told the Snyder family where Yvette was staying. Yvette's hands and knees were scraped when she fell. It hurt so much that she couldn't stand for a long time. Deep down, she didn't understand why Tristan was so blind to what was right and wrong. She recalled risking her life to rescue him from a car that had been about to explode four years ago. His face had been covered in blood, and his eyes hadn't been visible. However, he had spoken in the warmest voice. He had said, "Thank you. I promise I'll repay you someday." Yvette couldn't help but bitterly wonder if this was his way of repaying her. ⌠Once Yvette returned to the hotel, she took a shower and applied medication to her scraped skin. Then, she lay down in a daze. The fall hardened her determination to leave Xavier for good. ⌠The sun was shining brightly outside when Yvette woke up. She got up and headed to the living area, only to see Yara sitting on the couch, wearing a formal dress. Yara didn't seem to care one bit that Yvette had just woken up. She picked the document off the coffee table and handed it to the latter. "Take a good look at this. It's the backup plan I've selected for you." Yvette accepted the document but saw the title "prenuptial agreement" on the cover. She flipped through the pages while reading the contents aloud. "Ms. Yvette Snyder will marry Mr. Liam Lorimer. As his wife, she'll devote herself to him and look after him until the end of his life. Liam will look after Yvette's family, which includes maintaining their quality of life. He'll also provide 300 million as funds for the Snyder family." Following that, the document stated Liam's details. He was an entrepreneur from the older generation in Tirion. He was 78 years old that year. Yvette's mind tensed. At that moment, Yara spoke up again. "Mr. Lorimer has expressed that he doesn't mind that you were married before. "He'll help revive our family's reputation from the ashes, as long as you marry him. Come on, dearest. You wouldn't let me and Terrence down, right?" Yvette's face paled even more. "I can't agree to what you're asking of me." Yara had never imagined that Yvette would reject her so candidly. She blew up in a fit of rage at once. "What right do you have to refuse? I gave you life!" Hearing that, Yvette met Yara's gaze. "How about I return my life to you? Would that mean I no longer owe you?" "What did you say?" Yara shrilled. Yvette's pale lips moved as she said, "If I returned my life to you, would it mean you'd no longer be my mother? And I'll no longer be indebted to you for giving birth to me?" Yara sneered, not believing Yvette would dare do such a thing. "Okay, then. I won't force you to marry Mr. Lorimer if you give your life back to me. But the question is, do you have the guts to do it?" "Give me a month." Yvette seemed determined. In Yara's eyes, Yvette seemed like a crazed person. She warned, "You'd best not threaten me by only saying you'll end your life. We're not that close, so I don't care if you die. However, you must sign this document if you're too afraid to end your life." ⌠Yvette had suppressed all her emotions to the brim and needed to vent somewhere. So, she went to a bar. She sat in a corner, drinking and watching the crowd happily dance in a daze. That was when a dashing man with striking eyes noticed Yvette, who was all alone. He approached and asked, "Yvette?" Yvette stared at the man but didn't recognize him. Still dazed, she asked, "Do you know how one can achieve happiness?" The man was confused. "What did you say?" Yvette continued drinking as she spoke. "The doctor says I'm ill and should try to be happier, but I can't make myself feel happyâŚ" That sparked discomfort in the man, Claude Lander. He wondered if Yvette had forgotten about him. Also, he was confused by what she saidâsomething about being ill and needing to be happier. "You shouldn't be in a place like this if you want to be happy. Why don't I drive you home?" Claude spoke in a gentle tone. A smile curved across Yvette's face as she looked at him. "You're a good person." Complex emotions stirred in Claude when he saw her bitter smile. He wondered what she had been through these past few years. Why did she seem so sorrowful? Meanwhile, Xavier was also at the bar. After settling the divorce papers, he had let himself loose every night. On top of that, he hadn't returned to Dewberry Estate in a long time. It was getting late. When the crowd was about to leave, Daphne noticed a familiar figure in a corner of the bar. She exclaimed, "Isn't that Yvvy?" Xavier glanced in the direction Daphne was staring in and saw a man merrily chatting with Yvette. His expression soured at once. He was disappointed in Yvette for getting drunk at a bar and chatting up another man. He felt like he had thought too highly of her before. "Should we go and check up on her, Xav?" asked Daphne. "No," was all Xavier said before speedily leaving. On the other hand, Yvette declined Claude's offer. "There's no need to trouble yourself. I can go home on my own." Claude was still worried about Yvette, so he ran after her when he noticed her leaving the bar. "Do you really not remember me?" Yvette gazed at him but couldn't recall who he was. "It's Chubbs. Have you forgotten?" Claude reminded her. Only then did Yvette remember her friend, Chubbs, whom she met when she had been living with Viola in the countryside. Back then, Claude had been chubbier and nowhere near Yvette's height. Yet, his six-foot-two-inch frame now towered over her. He had even grown to have handsome features. "I remember now! You've changed so much. I didn't even recognize you!" said Yvette. Meeting an old friend away from home was a pleasant thing. But only a slight smile curved on Yvette's face. That upset Claude. "Come on. I'll drive you home," Claude stated. When he dropped her off, he was shocked to learn she lived in a run-down hotel. Yvette shifted in embarrassment. "Sorry, it's not a glamorous place. Please don't tell Viola I'm living in such a place. I don't want her to worry." Claude nodded. Since it was getting late, it was unwise for him to stay longer. So, he left after telling Yvette he would visit her the next day. He didn't notice the matte black car lingering in a dark area beneath the hotel as he walked out. Now that Claude had left, Yvette felt dizzy and had an upset stomach from drinking too much. That was when someone knocked hard on the door. Yvette had just opened the door when Xavier grabbed her wrist. He exerted so much strength on her slender wrist that it felt close to snapping in half. "You've made me look at you in a new light, Yvette!" Xavier snarled while shutting and locking the door. He then forcefully led her to the couch. He sneered with words as sharp and lethal as a blade, "So, you've already settled on which family you'll marry into next, huh? I knew you wouldn't be so willing to let me go for no reason!" Yvette didn't know why he had come over, nor did she know how he had seen Claude. She was only briefly dazed. Once she snapped out of it, she shot a furious look at Xavier and didn't bother explaining herself to him. The rims of her eyes reddened. "You and I aren't that different from each other." The Snyder family had tricked Xavier into marrying Yvette. However, Xavier had treated her coldly for three years while remaining entangled with his first love. Neither Xavier nor Yvette was a better person than the other. Xavier had also drunk some wine, so he reeked of it. Eyes reddening, he pinched Yvette's chin and spoke with a dangerously low voice. "Who is he? When did you guys meet?" That was the first time Yvette had seen him behave like this. She suddenly chuckled. "Are you jealous?" Xavier's gaze grew tense as he scoffed. "You're unworthy of such a reaction." Yvette became choked up. That was when Xavier leaned in domineeringly and continued interrogating her. "Has he already touched you? Huh?" In her three years of marriage, Yvette had given up on her work and declined to meet her friends whenever they had occasionally invited her out. She had done so to obey the Lane family's rules. But now Xavier was suspicious of her. Relief washed over Yvette just then. She questioned him back, "What do you think?" That utterly angered Xavier, and his heated hands started travelling down her body. | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 840 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | DCO | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13092&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/457023493_8130919900276575_3500800934228782898_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=698X5c_g1L8Q7kNvgF02rVa&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A6ypE6coIzKWchkZRVwfG6s&oh=00_AYDfE5u4ENuDH4JCnaJWErVgBEmULHv72yezf3iAFmAkGg&oe=67482A1B | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,512,025 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2510719}' |
Yes | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | t. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13853&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/460723249_8667426709955594_6343552522607692952_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=WwAnHKaaZK0Q7kNvgGpuE6t&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AFEibD0Vl0m-8IDlDg7YxEb&oh=00_AYCT6uc2yQ1Z-WzP3Fd9CI54EYITXC3-DcfY05mGLLo8dQ&oe=674800C7 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,355 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2511462}' |
Yes | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | In Debra's last life, she loved Juan so much, but everyone knew that the one he cherished was Shelia. After Debra was drained of her last bit of value by Juan, she tragically died on the operating table. Reborn in this life, Debra swears never to repeat the same mistakes, and she will make Juan regret what he has done! "Get the defibrillator! Increase the voltage!" "Doctor! The patient is experiencing massive bleeding, and the A-type blood from the blood bank was just urgently taken away." The intern nurse's hands were covered in blood, and she trembled. The operating room reeked of blood. She had never seen so much blood before. At that moment, a thought flashed through her mind. 'Who would suddenly take away A-type blood from the blood bank?' The woman lying on the bed was pale. Her lips were dry, and her eyes started to lose focus. "Juan..." "What?" "Juan Nichols..." The intern nurse made out the name murmured by Debra Frazier. Juan Nichols was the most influential businessman in Seamar City. The doctor was on the verge of collapse. He dialed the wrong number three times before finally getting it right. He quickly pleaded with the person on the other end of the phone, "Mr. Nichols, your wife is experiencing massive bleeding, but the blood from the blood bank has been taken away. Please, come and see her for the last time." But Juan's voice was filled with indifference. "She's still alive? Call me when she's dead." With that, he hung up the phone. All the light disappeared from Debra's eyes. 'Juan, do you hate me so much? Even at this point, you wouldn't come to see me.' The machine emitted a flat, cold beep, indicating the patient's vital signs had disappeared. Debra felt her soul leaving her body. Her withered, frail body collapsed weakly on the bed. Debra felt exhausted. At just twenty-seven, she died from postpartum hemorrhage in the hospital. In her lifetime, she loved Juan dearly. As the only daughter of the Frazier family, she should have enjoyed the best life. But to marry Juan, she sacrificed herself and her family. In the end, she met a tragic fate. Debra slowly closed her eyes. Given another chance, she would never make the same mistakes. ... "Madam, Mr. Nichols wants to take you to the auction. Which outfit would you like to wear?" Sophie asked. Debra gasped and opened her eyes. Everything in front of her was strikingly familiar. This place was Juan and her home. They had been married for a month, but Juan had rarely visited her. She remembered that Juan was attending a land auction, and due to the occasion, he had to bring his family along. But this was all five years ago. 'How could it be? ' she thought, deeply confused, 'Am I reborn?' "Mr. Nichols has never stayed overnight before. You should seize this opportunity." Sophieâs voice brought Debra back to reality. She picked out a white gown, hesitating. "How about this one, Madam?" Looking at it, Debra gave a self-deprecating smile. It was well known that Juan favored Shelia. In the past, she often dressed like Shelia to please Juan Miles. Shelia liked white dresses, so she followed suit, just to earn a little favor from Juan. For this auction, Juan didn't inform her of the change in companion and brought Shelia instead, making her look ridiculous in a white dress similar to Shelia's. The thought of the past made her laugh. "No, I'll wear that one," she said, picking up a red dress. Debra never liked plain clothes. Shelia was just a poor college student. Debra felt that she must have lost her mind to wear cheap clothes for a man. It only lowered her status and self-esteem. "But Mr. Nichols likes white dresses," Sophie said hesitantly. Debra simply ignored her hints. "I'll wear this one," she said. "Throw away all those white dresses. I don't like them." Sophie sighed and complied. Debra looked at herself in the mirror, still vibrant and beautiful. But in a few years, she would be worn down by Juan's torment. Before that happened, she would end it all. In the evening, Debra appeared in a burgundy dress that accentuated her curves. Her delicate makeup, curls, and a mole under her eye made her mesmerizing. She looked like a painting, untouchable. Not far away, a man in a white shirt and black leather combat boots saw her. With a cigarette dangling from his mouth, Marion Houston asked, "Who is she?" "You don't know her? She's Debra, the daughter of the Frazier family and Juan's wife," said his friend, Randy Osborne. "I just saw Juan entering with another woman. Maybe we'll witness a showdown between the mistress and the wife. It will be fun." Marion made no comments. Randy clicked his tongue. "Juan's taste is just terrible, preferring a skinny woman to his beautiful woman. Don't you think?" Randy turned around, but Marion was nowhere to be seen. "Damn it!" he cursed, quickly catching up with Marion. Shelia, in a white dress, held Juan's arm timidly. "I've never been to such an event before. Maybe I should go back." "You'll get used to it. You'll be attending these events frequently in the future," Juan said. Shelia nodded. Juan was about to enter with Shelia when Joe spoke up. "Sir, won't we wait for Mrs. Nichols?" Juan frowned. "Didn't I ask you to tell her not to come today?" Joe glanced at Shelia, and she quickly said, "It's not Joe's fault. I told him not to inform Debra. With my status, I'm afraid of gossip, so I thought it would be better for Debra to accompany you in." Shelia lowered her head like a scared hare. Juan rubbed his temples. He didn't want Debra to show up at all. "Mr. Nichols," Shelia murmured, biting her lip. "It's alright." Juan patted Shelia's head and said to Joe, "Go intercept her and send her away." In the crowd, there were murmurs of surprise. Joe looked over and was also shocked. "I'm afraid it's too late." | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | DCO | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13914&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/462490777_1052928846505021_1590141424373732974_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Mf2hMCYKKnkQ7kNvgHF8wEM&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYBg2TWrs9DCUQ5PluYwz8qoxoA7-t0ic5t6Ss1uY9D93g&oe=67481E53 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,392 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512337}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Carissa Sinclair stared at the hypocritical man before her, his heartfelt promises still echoing in her ears. At the time of her husband's departure for battle, she used her dowry to support the household and care for her in-laws. In the end, however, she was met with betrayal; Barrett Warren used his military achievements to request the king's permission to take another legitimate wife, placing her on equal footing with him. She was the Marquis of Northwatch's daughter, and she herself was also highly skilled in martial arts. After her family was destroyed, she had no choice but to marry a good husband as her mother had wished, learning to be obedient and manage household affairs to put her mother at ease. But the man before her was no virtuous partner. Barrett's handsome face bore a hint of apology, yet his words were resolute, "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for this marriage. Aurora will be joining our household. There's no question about it." Despite feeling a mix of disgust and unwillingness, she still asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict. Besides, Aurora is straightforward, cheerful, and lovable. She visited my mother a while ago." They agreed? Hah... How ironic! All her sincere efforts over the past year turned out to be feeding a dog. "Carissa, when I married you, I didn't understand love. I thought you were a suitable match for a wife until I met Rory." Talking about the woman he loved, his eyes softened and filled with deep affection. He turned back to Carissa and added, "She's unlike any woman I've ever met. I love her deeply. I hope you'll agree to this." Carissa curled her lips in a faint smile; beneath her seemingly teary eyes gleamed a sharp, fierce determination, "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need for that. Carissa, she's different from any woman you know. She's a general, and she's above the usual household squabbles. She wouldn't want to meet you," Barrett refused instantly. Carissa retorted, "What kind of women do I know? What kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of a noble family. My father and my six brothers died on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "That's them," Barrett interrupted. "But you're a delicate woman suited for the comforts of home. Aurora has no respect for such women. She's straightforward and unrestrained. If she meets you, she might say things you won't like. Why put yourself through that?" As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under the corner of her eye became more evident in the light. She calmly said, "It's fine. If she says anything unpleasant, I'll ignore it. Understanding the bigger picture and acting with dignity are essential virtues for any matriarch. Don't you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. "Why put yourself through this? There was a royal edict for this marriage. Even when Aurora moves in, you'll be in separate wings. She won't compete with you for control of the household. She doesn't care about those things." "Do you really think I'm attached to managing this household?" Carissa countered. Running this mansion was no easy task. Just the monthly medicine for Barrett's mother cost dozens of silver coins. Then, there was food, clothing, and social obligationsâall these things required money. This household was practically a hollow shell. Over the past year, Carissa had used much of her dowry to keep things running. And this was her reward. "Enough, I won't argue with you. I just needed to inform you. Whether you agree or not changes nothing," said Barrett, his patience wearing thin. Carissa watched him leave in a huff, feeling even more the irony in her heart. "My lady, my lord was too much!" said Lulu, Carissa's maid, wiping her tears away. "Don't call him that!" Carissa gave her a stern look. "We never consummated the marriage. He's not your lord." "Help me get ready; we're going to the royal palace." "What do we need to go to the royal palace for... Oh! Are you asking the king to revoke the decree?" Lulu asked innocently, tilting her head. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. "Silly girl, is it worth it for us to continue wasting our youth on someone like that?" Lulu covered her forehead and exclaimed, "Then why are we going to the palace?" "Of course, to seek a decree for divorce." Barrett Warren could leverage his achievements to request a marriage from the king, and she, Carissa Sinclair, could also use the military merits of the Marquis' family of Northwatch to request an edict for an amicable divorce. Since her husband's heart no longer belongs to her, why should she cling on? As for the substantial dowry she had given over the years, there's no reason to let this heartless family benefit from it for free. She will reclaim every single cent. With clear brows and resolute expression, Carissa Sinclair's gentle face radiated unwavering determination...... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463979086_1249620329511298_7952432189440379201_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=y9wrLIJq4LIQ7kNvgHiJAG5&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYATrfyhZqLKsIMnaVvS7cLVBhvXxiA99D42lnov87_GeQ&oe=67480306 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,429 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2511697}' |
Yes | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đĽđĽClick to read the next chapter for freeđ | Chapter 0001 "Where's the patient's husband? Why hasn't he come yet? If he doesn't sign soon, it'll be too late,â a doctor urged. "The patient's husband refuses to come. He said to let her fend for herself,â a nurse replied. "Fend for herself..." When Suzy Frost, battered and barely clinging to life on the operating table, heard those words, something inside her stirred. Summoning the last of her strength, she slowly raised her hand. "Give me my phone..." Seeing her condition, the nurse quickly handed her the phone. Enduring excruciating pain, Suzy redialed the number that was almost etched into her brain. Just as the call was about to disconnect automatically, it finally went through. "I already told you that her life or death is none of my business!" the man on the other end spoke, his voice full of displeasure and impatience. "Dylan..." With every word Suzy spoke, a searing pain shot through her body, "After you took Anne away, the kidnappers detonated the bomb, and I was hurt, badly..." "Heh..." Before she could finish, the man on the other end let out a cold, dismissive chuckle. "Suzy, your acting is really improving. That weak little voice almost sounds convincing." "...I'm not lying to you, I really am hurt." "Is that so?" His tone grew even more scornful. "Then I wish you a speedy journey to death!" "Dylan..." "Beep beep beep..." Undeterred, Suzy tried calling again. "Sorry, the number you have dialed is unavailable.â The doctor, no longer able to stand by in silence, spoke gently, "Miss Frost, your condition is very serious. If you have any other family members present, they're also authorized to sign on your behalf.â What other family did she have? In this world, he was the only one who could sign the consent form. No matter how much it hurt, Suzy fought back the tears that streamed down her pale cheeks and asked the doctor with a faint smile, "Can I sign for myself?" "...Yes!" With her last ounce of strength, Suzy signed the consent form for the surgery. The operation lasted four hours and was finally over, but her condition worsened two hours post-surgery, and Suzy was moved to the ICU. For 24 hours, Suzy lay in a coma, unable to open her eyes, but her mind was alert, and she could hear the nurses discussing as they changed her bandages. "Even if the marriage is struggling, a husband can't just ignore his seriously injured wife! You wouldn't believe itâI called him several more times, but it just kept going to voicemail. Doesn't he care even a little?" lamented the nurse. "Here's some juicy gossip for youâthe CEO of Wright Corporation, Dylan Wright, who's rumored to be disinterested in women and hasn't married even at thirty, actually has a girlfriend, and she's hospitalized right here in our hospital. Heâs taking care of her around the clock in the VVIP ward on the top floor." "Itâs strange how different men can beâone boyfriend is incredibly devoted, and another is worse than an animal!" Little did she know, Dylan was so close, merely an inquiry away from knowing that Suzy hadn't lied to him. Yet, he refused to waste a moment on her, simply because... she wasn't worth it! Her eyes, tightly shut, suddenly flew open, startling the nurse who was wiping her face. "You're awake!" Once awake, Suzy was immediately given a thorough check-up and, finding no serious injuries, was moved to a regular room. That night, deep in the silence, despite still being confined to her bed, Suzy removed her oxygen mask and dragged her injured left leg, wounded in the explosion, to the top floor. Outside the hospital room, through the glass, Suzy watched as Dylan tenderly fed Anne Wheeler fruits by her bedside. Her fists tightened, but the anguish in her chest, like a swarm of needles pricking at her heart, didnât ease in the slightest. Three days ago, Suzy and Anne had been kidnapped together. Knowing how important Anne was to him, and despite their rivalry, Suzy had fiercely protected her. For two days and nights, Suzy was tortured by the kidnappers, bearing injuries all over her body, while Anne only suffered minor superficial wounds. Finally, Dylan came... "I choose to save Anne. As for Suzy, do as you please..." He was not only unconcerned about Suzy but even suspected that the kidnapping was a drama she had orchestrated herself. He had never trusted her! The intimate scene in the hospital room turned Suzy's eyes, once filled with love, utterly cold. "It's time to end this!" The moment Suzy turned to leave, Dylan felt something stir and whirled around, just as Anne let out a pained cry. Dylan quickly asked, "What's wrong?" Anne glanced at the door and then gave Dylan a weak smile. "I accidentally pulled at my wound." "Do you need a doctor?" "I'm not that frail," Anne replied teasingly. "But Mr. Dylan, you should head back. You've been with me day and night; Suzy must be upset again..." She paused, "Mr. Dylan, honestly, Suzy isn't wrong. No matter what our relationship was in the past, you are now her husband. No woman could tolerate her husband being so kind to another woman, so whatever she does is understandable. Don't be angry with her, otherwise, Madam Grace might hear of it..." Dylan cut her off, "It's getting late, you should sleep." "Mr. Dylan..." "Listen to me!" "Alright then." As Anne closed her eyes, Dylan glanced once more towards the door. Was it really... He remembered the weak voice on the phone that day. His lips tightened, and he stood up. Just as he moved, Anne grabbed his hand. "Mr. Dylan, my wound still hurts a bit. Could you blow on it for me?" A flicker of hesitation crossed his eyes before Dylan finally replied in a deep voice, "Alright." ⌠Suzy didn't return to her room but left the hospital directly. A taxi took her back to the villa where she had lived with Dylan for three years. As she walked inside from the front gate, memories of the past three years with Dylan flooded back like a tidal wave. It had been a blend of sour, bitter, and spicy moments in their life together, but sweetness was conspicuously absent. Dylan had always believed that Suzy married him as part of a calculated scheme. In truth, he wasn't entirely wrong; Suzy had indeed manipulated events to marry him, but her motives were never what he assumedâshe wasn't after his wealth or status; she was after the man himself. She had hoped that time would prove her true intentions, but three years had only intensified his disdain for her. She could never forget his cruel words, "Then I wish you a speedy journey to death!" "Dylan, you might not realize it, but I've actually been living in desperation all along. These past three years, I tried to climb out, to be normal, to be by your side, but you clearly didn't care. Since that's the case, I'll grant your wish." Taking what she needed and discarding what she didn't, Suzy left behind only the signed divorce papers and the keys to the villa. She walked away without a trace of longing, leaving nothing behind. Chapter 0002 The next morning, after spending yet another night at the hospital because Anne's pain had kept her from letting him leave, Dylan was finally on his way to the office. As they approached an intersection, he suddenly instructed the driver, "Take me to Bayview Heights." He had been wearing the same clothes for two days and needed a change. Otherwise, he wasnât too keen on returning to that place. Upon arriving at the villa, instead of the warm welcome he might have expected, he was met with an eerie silence and a chilling sight on the living room tableâa divorce agreement! Dylanâs gaze lingered on the signed divorce papers and the keys resting on top. With an unreadable expression, he paused for a moment before turning and heading upstairs. This was his first time entering Suzy's room. They usually lived separate lives, like oil and water, never mixing. The room was as clean and orderly as he expected. Over the past three years, she had personally taken care of his every need. It was hard to deny that in some ways, she had been a competent wife... Realizing his thoughts, Dylanâs brows furrowed, and he stepped forward to open her wardrobe. Clothes and jewelry, everything related to the Wright family were still there. Just as she had written in the divorce papers, she had left without taking anything, leaving with nothing but the clothes on her back. So, her cries of impending death that day, were they all just an act? He sneered. âSuzy, Iâm curious to see what game youâre playing this time.â His phone rang. Pulling it from his pocket and seeing the caller ID, a trace of disappointment flashed in his eyesâa feeling he might not have even noticed himself. âWhat is it?â On the other end, his assistant sounded particularly anxious, âSir, Miss Wheeler has had an accident!â His brow tightened immediately. âIâm on my way!â At the hospital, although bodyguards were posted at the entrance and surveillance revealed no suspicious individuals, Anne had somehow been poisoned and was in critical condition. Anne's primary doctor speculated, âMr. Wright, itâs highly likely that Miss Wheeler was poisoned before she even arrived at the hospitalâŚâ Anne cut off the doctor before he could finish, "Mr. Dylan, please don't blame Suzy. She was just trying to protect her marriage! If I had listened to her and left you as she suggested, none of this would have happened. So, this is all my own fault..." "At a time like this, you should be worried about yourself, not that ruthless woman," Dylan replied sharply. His eyes hardened as he pulled out his phone to call Suzy. "I'm sorry, the number you have dialed is unavailable..." The fury in his eyes could have swallowed someone whole. He coldly ordered his assistant, who was standing by, "Search the entire city for Suzy!" Meanwhile, at Hillside Villa. "Ah-choo..." As soon as Suzy entered, she sneezed, causing Allen Wheeler, who followed her in, to become instantly anxious. "Boss, did you catch a cold?" Sniffling slightly, Suzy sneezed again. "It's nothing." "You've sneezed twice; you definitely have a cold!" Allen set down Suzy's luggage and hurried to the kitchen. "I need to make you some ginger tea right away." Watching Allenâs worried and hurried back, Suzy thought of Dylanâs cold words, "I already told you that her life or death is none of my business!" People who cared about her would worry over something as small as a sneeze. Those who didnât wouldnât have flinched even if they saw her hangingâtheyâd think she was just swinging. Three years ago, she had done everything to marry Dylan, to repay a perceived debt, she had toned down her personality, and humbled herself to the dust, working tirelessly. Thinking back, she realized she must have been out of her mind. Even if he had saved her three years ago, it was her first time, and he really wasnât at a loss. The notion that she owed him anything was utterly absurd. Pushing down the pain in her heart, Suzy stopped Allen at the kitchen door. "Forget the ginger tea. However, the Goodwin family in North Avenue could use your help as a facilitator." "The Goodwin family?" Suzyâs eyes narrowed slightly. "The murderer who murdered my parents, and my own attacker three years ago, might both be connected to the Goodwin family." Upon hearing this, Allenâs eyebrows furrowed deeply. "The Goodwins are influential in politics, and it seems the player behind the scenes is bigger than we imagined. Martin Goodwin, the head of the Goodwin family, has been ill lately, searching for a renowned doctor. Iâll pass on the news that you are the miracle doctor to them soon." Ten minutes later, Allen told Suzy, "Boss, the Goodwin family needs you urgently; they want you to come as soon as possible, but your injuries..." In fact, the moment Allen saw Suzy, he wanted to ask about her injuries and where she had been these past three years. Since she was alive, why hadnât she contacted them? But she never mentioned it, and knowing her temperament, he didnât dare pry. Suzy knew Allen was worried about her, but she didnât want to bring up anything related to Dylan with anyone. It was all over, and she would never contact him in the future; there was simply no need to let them know. Yet, saying nothing would certainly not ease his concerns. After a moment, she explained to Allen, "I took care of a dog for three years, but it never grew tame; it bit me instead." Allenâs anger flared immediately. "Where is that beast? I'll knock his teeth out." No one could harm his boss and get away with it! "Heâs dead!" Dead in her heart. "Tell the Goodwin family that Iâll be there two days from now, four in the afternoon!" Two days passed in a blink. At Wright Corporation, in the CEO's office. Dylan looked up as his assistant, Desmond Hill, entered. "Didnât find her?" âThere isnât a doctor who knows how to treat the poisoning,â Desmond said hesitantly, then added, âAs for Mrs. Wright, sheâs an orphan with no family. Everything sheâs done over the past three years has been connected to you, and nothing suspicious has come up⌠so we havenât been able to locate her either.â "It had been two days..." Was she intentionally hiding, or could she have... Realizing he was actually worried about her, Dylan's brows knitted together. "Intensify the search!" "Yes!" Standing by the floor-to-ceiling windows, Dylan gazed into the distance, his eyes flickering with a complexity even he hadnât noticed. "Suzy, you better pray you can hide forever.â "Sir..." Desmond, who had left just a minute earlier, hurried back in without even knocking, breathless with urgency. "Look at this!" Dylan, thinking there might be news of Suzy, took the phone and saw... "Red Falcon?" "A miracle doctor in the alternative medicine world!" Desmond exclaimed, excitedly. "Sheâs renowned for curing all kinds of poisons and diseases. People call her 'The Healer of Legends,' known for treating even the most severe injuries. She disappeared three years ago, and everyone thought she was gone for good, but now sheâs reappeared. âI've just received reliable information that today at four in the afternoon, she'll be visiting the Goodwin family in North Avenue to treat Mr. Martin. Sir, perhaps Miss Wheeler could try her treatment?" "The Goodwin family at North Avenue.." The fact that the Goodwins had called upon her was proof enough of her skill. "Go invite her!" After a pause, Dylan stopped Desmond at the door. "I'll go myself." Chapter 0003 North Avenue was an hour and a half drive from South Avenue. Suzy arrived at the Goodwin familyâs estate as promised in disguise. Using the pretense of treating an illness, she took the opportunity to hypnotize Martin. Unfortunately, she didnât manage to extract any useful information. As she left, deep in thought, a sudden pain shot through her forehead as she bumped into someone... âSorryâŚâ The apology got stuck in her throat the moment she recognized the face. Dylan? What was he doing here? It was truly a case of enemies crossing paths in the most unexpected of places! In less than two seconds, Suzy tore her gaze away and walked off, her expression completely indifferent. Dylan stood there, confused. She was about to apologize to him, so why did her attitude change the moment she saw him? Especially how she suddenly looked at himâit was as if they were mortal enemies. Dylan turned, watching the direction she went, his eyes narrowing. That figure looked just like Suzy⌠âMr. Wright, weâre so honored by your presence. Iâm sorry for not greeting you properlyâŚâ The voice of the Goodwin familyâs butler snapped Dylan out of his thoughts. By the time he glanced back, the woman had disappeared. Following the butler to see Martin, Dylan found the old man looking healthy, his complexion rosy, as if fully recovered from his illness. Dylan wasted no time and stated his reason for coming. But the reply was unexpected: the miracle doctor had just left, barely moments ago. Dylan was speechless. The woman he had run into earlier, the one with freckles all over her faceâwas she the miracle doctor? Knowing it was already too late to chase after her, Dylan quickly bid farewell to Martin. To his surprise, the woman hadnât left yet. Seeing her car just start to pull away, Dylan hurried over, âWait a secâ" But his words were drowned out by the roar of the engine. Now he was almost certainâthis woman had something against him. He quickly got into his car and chased after her. As soon as Suzy saw the black luxurious car speeding after her in the rearview mirror, her brow furrowed. Did he recognize her? She wasnât bragging, but her disguise was so flawless that not even her parents, if they were alive, would be able to recognize her. And Dylan? After three years of marriage, he had barely ever looked at her properly. So why was he chasing her so relentlessly? Just because she hadnât apologized earlier? With a cold smirk tugging at her lips, Suzy floored the gas pedal. "You owe me a lot more than I owe you!" The red car shot forward like a bolt of lightning. "Interesting." Dylanâs eyes narrowed as he accelerated. The red car and the black one sped through the winding mountain roads, like two fierce predators locked in a relentless chase. At first, Dylan was confident in his driving skillsâhe was a man, after all. How could he not catch up to a woman? But in the final stretch, the woman suddenly did a sharp U-turn and drove straight toward him. He quickly jerked the steering wheel to the right, barely avoiding a collision. However, the speed was too fast, and his car skidded into the mountainside. Though he wasnât hurt, his car stalled out. Through the windshield, his eyes met hers. She flashed him a playful smile, then gave him a thumbs-down, taunting him with a level of arrogance that sent his blood boiling. Moments later, she reversed her car with impressive speed, leaving him in the dust. "Red FalconâŚ" She wasnât just a miracle doctor; she was also an ace racer. Although she wasnât good-looking, her talents were undeniable. But why did she harbor such animosity toward him? Back at the office, the first thing Dylan did was instruct Desmond, "Dig into everything you can find on Red Falconâleave no detail out." He had to find out what heâd done to make her so mad at him. Half an hour later, Desmond returned with a defeated expression. "Sir, all the information on Red Falcon is locked behind a heavily encrypted firewall. Weâve switched through several tech experts, but none of them have been able to break in." "...Send me the link." ⌠"Boss, someoneâs digging into your files!" Allen handed his laptop to Suzy, who was lounging on the couch watching a show. "It started about half an hour ago. Theyâve cycled through a few people, and the latest one is pretty skilled. Iâm having a hard time keeping them at bay." "Is that so?" Suzy's eyes narrowed, and she sat up. "Let me handle this." Her fingers flew across the keyboard, lines of code flashing rapidly on the screen. Within minutes, she closed the laptop and tossed it back onto the couch, stretching lazily. "Letâs go grab something to eat." Meanwhile, back at his desk, Dylan stared at the screen in disbelief as the code on his computer spelled out one wordâ LOSER! He nearly smashed the computer in frustration. Watching the taunting word flash on the screen and feeling the stormy tension building around Dylan, Desmond didnât dare breathe too loudly. Their bossâ hacking skills were top-tier, not just in South Avenue but globally, so how could this happen? Noticing Dylanâs darkening expression, Desmond hesitated for a moment before offering a timid suggestion. "Sir, they probably donât know itâs you, so Iâm sure they didnât mean it personally..." "Get out!" "Yes, sir!" "Wait." Dylan stopped Desmond as he was about to leave. "Use the contact information the Goodwins provided. Offer her ten million for the treatment." The main goal was to get her to cure Anneâs poisoningâeverything else was secondary. A shadow flickered in Dylanâs eyes as he quickly formulated his next move. ⌠Just as the food was being placed on the table, Allenâs phone rang. It was from an unfamiliar number. He glanced across the table at Suzy, who nodded, signaling him to answer. He pressed the speakerphone button as he picked up. "Is this the miracle doctor, Red Falcon?" It was Desmond! Suzyâs hand froze mid-motion as she was about to pick up her fork. Was Dylan really that determined to get an apology from her? Naturally, Dylan, who had never tasted defeat, couldnât swallow his pride after being repeatedly taunted by her. Not wanting to get further entangled with him, Suzy motioned for Allen to hang up. "Iâm sorry, youâve got the wrong person." Just as Allen was about to end the call, Desmond quickly interjected, "Wait, please! I have a patient who desperately needs the miracle doctorâs help. Weâre willing to offer ten million as payment for the treatment!" Suzy paused, her expression unreadable. So that was the real reason behind Dylanâs relentless pursuit? Their encounter at the Goodwin family estate hadnât been a coincidence after all? For Dylan to personally reach out and offer such a high fee... Concerned that it might involve Grace Lawson, Dylanâs grandmother, who had always been kind to her, Suzy used lip movements to instruct Allen to ask for more details. Allen asked, "Can you provide some basic information about the patient? You can send it to my phone." Hearing some progress, Desmond eagerly replied, "Of course, Iâll send it right away." As soon as the call ended, Desmond sent over all the relevant details. The moment Suzy saw that the patient was Anne, she casually tossed the phone back to Allen. "Tell them I donât treat for money. I believe in destiny, and this patient is not fated to meet me.â Allen blinked in confusion and thought, "Since when do you have such rules?" Though Allen sensed something off about Suzyâs expression, he didnât ask any questions. Instead, he simply relayed her message to Desmond. Upon receiving the response, Desmond immediately reported Suzyâs message to Dylan. Dylanâs eyes narrowed slightly. "Add another ten million!" He couldn't believe she'd turn down that much money. Suzy sneered. "Twenty million?" A twisted urge suddenly gripped herâshe wanted to test just how much Dylan truly valued Anne. Her eyes narrowed slyly. "Tell them Iâll make a house call for two hundred million. Not a penny less." Chapter 0004 "Two hundred million?" Dylan barely hesitated. "Deal!" Three years ago, after being drugged during an ambush, a girl saved his life despite being seriously injured herself. After a night together, the girl disappeared by morning. It had been too dark that night to see her face clearly, but he vaguely remembered a faint, distinctive scent on her, like some kind of herbal remedy. After investigating, he traced it back to the Wheeler family. Anne had been frail and sickly since childhood and had relied on natural remedies for years. According to her, on the day he was attacked, she was kidnapped and managed to escape. Along the way, she encountered him. Ignoring her own safety, she dragged her wounded body and gave herself to him to save his life. At the time, she was only eighteen. Anne saved his life, and he promised her marriage. Even though his grandmother, Grace, disapproved, he vowed never to marry anyone else. Yet out of nowhere, Suzy showed up. She orchestrated a heroic act, earning Graceâs favor, and step by step, manipulated Grace into forcing him to marry her. With her goal achieved, Suzy saw Anne as a thorn in her side, constantly picking fights. Lately, things had escalated â first, a kidnapping, and now poisoning... Two hundred million, or even more â as long as someone was willing to help save Anne, heâd pay any price. He owed Anne too much. ⌠Meanwhile, Allen immediately informed Suzy after receiving a response. "Boss, they've agreed." He agreed⌠It was impossible not to feel something. After all, she had loved Dylan for so many years. She couldnât help but wonder, if it were her who was poisoned, would he do the same? No, he wouldnât! Heâd wish for her death as soon as possible. That way, no one would stand in the way of him and Anne ever again. Suzy clenched her fists, suppressing the aching pain in her heart. "Deal!" It was two hundred million â since he was foolish and rich, why shouldnât she take advantage of it? But... Who exactly poisoned Anne? What was the motive? And as for the previous kidnapping, after investigating all this while, there was still no answer. There must be a connection somewhere. It seemed a visit to the hospital tonight was necessary, to first determine the exact poison in Anne's system before following the clues. That night, when all was quiet, Suzy, dressed in a nurse uniform prepared by Allen, sneaked into Anneâs hospital room. The girl on the bed had a ghostly pale face and weak breathing. Dylan would probably be heartbroken seeing her like this. It was said that Anne had once saved Dylan, which was why he held her dear. In fact, they were quite similar; Suzy also fell in love with Dylan on the night he saved her. A self-mocking smile curled her lips. Suzy had schemed to marry him, thinking he was single. After all, rumors had it that he was indifferent to women and devoted only to his work, to the extent that his grandmother who raised him suspected he was gay! It was only after marriage that Suzy found out he had a girl he liked; it was just that Grace did not approve of Anne, so she never mentioned Anne in front of Suzy. Three years ago, while Suzy thought she was using Grace, wasnât Grace actually using her too? Remembering that shrewd old lady, Suzy chuckled softly. "Age certainly does sharpen the wit!" Not wanting to waste more time, Suzy reached out to check Anneâs condition. Her brows furrowed instantly; her condition appeared to be⌠Indeed it was! Her expression suddenly changed. Suzy pulled out a syringe from her pocket, aimed the needle at a vein in Anne's left arm, and was about to insert it when her hand was suddenly grabbed. Using all her strength, Anne clutched the intruder's wrist. "Who sent you?" The medical staff in and out of this hospital room were carefully selected, and Anne knew each one well. The moment she saw the person in front of her, she knew something was off. Unimpressed by Anneâs awakening, Suzy shook off her hand and continued her previous action. As the sharp needle tip was about to pierce into her arm, Anne suddenly pushed Suzy and quickly sat up from the bed, reaching for the call button by the bedside. However, before she could touch it, her arm was pinned against the wall. Though most of the intruder's face was hidden by a mask, the chilling glare from her eyes was like a sword laced with murderous intent. Anne became even more panicked. âI am Dylanâs most beloved woman. If you dare hurt me, he will never forgive youâŚâ âSlap!â After slapping Anne, Suzy grabbed her chin. "If you donât want to die, keep quiet!" Her face stung from the slap, and her jaw felt like it was about to be crushed. However, from the intruder's words, it seemed she wasnât here to murder her. Anneâs fear slightly subsided, and she stopped struggling. Seeing her finally quiet down, Suzy released her chin. After drawing the blood with the needle and finishing her task, Suzy removed the needle and left, not caring about the still bleeding puncture site. Having suffered such a grievance, Anne was not about to let it go. She quickly pressed the call button, âSomeone is trying to murderâŚâ Before she could finish, her throat was grabbed. The woman's speed was alarmingly fast, shocking Anne. âI didnât want to murder youâŚâ Suzyâs fingers tightened inch by inch around her neck. âBut since you seem tired of living, Iâll grant your wish!â This wasnât just a threat; Suzy genuinely intended to murder Anne. Indeed, Anne was no saint; she was quite skilled in manipulating situations. Over the past three years, she had framed others multiple times. Suzy had been patient only because Anne was Dylanâs favorite. Now... She didnât care about who he loved. Furthermore, Anne owed Suzy that much. If it hadnât been for her protection, Anne wouldnât have survived long enough for Dylan to rescue her from the kidnappers. Seeing Anne's face turn red with difficulty breathing and veins popping on her forehead, the murderous intent in Suzy's eyes deepened. Just a bit more pressure and Anneâs life would be over! Suddenly, the sound of footsteps approached. They were distant, inaudible to most, but Suzy, with her exceptional hearing, could hear them clearly. It was Dylan! She felt a bit disgusted by how familiar she was with his steps. As the footsteps grew closer, Suzyâs gaze hardened, and with a swift motion, she knocked Anne unconscious with a sharp blow to the neck. After all, Anne was worth two hundred millionâthere was no reason to turn down that kind of money. Shifting her gaze slightly, Suzy quickly opened the door to the balcony and then slipped into the bathroom. The next second, the door was pushed open. Dylan entered, his eyes falling on the open sliding door to the balcony. His brows furrowed as he instructed Desmond, who followed behind him. "Close the door..." His words were cut off by a startled cry. "Ah..." Anne, who had thought she was doomed, suddenly opened her eyes, staring blankly at the ceiling, gasping for air in terror. "Did I wake you? I've been too busy these last few days to visit. How are you feeling?" Dylan walked to the bedside, noticing her distressed expression. "Did you have a nightmare?" Turning and seeing Dylan, Anne immediately threw herself into his arms, showing him the marks on her neck and the needle mark on her arm, "Mr. Dylan, just now, a woman disguised as a nurse drew my blood and then tried to strangle me." Chapter 0005 Dylanâs eyes shifted back to the balcony, giving Desmond a subtle look. Desmond searched the area and reported, âSir, thereâs no one here.â âCall the doctor.â Dylanâs gaze turned cold. "And tell the hospital to lock down all exits. Not a soul steps foot inside or out without my explicit authorization." âYes, sir!â After the doctorâs examination confirmed that only blood had been drawn and nothing else had been done to her, Anne finally let out a sigh of relief. The attackerâs identity was still a mystery, and with her current vulnerable condition, it was hard not to feel afraid. But what puzzled her was why someone would go through so much effort just to draw her blood. However... With a shift in her gaze, Anneâs eyes welled up with tears. "Mr. Dylan, thereâs something Iâve hesitated to say, but sheâs really gone too far this time." It was a perfect opportunity to throw dirt on Suzyâs name, and Anne couldnât let it slip by. Gripping his hand, her tears flowed even harder. "Iâm already half-dead from the poisonâwhy wonât she leave me alone? Does she think Iâm not dying fast enough, so she sends someone in the middle of the night to drain my blood?" Dylan's expression darkened, but he didnât respond directly. He simply said, "Weâve already found someone who can cure you with an antidote.â Anneâs eyes flashed briefly with surprise, though she quickly masked it. "But... I was told that this poison has no cure.â âThereâs always someone better who can treat you. Weâve arranged everything with a miracle doctor named Red Falcon, who will help detoxify you. Youâll be cured soon.â âRed Falcon?â Anne questioned, trying to hide her unease. âIs she really that skilled?â âYes, Mr. Martin from the North Avenue had a terminal illness, and thanks to her treatment, he made a full recovery.â Dylanâs voice softened. âDonât worry, Iâll handle everything.â For Anne, it was always âIâll handle everythingâŚâ For Suzy, it was always âThis doesnât concern meâŚâ Listening from her hiding spot in the bathroom, Suzy had convinced herself she'd be numb to Dylan's tenderness toward Anne. Yet, as his gentle tone drifted through the door, she felt an unexpected pang. Despite everything, it still stung. Tired of eavesdropping, Suzy silently opened the window and leaped out. Like a bat in the night, she vanished without a traceâso swiftly, no one would ever know. At the hospital entrance. Growing anxious from waiting, Allen was just about to go in and help when he finally spotted Suzy emerging. He hurried out of the car and rushed over, giving her a quick once-over. âBoss, are you okay?â âIâm fine.â Suzy kept walking without stopping. âStop worrying about nothing.â However, Allen sensed something was off. Logically, with the kind of influence Suzy had, Allen knew he shouldnât be worried. But the ambush three years ago had left him deeply scarred. He could never forget the moment he saw her fall off that cliff with his own eyes. For three years, Allen had hated himself for not protecting Suzy, failing in his duty as her subordinate. So, when Suzy called to inform him she was still alive, Allen swore that, this time, he would give up his life if necessary to keep her from getting hurt again. He wanted to handle this mission for her, but she wouldnât allow it. From the rearview mirror, Allen glanced at Suzy, who had been silent since getting into the car. He couldnât shake the feeling that there was something complicated between her and Anne. Allen realized he needed to find someone to discreetly investigate the matter. His gaze hadnât fully returned to the road when Suzy caught him staring. He cleared his throat awkwardly. âBoss, did you find out what kind of poison it was?â Suzy paused briefly. âItâs Scarlet Veil.â âScreechâŚâ The brakes squealed as Allen slammed on them in shock. âScarlet Veil? But that was your masterpiece! Didnât you destroy it along with the formula three years ago?â âThereâs one last dose⌠with the Harlow family.â âClaude Harlow?â Allenâs eyes widened. âWhat kind of grudge could he possibly have against a young girl to go this far? Everyone knows that poison starts off mild, but once it hits again⌠sheâll be no better than a dog in heatâŚâ Suzy had created the sinister poison to deal with a monster in the past. Even she was confused. The Harlows and Wrights had no bad blood between them. In fact, the Harlows even had business dealings with the Wheeler family. If Claude was behind the poisoning, sheâd rule him out as a suspect in the earlier kidnapping. That much was certain. There was no way Claude would have, or could have, let Suzy come so close to dying in that explosion. No matter who it was, she was determined to find them. It wasnât about proving her innocence to Dylan. She simply wouldnât swallow that humiliation! Whether it was the kidnapping, the ambush from three years ago, or the one responsible for murdering her familyâshe wasnât going to let any of them off the hook. Her eyes burned with hatred when Allen suddenly handed her the phone. "Boss, Dylan sent a message. He wants to arrange the treatment as soon as possible." Thinking of that deceitful man and his tenderness, she said, "Tell him the dealâs off." Earning two hundred million was tempting, but what intrigued her more was seeing what would happen to Anne after the second wave of poisoning hit her. ⌠In the corridor outside Anne's hospital room. Though Dylanâs face remained expressionless, his eyes were as cold as ice. "What did you just say? Repeat it." Desmond, bracing himself, repeated, "Red Falcon said the deal is off." He regretted it now. He never should have mentioned Red Falcon to Dylan that day. This Red Falconâfirst she demanded an outrageous sum, and now she was backing out. Didnât she know just how bad Dylanâs temper was? Suppressing his rage, Dylan growled. "Give me the phone." Desmond quickly handed it over. Dylan dialed the number. It rang but went unanswered. Once, twice, and again, until his patience wore thin. Finally, a soft voice came through, "Sorry, I was busy." Desmond quickly wiped the sweat that had started to drip down his forehead. Thank goodness the call got answeredâotherwise, his phone wouldâve met a tragic end. The phone itself wasnât worth much, but the data stored inside was priceless to him. âIâm looking for Red Falcon,â Dylan said bluntly. âSheâs not available. If thereâs something you need, you can tell me, and Iâll pass it along.â Dylanâs eyes narrowed. âThe price was already agreed upon. Why cancel now?â âPlease, Mr. Wright, stay calm. Itâs true that canceling the arrangement on our side is a bit abrupt, and we apologize. But we have our reasons. Do you think weâd walk away from two hundred million so easily if we didnât have a reason to?â âWhatâs the reason?â âThatâs not something we can share with you, Mr. Wright. I suggest you find someone else quickly before Miss Anne misses the best window for treatment.â Without waiting for a response, Allen hung up the phone. The next second⌠Smash! Desmond watched in despair as yet another phone met its fate. His heart shattered even more than the phone. âFind her!â Dylan ordered, his voice cold. He was determined to see what kind of game she was playing now. Desmond wanted to say, âEasier said than done.â Not just Red Falcon, but also Suzy, who had been missing without a trace for so long. Why did it seem like every woman around him enjoyed playing hide and seek? Inside the hospital room, Anne had been listening to the commotion outside. Once she heard Dylan and Desmond leave, she quickly locked the door and pulled out another phone hidden under her pillow. âDylan found someone to help me get an antidote, but I overheard that they backed out.â Anne sneered. âHe keeps saying how great this Red Falcon is, but it seems sheâs all talk. She mustâve realized she couldnât actually cure me, so she ran at the last minute.â âIf she created the poison, she definitely knows how to cure it.â âSo, you know her? If she made the poison, why would she suddenly refuse to help? I overheard Dylan offering two hundred million for her treatment!â Since Dylan was willing to spend that much money on her, Anne could tell just how important she was to Dylan. The truth didnât matter. Once she solidified her place as Dylanâs wife, even if he discovered she wasn't his true savior, his feelings for her would shield her from consequences. There was a long pause on the other end of the line before the person finally responded, âIsnât this exactly what you wanted? Youâll soon face the second wave of the poison. I hope all your wishes come true.â âThanks for the good wishes. Once Iâve secured Dylan, thereâll be plenty of rewards for you.â ⌠The quickest way to find out if Claude was behind the poisoning was to ask him directly. Even though it seemed unlikely, Suzy decided she needed to meet with him. After all, they hadnât seen each other in three years. So, the first thing she did upon returning to Hillside Villa was to ask Allen to look into Claudeâs whereabouts. Before she could finish eating an apple, Allen had the information ready. âClaudeâs on a business trip to Montara.â âBook a flight.â The next morning, Suzy boarded a plane bound for Montara. Allen wanted to accompany Suzy, but she refused, assigning him other tasks to handle. It had been three years since sheâd been on a plane, and as she gazed at the clouds outside the window, Suzy felt a sense of freedom, like a bird returning to the sky. For those three years, her life had revolved entirely around Dylan. In her attempt to be the perfect wife, she barely left the house and spent her days thinking about how to take better care of him. Every morning at five, she got up to make him breakfast. She hand-washed all his clothes, even his socks and underwear. While he was at work, she counted the minutes, waiting like a lovesick fool for his return. Looking back now, she couldnât believe she had lived like that for three years. What on earth had she been thinking? After landing, she went straight to Claudeâs hotel, only to be told, âMr. Claude checked out early this morning.â Suzy was speechless. She had planned on surprising him. Oh well, since she was already here, she might as well treat it like a vacation. Suzy spent the day shopping, buying plenty of things before catching her flight back home. She had to admit that being single has its perks! The farther away men were, the better. At the airport, Suzy spotted Allen waiting from a distance. âOver hereâŚâ Her smile froze instantly. Dylan? Surrounded by a crowd, Dylan was heading straight in her direction. Suzy quickly turned her back and thought, âAnother unlucky day.â It wasnât that she feared him; she just didnât want to see him. And she was pretty sure he didnât want to see her either. To avoid mutual disdain, Suzy slipped into the restroom. Dylan scanned the area, but there was no sign of Suzy. âAre you sure she was on this flight?â Desmond, sweating profusely, stammered, âIâve double-checked several times. Mrs. Wright was definitely on this flight from Montara.â Desmond could hardly contain his excitement when he first got the news. Suzyâs disappearance, Red Falconâs cancellation, and the woman who had infiltrated Anneâs hospital room only to escape under full lockdownâthose three women had pushed Dylan to the brink of an explosion. Thank goodness there was finally news about Suzy. Otherwise, if Dylan exploded, Desmond would be the first casualty. Wiping sweat from his forehead, Desmond said, "Iâve got people stationed at every exit. We should be able to find her soon." Half an hour later... Dylanâs voice turned icy. âWhere is she?â Desmond wished he could cut out his own tongue. Sometimes, it was best not to speak too soon! He couldnât understand how Suzy, an ordinary person, was so good at slipping away. âDesmond, your performance is really slipping. If this keeps up, I think it might be time to send you to South Allica for some additional training,â Dylan said coldly before walking off. It had been half an hour, and Suzy had probably already made her escape. The fact that she could disappear under these circumstances made it clear that he had seriously underestimated her abilities. Outside the airport, a line of sleek black cars was parked, with the leading one looking particularly impressive. Desmond jogged ahead, opening the door for Dylan, who was just about to step into the car when, out of the corner of his eye, he spotted something⌠In an instant, Dylan turned, took several swift strides, and grabbed the shoulder of a woman standing nearby. hapter 0006 When Dylan spun the woman around to face him, his expression darkened instantly, like a shadow passing over his features. From behind, she had looked strikingly similar to Suzy, but her front was a different story. Her appearance was plain, a far cry from Suzyâs striking beauty. The fact that heâd even momentarily considered Suzy attractive only made Dylan's scowl deepen. "Hey, handsome, your approach is pretty unique. I like it," the woman said with a playful smile, leaning toward him. "I live close by. How about we..." "Iâve got the wrong person," Dylan cut her off. As he stepped back, the woman nearly stumbled but wasnât discouraged. She moved closer again. "Donât be shy. Weâre both adults here. Whatâs there to hold back?" With a sharp glare, Dylan signaled to Desmond, who quickly stepped in to handle the situation. Once the two of them had driven off, Suzy slipped into Allenâs car, slowly peeling off the human-skin mask from her face. She had thought their encounter was a coincidence, but it turned out Dylan had deliberately come looking for her. But why? After all the commotion, what was he trying to achieve? She had already stepped aside. What more could he possibly want? Allen seemed equally puzzled. His curiosity finally got the better of him, and he couldnât help but ask, âBoss, I just found out... Dylan wasnât looking for Red Falcon. Heâs been trying to find his missing wifeâŚâ "Yeah, thatâs me," Suzy said calmly. There was no point in hiding it anymore. "...Youâre married?" Allen was visibly stunned. "Was. I got married, then divorced." "Was it because of Anne?" Allenâs tone was laced with frustration. The fact that Dylan was willing to spend two hundred million on Anne was a clear sign of their deep connection. Unable to hold back, Allen muttered a curse under his breath. "Like mother, like daughter. Sheâs just as rotten as her mom." Suzy immediately caught the significance of his words. "You and the Wheeler family..." "I have nothing to do with the Wheelers," Allen said sharply, gripping the steering wheel. It was a painful chapter of Allenâs life, one he had never shared with Suzy. He had always planned to take his revenge quietly, without burdening her with his past. After all, Suzy had her own scores to settle. Anneâs mother, Helena Fox, and his own were cousins. An unexpected tragedy left her an orphan, and his grandmother, moved by sympathy, took Helena in. Little did she know, she was nurturing a wolf in sheepâs clothing. On the surface, Helena seemed sweet and caring, but beneath that facade, she was as cold and calculating. When Allen was eight, he walked in on his father, William Wheeler, having an affair with Helena while his mother was away on a business trip â and in his mother's own bed, no less. Not long after, they drove his mother to her death and tried to burn him alive. He suffered severe burns across most of his body. If it hadnât been for Suzy saving him while he was trying to escape, he wouldnât even be alive today. She nursed him back to health, gave him a new face, and turned him into the person he was now â someone William wouldnât recognize, even if they stood face to face. Suzy could tell at a glance that Allen was lying. Since he didnât want to delve deeper into the subject, she didnât push him further. Everyone has their own secrets. She shifted the conversation. "Did you take care of what I asked before I left?" Allen opened the glove compartment and pulled out a blue folder. "The investigation confirms that thereâs never been any conflict between the Goodwin family and the Turner family, not now or three years ago. And there's no way the Goodwins could learn about your real identity." Suzy had once been the heiress of the Frosts, the wealthiest family. Years ago, a brutal assassination wiped out her entire family in a single night, from relatives to servantsâa total of thirty lives, all murdered. The murderers were beyond cruel. Everyone believed that no one from the Frost family survived, unaware that someone had risked their life to save Suzy. For years, she had kept her identity hidden. Apart from Allen, Raven Murray, and Riley White, no one else knew who she really was. And none of them would ever betray her. Suzy opened the folder, flipping through the pages. She found nothing out of the ordinary; everything seemed in order. Yet, three years ago, she distinctly remembered the kidnappers mentioning the Goodwin family. Closing the folder, she tossed it aside casually. "You can dodge the first blow, but not the second." "Yes, if the Goodwin family is really involved, no matter how powerful they are, theyâll pay the price in full," Allen said before asking, "What about Claude?" Suzy leaned back in her chair, her eyes half-closed. "He returned early. I didnât get a chance to see him." "So, are we heading to the Harlow family next?" "Weâll see." After all the running around, Suzy was feeling tired. Sheâd head home for some rest first. Besides, Anneâs second wave of poisoning was set for tonight. Suzy needed to be well-rested to fully enjoy what was about to unfold. ⌠That night, at the hospital. Anne had been unusually thirsty since dinner. She drank plenty of water, yet the discomfort only worsened. She knew it was timeâthe second wave of the poison was hitting. In a panic, she called Dylan. "Mr. Dylan, where are you? I feel so awful..." she moaned as soon as the line connected, not waiting for a response. But it wasnât Dylan who answeredâit was his sister, Diana Wright. "Feeling awful? Call a doctor. Whatâs the point of calling my brother?" Diana had always disliked Anne. "And this is my final warning. My brother is married. Whether itâs me or my grandmother, weâve both accepted his wife as family. Youâd better stay far away from him." Anne wasnât fond of Diana either. "Oh really? You probably donât know that theyâre divorced, do you? And it was Suzy who initiated it." "You're lying!" Diana snapped, not believing a word. "My sister-in-law loves my brother. Thereâs no way she would ever ask for a divorce." "If you don't believe me, go ask your brother. And by the way, your dear sister-in-law has run off with some random guy and hasnât been seen since!" "You witch! Say one more bad word about her, and I'll rip your mouth apart..." Diana was in the middle of her furious rant when the phone was snatched away by Dylan. She looked up. "Brother, that witch Anne just said that your wife wants a divorce!" Dylanâs face was cold. "Watch your manners." "My manners? I rather show some manners to a dog than her! Now tell meâis Suzy divorcing you or not?" "Thatâs none of your business," he said, his dark eyes narrowing. "What you should be focused on is your exam tomorrow." With that, he turned to leave. Diana chased after him. "How can it not concern me? She saved Grandmaâs life! If it werenât for her, weâd both be orphans by now. You canât be so heartless..." No matter what she said, Dylan kept walking without a word. Frustrated, Diana stomped her foot. "Iâm calling Grandma!" Dylan knew Diana would go straight to Grace to complain. He couldnât figure out what spell Suzy had cast over both his grandmother and his sister. They adored her to the point of obsession. The only reason he hadnât launched a full search for Suzy was to avoid alarming Grace, who was currently enjoying her vacation overseas. But now it seemed the secret was out. With that thought, he redialed Anneâs number to find out how she knew about the divorce. "Mr. Dylan, Mr. Dylan..." The moment the call connected, Anneâs pained voice came through. "Whatâs wrong?" Dylan asked. "I feel terrible, I really feel like Iâm dying. Please come and save me!" "Donât panic. Iâm on my way." Chapter 0007 At the hospital. The moment Dylan stepped through the door, Anne threw herself into his arms. She clung to him like a rag doll, trembling against him. "Dylan, I feel awful... I feel so terrible..." âWhere does it hurt?â Dylan tried to push her away, but instead of letting go, she only clung tighter. "Everywhere..." Anne moaned, placing his hand on her front. "Especially here, it feels like bugs crawling under my skinâitching, unbearable. Mr. Dylan, please help me!" Her behavior was clearly not normal. âIâll call the doctor.â âNo, I donât want a doctor. I want you.â Anne clung to him like a vine, her hands restlessly undoing his shirt buttons. âPlease, Mr. Dylan, help me, I feel like Iâm dying. If you donât help me, I really will die...â As her fingers worked to undo the buttons, Dylan grabbed her wrists. âAnne, calm down...â âI canât calm down...â She leaned in, trying to kiss him, whispering his name over and over, âMr. Dylan, Mr. Dylan...â Just as she was about to succeed, Dylan forcefully pushed her away, sending her sprawling to the floor. His resistance spoke volumes, even if he hadnât said a word. A flicker of coldness flashed in Anneâs eyes, but when she looked up again, only sadness remained. âMr. Dylan, do you hate me?â Dylan didnât respond, nor did he help her up. Instead, he turned away. âIâm calling a doctor.â Anne wasnât about to let him leave. She scrambled to her feet and wrapped herself around him from behind. âI told you, I donât want a doctor. I want you! Please, Mr. Dylan, take me...â âAnne, something is clearly wrong with you,â Dylan said, his lips pressed into a thin line. âYou need to see a doctor.â âNo doctor can help me. Only you can save me.â As she spoke, Anne began stripping off her own clothes. âPlease, save me. Iâm begging you.â Just when Anne thought she had succeeded, a sharp pain shot through the back of her head, and everything went black as she crumpled to the floor. Watching Anne fall unconscious, Suzy, who had been hiding in the wardrobe, retracted the silver needle that she had prepared to throw. It wasnât about helping Dylanâit was simply that she couldnât bear to watch the scene unfold. It was the kind of thing that could make her eyes bleed. What she didnât expect was that Dylan would actually... Anne was supposed to be the woman he loved most. Suzy couldnât quite understand why he knocked her out. Dylan scooped Anne up in his arms and laid her back on the hospital bed before pressing the call button for the doctor. When the doctor arrived, Dylan briefly explained what had just happened. âIs this related to the poison in her system?â After a quick examination, the doctor nodded. âYes, youâre right. The poison in Miss Anneâs body is highly unusual. The last time the poison flared up, nothing like this happened. Now, itâs suddenly escalated, and who knows what could happen next. We need to detox her as soon as possible.â Dylan frowned and thought about what the doctor said. There had been no word from Red Falcon. Forget about tracking her downâshe hadnât even answered a single phone call. Desmond had been trying for days, but every attempt had gone unanswered. Detoxing Anne was proving to be no simple task. For the first time, he found himself played by a woman who had him in the palm of her hand. With his jaw tight, Dylan commanded, âFor now, find a way to alleviate her symptoms.â âThatâs going to be difficult...â the doctor began. âThis poison is something Iâve never encountered before, and I know nothing about it. Iâm concerned that if we administer the wrong medication, it could worsen her condition instead of easing it. So...â The doctor pressed his lips together before continuing, âAt this point, the safest way to relieve her symptoms might be for you, Mr. Wright, to help Miss Anne personally.â âAbsolutely not!â Dylan didnât hesitate. âIf it comes to that, weâll use sedatives.â âBut that might not be safe eitherâŚâ âAt least that way, sheâll maintain her dignity,â Dylan muttered, his voice low as he looked at Anne lying unconscious. âI canât let her lose her honor.â So, it wasnât that he wouldnât touch herâhe just didnât want her to be ridiculed. Suzyâs mind flashed back to a day when she had gone to his office to deliver some documents he had left behind at home. His employees had mistaken her for the maid, and from start to finish, he hadnât said a single word to correct them. They had been married for three years, and not once had he shown her the respect a wife deserved. Yet, when it came to Anne, he shielded her at every turn... Suzy didnât want to compare, but moments like this always brought it to the surface, no matter how hard she tried. Why was she even watching this pathetic drama? She really should find a way to slip out of here. And as luck would have it, the opportunity presented itself. The doctor left, and moments later, Dylanâs phone rang. Probably to avoid waking Anne, he stepped out of the room with his phone. Seizing her chance, Suzy quietly slipped out of the wardrobe. But just as she thought sheâd made her escape, Dylan walked back in. Their eyes locked. The air between them went dead silent. Suzy reacted quickly, darting toward the balcony. Dylan was just as fast, his long strides closing the distance. Just as she was about to leap off the balcony, his hand caught her shoulder, yanking her back. "Speak. Who sent you?" Suzy let out a cold laugh. "The hospital is a public place. Iâm allowed to come and go as I please. Do I need your permission now?" She wasnât worried at all about Dylan recognizing her voice. Before going out, she always used a voice-altering agentânot to hide from him specifically, but out of long-standing habit. Keeping her true identity hidden was a necessity. Though she hadnât gone so far as to disguise herself today, just a simple mask, there was no way Dylan would figure it out. She wouldnât give him the chance. "So, you think you can just come and go as you please, huh..." Dylan's grip on her shoulder tightened, his voice growing colder. "Since you're here, why don't you stay for a while?" "The windâs pretty strong tonightâcareful you donât bite your tongue!" Suzy swiftly dodged his grip, twisting out of his hold, and in one fluid motion, threw a sharp punch directly at him. But Dylan wasnât easy prey either, effortlessly dodging her attack. The two were locked in a fierce exchange, trading blow after blow, kick after kick. After dozens of moves, neither had the upper hand. Dylan chuckled, "Not bad." Suzy smirked. "You're not too shabby yourself, Mr. Wright." But then, his eyes flashed dangerously, and he switched tactics, aiming a series of strikes at her abdomen. Realizing his intent, Suzy shifted her defenses to protect her midsection, but in an unexpected move, Dylan suddenly diverted his hand, reaching for her mask instead. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=14871&ut | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 840 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=14871&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463457255_1100163098194107_747618574130675275_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=xXceajTttgkQ7kNvgHEVZNf&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYBFYIg2EE4R1Cc58YsI1W--S-AgMkvTyuULPIyHCuf4eg&oe=674804AF | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,438 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2511697}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đĽđĽClick to read the next chapter for freeđ | Chapter 0001 "Where's the patient's husband? Why hasn't he come yet? If he doesn't sign soon, it'll be too late,â a doctor urged. "The patient's husband refuses to come. He said to let her fend for herself,â a nurse replied. "Fend for herself..." When Suzy Frost, battered and barely clinging to life on the operating table, heard those words, something inside her stirred. Summoning the last of her strength, she slowly raised her hand. "Give me my phone..." Seeing her condition, the nurse quickly handed her the phone. Enduring excruciating pain, Suzy redialed the number that was almost etched into her brain. Just as the call was about to disconnect automatically, it finally went through. "I already told you that her life or death is none of my business!" the man on the other end spoke, his voice full of displeasure and impatience. "Dylan..." With every word Suzy spoke, a searing pain shot through her body, "After you took Anne away, the kidnappers detonated the bomb, and I was hurt, badly..." "Heh..." Before she could finish, the man on the other end let out a cold, dismissive chuckle. "Suzy, your acting is really improving. That weak little voice almost sounds convincing." "...I'm not lying to you, I really am hurt." "Is that so?" His tone grew even more scornful. "Then I wish you a speedy journey to death!" "Dylan..." "Beep beep beep..." Undeterred, Suzy tried calling again. "Sorry, the number you have dialed is unavailable.â The doctor, no longer able to stand by in silence, spoke gently, "Miss Frost, your condition is very serious. If you have any other family members present, they're also authorized to sign on your behalf.â What other family did she have? In this world, he was the only one who could sign the consent form. No matter how much it hurt, Suzy fought back the tears that streamed down her pale cheeks and asked the doctor with a faint smile, "Can I sign for myself?" "...Yes!" With her last ounce of strength, Suzy signed the consent form for the surgery. The operation lasted four hours and was finally over, but her condition worsened two hours post-surgery, and Suzy was moved to the ICU. For 24 hours, Suzy lay in a coma, unable to open her eyes, but her mind was alert, and she could hear the nurses discussing as they changed her bandages. "Even if the marriage is struggling, a husband can't just ignore his seriously injured wife! You wouldn't believe itâI called him several more times, but it just kept going to voicemail. Doesn't he care even a little?" lamented the nurse. "Here's some juicy gossip for youâthe CEO of Wright Corporation, Dylan Wright, who's rumored to be disinterested in women and hasn't married even at thirty, actually has a girlfriend, and she's hospitalized right here in our hospital. Heâs taking care of her around the clock in the VVIP ward on the top floor." "Itâs strange how different men can beâone boyfriend is incredibly devoted, and another is worse than an animal!" Little did she know, Dylan was so close, merely an inquiry away from knowing that Suzy hadn't lied to him. Yet, he refused to waste a moment on her, simply because... she wasn't worth it! Her eyes, tightly shut, suddenly flew open, startling the nurse who was wiping her face. "You're awake!" Once awake, Suzy was immediately given a thorough check-up and, finding no serious injuries, was moved to a regular room. That night, deep in the silence, despite still being confined to her bed, Suzy removed her oxygen mask and dragged her injured left leg, wounded in the explosion, to the top floor. Outside the hospital room, through the glass, Suzy watched as Dylan tenderly fed Anne Wheeler fruits by her bedside. Her fists tightened, but the anguish in her chest, like a swarm of needles pricking at her heart, didnât ease in the slightest. Three days ago, Suzy and Anne had been kidnapped together. Knowing how important Anne was to him, and despite their rivalry, Suzy had fiercely protected her. For two days and nights, Suzy was tortured by the kidnappers, bearing injuries all over her body, while Anne only suffered minor superficial wounds. Finally, Dylan came... "I choose to save Anne. As for Suzy, do as you please..." He was not only unconcerned about Suzy but even suspected that the kidnapping was a drama she had orchestrated herself. He had never trusted her! The intimate scene in the hospital room turned Suzy's eyes, once filled with love, utterly cold. "It's time to end this!" The moment Suzy turned to leave, Dylan felt something stir and whirled around, just as Anne let out a pained cry. Dylan quickly asked, "What's wrong?" Anne glanced at the door and then gave Dylan a weak smile. "I accidentally pulled at my wound." "Do you need a doctor?" "I'm not that frail," Anne replied teasingly. "But Mr. Dylan, you should head back. You've been with me day and night; Suzy must be upset again..." She paused, "Mr. Dylan, honestly, Suzy isn't wrong. No matter what our relationship was in the past, you are now her husband. No woman could tolerate her husband being so kind to another woman, so whatever she does is understandable. Don't be angry with her, otherwise, Madam Grace might hear of it..." Dylan cut her off, "It's getting late, you should sleep." "Mr. Dylan..." "Listen to me!" "Alright then." As Anne closed her eyes, Dylan glanced once more towards the door. Was it really... He remembered the weak voice on the phone that day. His lips tightened, and he stood up. Just as he moved, Anne grabbed his hand. "Mr. Dylan, my wound still hurts a bit. Could you blow on it for me?" A flicker of hesitation crossed his eyes before Dylan finally replied in a deep voice, "Alright." ⌠Suzy didn't return to her room but left the hospital directly. A taxi took her back to the villa where she had lived with Dylan for three years. As she walked inside from the front gate, memories of the past three years with Dylan flooded back like a tidal wave. It had been a blend of sour, bitter, and spicy moments in their life together, but sweetness was conspicuously absent. Dylan had always believed that Suzy married him as part of a calculated scheme. In truth, he wasn't entirely wrong; Suzy had indeed manipulated events to marry him, but her motives were never what he assumedâshe wasn't after his wealth or status; she was after the man himself. She had hoped that time would prove her true intentions, but three years had only intensified his disdain for her. She could never forget his cruel words, "Then I wish you a speedy journey to death!" "Dylan, you might not realize it, but I've actually been living in desperation all along. These past three years, I tried to climb out, to be normal, to be by your side, but you clearly didn't care. Since that's the case, I'll grant your wish." Taking what she needed and discarding what she didn't, Suzy left behind only the signed divorce papers and the keys to the villa. She walked away without a trace of longing, leaving nothing behind. Chapter 0002 The next morning, after spending yet another night at the hospital because Anne's pain had kept her from letting him leave, Dylan was finally on his way to the office. As they approached an intersection, he suddenly instructed the driver, "Take me to Bayview Heights." He had been wearing the same clothes for two days and needed a change. Otherwise, he wasnât too keen on returning to that place. Upon arriving at the villa, instead of the warm welcome he might have expected, he was met with an eerie silence and a chilling sight on the living room tableâa divorce agreement! Dylanâs gaze lingered on the signed divorce papers and the keys resting on top. With an unreadable expression, he paused for a moment before turning and heading upstairs. This was his first time entering Suzy's room. They usually lived separate lives, like oil and water, never mixing. The room was as clean and orderly as he expected. Over the past three years, she had personally taken care of his every need. It was hard to deny that in some ways, she had been a competent wife... Realizing his thoughts, Dylanâs brows furrowed, and he stepped forward to open her wardrobe. Clothes and jewelry, everything related to the Wright family were still there. Just as she had written in the divorce papers, she had left without taking anything, leaving with nothing but the clothes on her back. So, her cries of impending death that day, were they all just an act? He sneered. âSuzy, Iâm curious to see what game youâre playing this time.â His phone rang. Pulling it from his pocket and seeing the caller ID, a trace of disappointment flashed in his eyesâa feeling he might not have even noticed himself. âWhat is it?â On the other end, his assistant sounded particularly anxious, âSir, Miss Wheeler has had an accident!â His brow tightened immediately. âIâm on my way!â At the hospital, although bodyguards were posted at the entrance and surveillance revealed no suspicious individuals, Anne had somehow been poisoned and was in critical condition. Anne's primary doctor speculated, âMr. Wright, itâs highly likely that Miss Wheeler was poisoned before she even arrived at the hospitalâŚâ Anne cut off the doctor before he could finish, "Mr. Dylan, please don't blame Suzy. She was just trying to protect her marriage! If I had listened to her and left you as she suggested, none of this would have happened. So, this is all my own fault..." "At a time like this, you should be worried about yourself, not that ruthless woman," Dylan replied sharply. His eyes hardened as he pulled out his phone to call Suzy. "I'm sorry, the number you have dialed is unavailable..." The fury in his eyes could have swallowed someone whole. He coldly ordered his assistant, who was standing by, "Search the entire city for Suzy!" Meanwhile, at Hillside Villa. "Ah-choo..." As soon as Suzy entered, she sneezed, causing Allen Wheeler, who followed her in, to become instantly anxious. "Boss, did you catch a cold?" Sniffling slightly, Suzy sneezed again. "It's nothing." "You've sneezed twice; you definitely have a cold!" Allen set down Suzy's luggage and hurried to the kitchen. "I need to make you some ginger tea right away." Watching Allenâs worried and hurried back, Suzy thought of Dylanâs cold words, "I already told you that her life or death is none of my business!" People who cared about her would worry over something as small as a sneeze. Those who didnât wouldnât have flinched even if they saw her hangingâtheyâd think she was just swinging. Three years ago, she had done everything to marry Dylan, to repay a perceived debt, she had toned down her personality, and humbled herself to the dust, working tirelessly. Thinking back, she realized she must have been out of her mind. Even if he had saved her three years ago, it was her first time, and he really wasnât at a loss. The notion that she owed him anything was utterly absurd. Pushing down the pain in her heart, Suzy stopped Allen at the kitchen door. "Forget the ginger tea. However, the Goodwin family in North Avenue could use your help as a facilitator." "The Goodwin family?" Suzyâs eyes narrowed slightly. "The murderer who murdered my parents, and my own attacker three years ago, might both be connected to the Goodwin family." Upon hearing this, Allenâs eyebrows furrowed deeply. "The Goodwins are influential in politics, and it seems the player behind the scenes is bigger than we imagined. Martin Goodwin, the head of the Goodwin family, has been ill lately, searching for a renowned doctor. Iâll pass on the news that you are the miracle doctor to them soon." Ten minutes later, Allen told Suzy, "Boss, the Goodwin family needs you urgently; they want you to come as soon as possible, but your injuries..." In fact, the moment Allen saw Suzy, he wanted to ask about her injuries and where she had been these past three years. Since she was alive, why hadnât she contacted them? But she never mentioned it, and knowing her temperament, he didnât dare pry. Suzy knew Allen was worried about her, but she didnât want to bring up anything related to Dylan with anyone. It was all over, and she would never contact him in the future; there was simply no need to let them know. Yet, saying nothing would certainly not ease his concerns. After a moment, she explained to Allen, "I took care of a dog for three years, but it never grew tame; it bit me instead." Allenâs anger flared immediately. "Where is that beast? I'll knock his teeth out." No one could harm his boss and get away with it! "Heâs dead!" Dead in her heart. "Tell the Goodwin family that Iâll be there two days from now, four in the afternoon!" Two days passed in a blink. At Wright Corporation, in the CEO's office. Dylan looked up as his assistant, Desmond Hill, entered. "Didnât find her?" âThere isnât a doctor who knows how to treat the poisoning,â Desmond said hesitantly, then added, âAs for Mrs. Wright, sheâs an orphan with no family. Everything sheâs done over the past three years has been connected to you, and nothing suspicious has come up⌠so we havenât been able to locate her either.â "It had been two days..." Was she intentionally hiding, or could she have... Realizing he was actually worried about her, Dylan's brows knitted together. "Intensify the search!" "Yes!" Standing by the floor-to-ceiling windows, Dylan gazed into the distance, his eyes flickering with a complexity even he hadnât noticed. "Suzy, you better pray you can hide forever.â "Sir..." Desmond, who had left just a minute earlier, hurried back in without even knocking, breathless with urgency. "Look at this!" Dylan, thinking there might be news of Suzy, took the phone and saw... "Red Falcon?" "A miracle doctor in the alternative medicine world!" Desmond exclaimed, excitedly. "Sheâs renowned for curing all kinds of poisons and diseases. People call her 'The Healer of Legends,' known for treating even the most severe injuries. She disappeared three years ago, and everyone thought she was gone for good, but now sheâs reappeared. âI've just received reliable information that today at four in the afternoon, she'll be visiting the Goodwin family in North Avenue to treat Mr. Martin. Sir, perhaps Miss Wheeler could try her treatment?" "The Goodwin family at North Avenue.." The fact that the Goodwins had called upon her was proof enough of her skill. "Go invite her!" After a pause, Dylan stopped Desmond at the door. "I'll go myself." Chapter 0003 North Avenue was an hour and a half drive from South Avenue. Suzy arrived at the Goodwin familyâs estate as promised in disguise. Using the pretense of treating an illness, she took the opportunity to hypnotize Martin. Unfortunately, she didnât manage to extract any useful information. As she left, deep in thought, a sudden pain shot through her forehead as she bumped into someone... âSorryâŚâ The apology got stuck in her throat the moment she recognized the face. Dylan? What was he doing here? It was truly a case of enemies crossing paths in the most unexpected of places! In less than two seconds, Suzy tore her gaze away and walked off, her expression completely indifferent. Dylan stood there, confused. She was about to apologize to him, so why did her attitude change the moment she saw him? Especially how she suddenly looked at himâit was as if they were mortal enemies. Dylan turned, watching the direction she went, his eyes narrowing. That figure looked just like Suzy⌠âMr. Wright, weâre so honored by your presence. Iâm sorry for not greeting you properlyâŚâ The voice of the Goodwin familyâs butler snapped Dylan out of his thoughts. By the time he glanced back, the woman had disappeared. Following the butler to see Martin, Dylan found the old man looking healthy, his complexion rosy, as if fully recovered from his illness. Dylan wasted no time and stated his reason for coming. But the reply was unexpected: the miracle doctor had just left, barely moments ago. Dylan was speechless. The woman he had run into earlier, the one with freckles all over her faceâwas she the miracle doctor? Knowing it was already too late to chase after her, Dylan quickly bid farewell to Martin. To his surprise, the woman hadnât left yet. Seeing her car just start to pull away, Dylan hurried over, âWait a secâ" But his words were drowned out by the roar of the engine. Now he was almost certainâthis woman had something against him. He quickly got into his car and chased after her. As soon as Suzy saw the black luxurious car speeding after her in the rearview mirror, her brow furrowed. Did he recognize her? She wasnât bragging, but her disguise was so flawless that not even her parents, if they were alive, would be able to recognize her. And Dylan? After three years of marriage, he had barely ever looked at her properly. So why was he chasing her so relentlessly? Just because she hadnât apologized earlier? With a cold smirk tugging at her lips, Suzy floored the gas pedal. "You owe me a lot more than I owe you!" The red car shot forward like a bolt of lightning. "Interesting." Dylanâs eyes narrowed as he accelerated. The red car and the black one sped through the winding mountain roads, like two fierce predators locked in a relentless chase. At first, Dylan was confident in his driving skillsâhe was a man, after all. How could he not catch up to a woman? But in the final stretch, the woman suddenly did a sharp U-turn and drove straight toward him. He quickly jerked the steering wheel to the right, barely avoiding a collision. However, the speed was too fast, and his car skidded into the mountainside. Though he wasnât hurt, his car stalled out. Through the windshield, his eyes met hers. She flashed him a playful smile, then gave him a thumbs-down, taunting him with a level of arrogance that sent his blood boiling. Moments later, she reversed her car with impressive speed, leaving him in the dust. "Red FalconâŚ" She wasnât just a miracle doctor; she was also an ace racer. Although she wasnât good-looking, her talents were undeniable. But why did she harbor such animosity toward him? Back at the office, the first thing Dylan did was instruct Desmond, "Dig into everything you can find on Red Falconâleave no detail out." He had to find out what heâd done to make her so mad at him. Half an hour later, Desmond returned with a defeated expression. "Sir, all the information on Red Falcon is locked behind a heavily encrypted firewall. Weâve switched through several tech experts, but none of them have been able to break in." "...Send me the link." ⌠"Boss, someoneâs digging into your files!" Allen handed his laptop to Suzy, who was lounging on the couch watching a show. "It started about half an hour ago. Theyâve cycled through a few people, and the latest one is pretty skilled. Iâm having a hard time keeping them at bay." "Is that so?" Suzy's eyes narrowed, and she sat up. "Let me handle this." Her fingers flew across the keyboard, lines of code flashing rapidly on the screen. Within minutes, she closed the laptop and tossed it back onto the couch, stretching lazily. "Letâs go grab something to eat." Meanwhile, back at his desk, Dylan stared at the screen in disbelief as the code on his computer spelled out one wordâ LOSER! He nearly smashed the computer in frustration. Watching the taunting word flash on the screen and feeling the stormy tension building around Dylan, Desmond didnât dare breathe too loudly. Their bossâ hacking skills were top-tier, not just in South Avenue but globally, so how could this happen? Noticing Dylanâs darkening expression, Desmond hesitated for a moment before offering a timid suggestion. "Sir, they probably donât know itâs you, so Iâm sure they didnât mean it personally..." "Get out!" "Yes, sir!" "Wait." Dylan stopped Desmond as he was about to leave. "Use the contact information the Goodwins provided. Offer her ten million for the treatment." The main goal was to get her to cure Anneâs poisoningâeverything else was secondary. A shadow flickered in Dylanâs eyes as he quickly formulated his next move. ⌠Just as the food was being placed on the table, Allenâs phone rang. It was from an unfamiliar number. He glanced across the table at Suzy, who nodded, signaling him to answer. He pressed the speakerphone button as he picked up. "Is this the miracle doctor, Red Falcon?" It was Desmond! Suzyâs hand froze mid-motion as she was about to pick up her fork. Was Dylan really that determined to get an apology from her? Naturally, Dylan, who had never tasted defeat, couldnât swallow his pride after being repeatedly taunted by her. Not wanting to get further entangled with him, Suzy motioned for Allen to hang up. "Iâm sorry, youâve got the wrong person." Just as Allen was about to end the call, Desmond quickly interjected, "Wait, please! I have a patient who desperately needs the miracle doctorâs help. Weâre willing to offer ten million as payment for the treatment!" Suzy paused, her expression unreadable. So that was the real reason behind Dylanâs relentless pursuit? Their encounter at the Goodwin family estate hadnât been a coincidence after all? For Dylan to personally reach out and offer such a high fee... Concerned that it might involve Grace Lawson, Dylanâs grandmother, who had always been kind to her, Suzy used lip movements to instruct Allen to ask for more details. Allen asked, "Can you provide some basic information about the patient? You can send it to my phone." Hearing some progress, Desmond eagerly replied, "Of course, Iâll send it right away." As soon as the call ended, Desmond sent over all the relevant details. The moment Suzy saw that the patient was Anne, she casually tossed the phone back to Allen. "Tell them I donât treat for money. I believe in destiny, and this patient is not fated to meet me.â Allen blinked in confusion and thought, "Since when do you have such rules?" Though Allen sensed something off about Suzyâs expression, he didnât ask any questions. Instead, he simply relayed her message to Desmond. Upon receiving the response, Desmond immediately reported Suzyâs message to Dylan. Dylanâs eyes narrowed slightly. "Add another ten million!" He couldn't believe she'd turn down that much money. Suzy sneered. "Twenty million?" A twisted urge suddenly gripped herâshe wanted to test just how much Dylan truly valued Anne. Her eyes narrowed slyly. "Tell them Iâll make a house call for two hundred million. Not a penny less." Chapter 0004 "Two hundred million?" Dylan barely hesitated. "Deal!" Three years ago, after being drugged during an ambush, a girl saved his life despite being seriously injured herself. After a night together, the girl disappeared by morning. It had been too dark that night to see her face clearly, but he vaguely remembered a faint, distinctive scent on her, like some kind of herbal remedy. After investigating, he traced it back to the Wheeler family. Anne had been frail and sickly since childhood and had relied on natural remedies for years. According to her, on the day he was attacked, she was kidnapped and managed to escape. Along the way, she encountered him. Ignoring her own safety, she dragged her wounded body and gave herself to him to save his life. At the time, she was only eighteen. Anne saved his life, and he promised her marriage. Even though his grandmother, Grace, disapproved, he vowed never to marry anyone else. Yet out of nowhere, Suzy showed up. She orchestrated a heroic act, earning Graceâs favor, and step by step, manipulated Grace into forcing him to marry her. With her goal achieved, Suzy saw Anne as a thorn in her side, constantly picking fights. Lately, things had escalated â first, a kidnapping, and now poisoning... Two hundred million, or even more â as long as someone was willing to help save Anne, heâd pay any price. He owed Anne too much. ⌠Meanwhile, Allen immediately informed Suzy after receiving a response. "Boss, they've agreed." He agreed⌠It was impossible not to feel something. After all, she had loved Dylan for so many years. She couldnât help but wonder, if it were her who was poisoned, would he do the same? No, he wouldnât! Heâd wish for her death as soon as possible. That way, no one would stand in the way of him and Anne ever again. Suzy clenched her fists, suppressing the aching pain in her heart. "Deal!" It was two hundred million â since he was foolish and rich, why shouldnât she take advantage of it? But... Who exactly poisoned Anne? What was the motive? And as for the previous kidnapping, after investigating all this while, there was still no answer. There must be a connection somewhere. It seemed a visit to the hospital tonight was necessary, to first determine the exact poison in Anne's system before following the clues. That night, when all was quiet, Suzy, dressed in a nurse uniform prepared by Allen, sneaked into Anneâs hospital room. The girl on the bed had a ghostly pale face and weak breathing. Dylan would probably be heartbroken seeing her like this. It was said that Anne had once saved Dylan, which was why he held her dear. In fact, they were quite similar; Suzy also fell in love with Dylan on the night he saved her. A self-mocking smile curled her lips. Suzy had schemed to marry him, thinking he was single. After all, rumors had it that he was indifferent to women and devoted only to his work, to the extent that his grandmother who raised him suspected he was gay! It was only after marriage that Suzy found out he had a girl he liked; it was just that Grace did not approve of Anne, so she never mentioned Anne in front of Suzy. Three years ago, while Suzy thought she was using Grace, wasnât Grace actually using her too? Remembering that shrewd old lady, Suzy chuckled softly. "Age certainly does sharpen the wit!" Not wanting to waste more time, Suzy reached out to check Anneâs condition. Her brows furrowed instantly; her condition appeared to be⌠Indeed it was! Her expression suddenly changed. Suzy pulled out a syringe from her pocket, aimed the needle at a vein in Anne's left arm, and was about to insert it when her hand was suddenly grabbed. Using all her strength, Anne clutched the intruder's wrist. "Who sent you?" The medical staff in and out of this hospital room were carefully selected, and Anne knew each one well. The moment she saw the person in front of her, she knew something was off. Unimpressed by Anneâs awakening, Suzy shook off her hand and continued her previous action. As the sharp needle tip was about to pierce into her arm, Anne suddenly pushed Suzy and quickly sat up from the bed, reaching for the call button by the bedside. However, before she could touch it, her arm was pinned against the wall. Though most of the intruder's face was hidden by a mask, the chilling glare from her eyes was like a sword laced with murderous intent. Anne became even more panicked. âI am Dylanâs most beloved woman. If you dare hurt me, he will never forgive youâŚâ âSlap!â After slapping Anne, Suzy grabbed her chin. "If you donât want to die, keep quiet!" Her face stung from the slap, and her jaw felt like it was about to be crushed. However, from the intruder's words, it seemed she wasnât here to murder her. Anneâs fear slightly subsided, and she stopped struggling. Seeing her finally quiet down, Suzy released her chin. After drawing the blood with the needle and finishing her task, Suzy removed the needle and left, not caring about the still bleeding puncture site. Having suffered such a grievance, Anne was not about to let it go. She quickly pressed the call button, âSomeone is trying to murderâŚâ Before she could finish, her throat was grabbed. The woman's speed was alarmingly fast, shocking Anne. âI didnât want to murder youâŚâ Suzyâs fingers tightened inch by inch around her neck. âBut since you seem tired of living, Iâll grant your wish!â This wasnât just a threat; Suzy genuinely intended to murder Anne. Indeed, Anne was no saint; she was quite skilled in manipulating situations. Over the past three years, she had framed others multiple times. Suzy had been patient only because Anne was Dylanâs favorite. Now... She didnât care about who he loved. Furthermore, Anne owed Suzy that much. If it hadnât been for her protection, Anne wouldnât have survived long enough for Dylan to rescue her from the kidnappers. Seeing Anne's face turn red with difficulty breathing and veins popping on her forehead, the murderous intent in Suzy's eyes deepened. Just a bit more pressure and Anneâs life would be over! Suddenly, the sound of footsteps approached. They were distant, inaudible to most, but Suzy, with her exceptional hearing, could hear them clearly. It was Dylan! She felt a bit disgusted by how familiar she was with his steps. As the footsteps grew closer, Suzyâs gaze hardened, and with a swift motion, she knocked Anne unconscious with a sharp blow to the neck. After all, Anne was worth two hundred millionâthere was no reason to turn down that kind of money. Shifting her gaze slightly, Suzy quickly opened the door to the balcony and then slipped into the bathroom. The next second, the door was pushed open. Dylan entered, his eyes falling on the open sliding door to the balcony. His brows furrowed as he instructed Desmond, who followed behind him. "Close the door..." His words were cut off by a startled cry. "Ah..." Anne, who had thought she was doomed, suddenly opened her eyes, staring blankly at the ceiling, gasping for air in terror. "Did I wake you? I've been too busy these last few days to visit. How are you feeling?" Dylan walked to the bedside, noticing her distressed expression. "Did you have a nightmare?" Turning and seeing Dylan, Anne immediately threw herself into his arms, showing him the marks on her neck and the needle mark on her arm, "Mr. Dylan, just now, a woman disguised as a nurse drew my blood and then tried to strangle me." Chapter 0005 Dylanâs eyes shifted back to the balcony, giving Desmond a subtle look. Desmond searched the area and reported, âSir, thereâs no one here.â âCall the doctor.â Dylanâs gaze turned cold. "And tell the hospital to lock down all exits. Not a soul steps foot inside or out without my explicit authorization." âYes, sir!â After the doctorâs examination confirmed that only blood had been drawn and nothing else had been done to her, Anne finally let out a sigh of relief. The attackerâs identity was still a mystery, and with her current vulnerable condition, it was hard not to feel afraid. But what puzzled her was why someone would go through so much effort just to draw her blood. However... With a shift in her gaze, Anneâs eyes welled up with tears. "Mr. Dylan, thereâs something Iâve hesitated to say, but sheâs really gone too far this time." It was a perfect opportunity to throw dirt on Suzyâs name, and Anne couldnât let it slip by. Gripping his hand, her tears flowed even harder. "Iâm already half-dead from the poisonâwhy wonât she leave me alone? Does she think Iâm not dying fast enough, so she sends someone in the middle of the night to drain my blood?" Dylan's expression darkened, but he didnât respond directly. He simply said, "Weâve already found someone who can cure you with an antidote.â Anneâs eyes flashed briefly with surprise, though she quickly masked it. "But... I was told that this poison has no cure.â âThereâs always someone better who can treat you. Weâve arranged everything with a miracle doctor named Red Falcon, who will help detoxify you. Youâll be cured soon.â âRed Falcon?â Anne questioned, trying to hide her unease. âIs she really that skilled?â âYes, Mr. Martin from the North Avenue had a terminal illness, and thanks to her treatment, he made a full recovery.â Dylanâs voice softened. âDonât worry, Iâll handle everything.â For Anne, it was always âIâll handle everythingâŚâ For Suzy, it was always âThis doesnât concern meâŚâ Listening from her hiding spot in the bathroom, Suzy had convinced herself she'd be numb to Dylan's tenderness toward Anne. Yet, as his gentle tone drifted through the door, she felt an unexpected pang. Despite everything, it still stung. Tired of eavesdropping, Suzy silently opened the window and leaped out. Like a bat in the night, she vanished without a traceâso swiftly, no one would ever know. At the hospital entrance. Growing anxious from waiting, Allen was just about to go in and help when he finally spotted Suzy emerging. He hurried out of the car and rushed over, giving her a quick once-over. âBoss, are you okay?â âIâm fine.â Suzy kept walking without stopping. âStop worrying about nothing.â However, Allen sensed something was off. Logically, with the kind of influence Suzy had, Allen knew he shouldnât be worried. But the ambush three years ago had left him deeply scarred. He could never forget the moment he saw her fall off that cliff with his own eyes. For three years, Allen had hated himself for not protecting Suzy, failing in his duty as her subordinate. So, when Suzy called to inform him she was still alive, Allen swore that, this time, he would give up his life if necessary to keep her from getting hurt again. He wanted to handle this mission for her, but she wouldnât allow it. From the rearview mirror, Allen glanced at Suzy, who had been silent since getting into the car. He couldnât shake the feeling that there was something complicated between her and Anne. Allen realized he needed to find someone to discreetly investigate the matter. His gaze hadnât fully returned to the road when Suzy caught him staring. He cleared his throat awkwardly. âBoss, did you find out what kind of poison it was?â Suzy paused briefly. âItâs Scarlet Veil.â âScreechâŚâ The brakes squealed as Allen slammed on them in shock. âScarlet Veil? But that was your masterpiece! Didnât you destroy it along with the formula three years ago?â âThereâs one last dose⌠with the Harlow family.â âClaude Harlow?â Allenâs eyes widened. âWhat kind of grudge could he possibly have against a young girl to go this far? Everyone knows that poison starts off mild, but once it hits again⌠sheâll be no better than a dog in heatâŚâ Suzy had created the sinister poison to deal with a monster in the past. Even she was confused. The Harlows and Wrights had no bad blood between them. In fact, the Harlows even had business dealings with the Wheeler family. If Claude was behind the poisoning, sheâd rule him out as a suspect in the earlier kidnapping. That much was certain. There was no way Claude would have, or could have, let Suzy come so close to dying in that explosion. No matter who it was, she was determined to find them. It wasnât about proving her innocence to Dylan. She simply wouldnât swallow that humiliation! Whether it was the kidnapping, the ambush from three years ago, or the one responsible for murdering her familyâshe wasnât going to let any of them off the hook. Her eyes burned with hatred when Allen suddenly handed her the phone. "Boss, Dylan sent a message. He wants to arrange the treatment as soon as possible." Thinking of that deceitful man and his tenderness, she said, "Tell him the dealâs off." Earning two hundred million was tempting, but what intrigued her more was seeing what would happen to Anne after the second wave of poisoning hit her. ⌠In the corridor outside Anne's hospital room. Though Dylanâs face remained expressionless, his eyes were as cold as ice. "What did you just say? Repeat it." Desmond, bracing himself, repeated, "Red Falcon said the deal is off." He regretted it now. He never should have mentioned Red Falcon to Dylan that day. This Red Falconâfirst she demanded an outrageous sum, and now she was backing out. Didnât she know just how bad Dylanâs temper was? Suppressing his rage, Dylan growled. "Give me the phone." Desmond quickly handed it over. Dylan dialed the number. It rang but went unanswered. Once, twice, and again, until his patience wore thin. Finally, a soft voice came through, "Sorry, I was busy." Desmond quickly wiped the sweat that had started to drip down his forehead. Thank goodness the call got answeredâotherwise, his phone wouldâve met a tragic end. The phone itself wasnât worth much, but the data stored inside was priceless to him. âIâm looking for Red Falcon,â Dylan said bluntly. âSheâs not available. If thereâs something you need, you can tell me, and Iâll pass it along.â Dylanâs eyes narrowed. âThe price was already agreed upon. Why cancel now?â âPlease, Mr. Wright, stay calm. Itâs true that canceling the arrangement on our side is a bit abrupt, and we apologize. But we have our reasons. Do you think weâd walk away from two hundred million so easily if we didnât have a reason to?â âWhatâs the reason?â âThatâs not something we can share with you, Mr. Wright. I suggest you find someone else quickly before Miss Anne misses the best window for treatment.â Without waiting for a response, Allen hung up the phone. The next second⌠Smash! Desmond watched in despair as yet another phone met its fate. His heart shattered even more than the phone. âFind her!â Dylan ordered, his voice cold. He was determined to see what kind of game she was playing now. Desmond wanted to say, âEasier said than done.â Not just Red Falcon, but also Suzy, who had been missing without a trace for so long. Why did it seem like every woman around him enjoyed playing hide and seek? Inside the hospital room, Anne had been listening to the commotion outside. Once she heard Dylan and Desmond leave, she quickly locked the door and pulled out another phone hidden under her pillow. âDylan found someone to help me get an antidote, but I overheard that they backed out.â Anne sneered. âHe keeps saying how great this Red Falcon is, but it seems sheâs all talk. She mustâve realized she couldnât actually cure me, so she ran at the last minute.â âIf she created the poison, she definitely knows how to cure it.â âSo, you know her? If she made the poison, why would she suddenly refuse to help? I overheard Dylan offering two hundred million for her treatment!â Since Dylan was willing to spend that much money on her, Anne could tell just how important she was to Dylan. The truth didnât matter. Once she solidified her place as Dylanâs wife, even if he discovered she wasn't his true savior, his feelings for her would shield her from consequences. There was a long pause on the other end of the line before the person finally responded, âIsnât this exactly what you wanted? Youâll soon face the second wave of the poison. I hope all your wishes come true.â âThanks for the good wishes. Once Iâve secured Dylan, thereâll be plenty of rewards for you.â ⌠The quickest way to find out if Claude was behind the poisoning was to ask him directly. Even though it seemed unlikely, Suzy decided she needed to meet with him. After all, they hadnât seen each other in three years. So, the first thing she did upon returning to Hillside Villa was to ask Allen to look into Claudeâs whereabouts. Before she could finish eating an apple, Allen had the information ready. âClaudeâs on a business trip to Montara.â âBook a flight.â The next morning, Suzy boarded a plane bound for Montara. Allen wanted to accompany Suzy, but she refused, assigning him other tasks to handle. It had been three years since sheâd been on a plane, and as she gazed at the clouds outside the window, Suzy felt a sense of freedom, like a bird returning to the sky. For those three years, her life had revolved entirely around Dylan. In her attempt to be the perfect wife, she barely left the house and spent her days thinking about how to take better care of him. Every morning at five, she got up to make him breakfast. She hand-washed all his clothes, even his socks and underwear. While he was at work, she counted the minutes, waiting like a lovesick fool for his return. Looking back now, she couldnât believe she had lived like that for three years. What on earth had she been thinking? After landing, she went straight to Claudeâs hotel, only to be told, âMr. Claude checked out early this morning.â Suzy was speechless. She had planned on surprising him. Oh well, since she was already here, she might as well treat it like a vacation. Suzy spent the day shopping, buying plenty of things before catching her flight back home. She had to admit that being single has its perks! The farther away men were, the better. At the airport, Suzy spotted Allen waiting from a distance. âOver hereâŚâ Her smile froze instantly. Dylan? Surrounded by a crowd, Dylan was heading straight in her direction. Suzy quickly turned her back and thought, âAnother unlucky day.â It wasnât that she feared him; she just didnât want to see him. And she was pretty sure he didnât want to see her either. To avoid mutual disdain, Suzy slipped into the restroom. Dylan scanned the area, but there was no sign of Suzy. âAre you sure she was on this flight?â Desmond, sweating profusely, stammered, âIâve double-checked several times. Mrs. Wright was definitely on this flight from Montara.â Desmond could hardly contain his excitement when he first got the news. Suzyâs disappearance, Red Falconâs cancellation, and the woman who had infiltrated Anneâs hospital room only to escape under full lockdownâthose three women had pushed Dylan to the brink of an explosion. Thank goodness there was finally news about Suzy. Otherwise, if Dylan exploded, Desmond would be the first casualty. Wiping sweat from his forehead, Desmond said, "Iâve got people stationed at every exit. We should be able to find her soon." Half an hour later... Dylanâs voice turned icy. âWhere is she?â Desmond wished he could cut out his own tongue. Sometimes, it was best not to speak too soon! He couldnât understand how Suzy, an ordinary person, was so good at slipping away. âDesmond, your performance is really slipping. If this keeps up, I think it might be time to send you to South Allica for some additional training,â Dylan said coldly before walking off. It had been half an hour, and Suzy had probably already made her escape. The fact that she could disappear under these circumstances made it clear that he had seriously underestimated her abilities. Outside the airport, a line of sleek black cars was parked, with the leading one looking particularly impressive. Desmond jogged ahead, opening the door for Dylan, who was just about to step into the car when, out of the corner of his eye, he spotted something⌠In an instant, Dylan turned, took several swift strides, and grabbed the shoulder of a woman standing nearby. hapter 0006 When Dylan spun the woman around to face him, his expression darkened instantly, like a shadow passing over his features. From behind, she had looked strikingly similar to Suzy, but her front was a different story. Her appearance was plain, a far cry from Suzyâs striking beauty. The fact that heâd even momentarily considered Suzy attractive only made Dylan's scowl deepen. "Hey, handsome, your approach is pretty unique. I like it," the woman said with a playful smile, leaning toward him. "I live close by. How about we..." "Iâve got the wrong person," Dylan cut her off. As he stepped back, the woman nearly stumbled but wasnât discouraged. She moved closer again. "Donât be shy. Weâre both adults here. Whatâs there to hold back?" With a sharp glare, Dylan signaled to Desmond, who quickly stepped in to handle the situation. Once the two of them had driven off, Suzy slipped into Allenâs car, slowly peeling off the human-skin mask from her face. She had thought their encounter was a coincidence, but it turned out Dylan had deliberately come looking for her. But why? After all the commotion, what was he trying to achieve? She had already stepped aside. What more could he possibly want? Allen seemed equally puzzled. His curiosity finally got the better of him, and he couldnât help but ask, âBoss, I just found out... Dylan wasnât looking for Red Falcon. Heâs been trying to find his missing wifeâŚâ "Yeah, thatâs me," Suzy said calmly. There was no point in hiding it anymore. "...Youâre married?" Allen was visibly stunned. "Was. I got married, then divorced." "Was it because of Anne?" Allenâs tone was laced with frustration. The fact that Dylan was willing to spend two hundred million on Anne was a clear sign of their deep connection. Unable to hold back, Allen muttered a curse under his breath. "Like mother, like daughter. Sheâs just as rotten as her mom." Suzy immediately caught the significance of his words. "You and the Wheeler family..." "I have nothing to do with the Wheelers," Allen said sharply, gripping the steering wheel. It was a painful chapter of Allenâs life, one he had never shared with Suzy. He had always planned to take his revenge quietly, without burdening her with his past. After all, Suzy had her own scores to settle. Anneâs mother, Helena Fox, and his own were cousins. An unexpected tragedy left her an orphan, and his grandmother, moved by sympathy, took Helena in. Little did she know, she was nurturing a wolf in sheepâs clothing. On the surface, Helena seemed sweet and caring, but beneath that facade, she was as cold and calculating. When Allen was eight, he walked in on his father, William Wheeler, having an affair with Helena while his mother was away on a business trip â and in his mother's own bed, no less. Not long after, they drove his mother to her death and tried to burn him alive. He suffered severe burns across most of his body. If it hadnât been for Suzy saving him while he was trying to escape, he wouldnât even be alive today. She nursed him back to health, gave him a new face, and turned him into the person he was now â someone William wouldnât recognize, even if they stood face to face. Suzy could tell at a glance that Allen was lying. Since he didnât want to delve deeper into the subject, she didnât push him further. Everyone has their own secrets. She shifted the conversation. "Did you take care of what I asked before I left?" Allen opened the glove compartment and pulled out a blue folder. "The investigation confirms that thereâs never been any conflict between the Goodwin family and the Turner family, not now or three years ago. And there's no way the Goodwins could learn about your real identity." Suzy had once been the heiress of the Frosts, the wealthiest family. Years ago, a brutal assassination wiped out her entire family in a single night, from relatives to servantsâa total of thirty lives, all murdered. The murderers were beyond cruel. Everyone believed that no one from the Frost family survived, unaware that someone had risked their life to save Suzy. For years, she had kept her identity hidden. Apart from Allen, Raven Murray, and Riley White, no one else knew who she really was. And none of them would ever betray her. Suzy opened the folder, flipping through the pages. She found nothing out of the ordinary; everything seemed in order. Yet, three years ago, she distinctly remembered the kidnappers mentioning the Goodwin family. Closing the folder, she tossed it aside casually. "You can dodge the first blow, but not the second." "Yes, if the Goodwin family is really involved, no matter how powerful they are, theyâll pay the price in full," Allen said before asking, "What about Claude?" Suzy leaned back in her chair, her eyes half-closed. "He returned early. I didnât get a chance to see him." "So, are we heading to the Harlow family next?" "Weâll see." After all the running around, Suzy was feeling tired. Sheâd head home for some rest first. Besides, Anneâs second wave of poisoning was set for tonight. Suzy needed to be well-rested to fully enjoy what was about to unfold. ⌠That night, at the hospital. Anne had been unusually thirsty since dinner. She drank plenty of water, yet the discomfort only worsened. She knew it was timeâthe second wave of the poison was hitting. In a panic, she called Dylan. "Mr. Dylan, where are you? I feel so awful..." she moaned as soon as the line connected, not waiting for a response. But it wasnât Dylan who answeredâit was his sister, Diana Wright. "Feeling awful? Call a doctor. Whatâs the point of calling my brother?" Diana had always disliked Anne. "And this is my final warning. My brother is married. Whether itâs me or my grandmother, weâve both accepted his wife as family. Youâd better stay far away from him." Anne wasnât fond of Diana either. "Oh really? You probably donât know that theyâre divorced, do you? And it was Suzy who initiated it." "You're lying!" Diana snapped, not believing a word. "My sister-in-law loves my brother. Thereâs no way she would ever ask for a divorce." "If you don't believe me, go ask your brother. And by the way, your dear sister-in-law has run off with some random guy and hasnât been seen since!" "You witch! Say one more bad word about her, and I'll rip your mouth apart..." Diana was in the middle of her furious rant when the phone was snatched away by Dylan. She looked up. "Brother, that witch Anne just said that your wife wants a divorce!" Dylanâs face was cold. "Watch your manners." "My manners? I rather show some manners to a dog than her! Now tell meâis Suzy divorcing you or not?" "Thatâs none of your business," he said, his dark eyes narrowing. "What you should be focused on is your exam tomorrow." With that, he turned to leave. Diana chased after him. "How can it not concern me? She saved Grandmaâs life! If it werenât for her, weâd both be orphans by now. You canât be so heartless..." No matter what she said, Dylan kept walking without a word. Frustrated, Diana stomped her foot. "Iâm calling Grandma!" Dylan knew Diana would go straight to Grace to complain. He couldnât figure out what spell Suzy had cast over both his grandmother and his sister. They adored her to the point of obsession. The only reason he hadnât launched a full search for Suzy was to avoid alarming Grace, who was currently enjoying her vacation overseas. But now it seemed the secret was out. With that thought, he redialed Anneâs number to find out how she knew about the divorce. "Mr. Dylan, Mr. Dylan..." The moment the call connected, Anneâs pained voice came through. "Whatâs wrong?" Dylan asked. "I feel terrible, I really feel like Iâm dying. Please come and save me!" "Donât panic. Iâm on my way." Chapter 0007 At the hospital. The moment Dylan stepped through the door, Anne threw herself into his arms. She clung to him like a rag doll, trembling against him. "Dylan, I feel awful... I feel so terrible..." âWhere does it hurt?â Dylan tried to push her away, but instead of letting go, she only clung tighter. "Everywhere..." Anne moaned, placing his hand on her front. "Especially here, it feels like bugs crawling under my skinâitching, unbearable. Mr. Dylan, please help me!" Her behavior was clearly not normal. âIâll call the doctor.â âNo, I donât want a doctor. I want you.â Anne clung to him like a vine, her hands restlessly undoing his shirt buttons. âPlease, Mr. Dylan, help me, I feel like Iâm dying. If you donât help me, I really will die...â As her fingers worked to undo the buttons, Dylan grabbed her wrists. âAnne, calm down...â âI canât calm down...â She leaned in, trying to kiss him, whispering his name over and over, âMr. Dylan, Mr. Dylan...â Just as she was about to succeed, Dylan forcefully pushed her away, sending her sprawling to the floor. His resistance spoke volumes, even if he hadnât said a word. A flicker of coldness flashed in Anneâs eyes, but when she looked up again, only sadness remained. âMr. Dylan, do you hate me?â Dylan didnât respond, nor did he help her up. Instead, he turned away. âIâm calling a doctor.â Anne wasnât about to let him leave. She scrambled to her feet and wrapped herself around him from behind. âI told you, I donât want a doctor. I want you! Please, Mr. Dylan, take me...â âAnne, something is clearly wrong with you,â Dylan said, his lips pressed into a thin line. âYou need to see a doctor.â âNo doctor can help me. Only you can save me.â As she spoke, Anne began stripping off her own clothes. âPlease, save me. Iâm begging you.â Just when Anne thought she had succeeded, a sharp pain shot through the back of her head, and everything went black as she crumpled to the floor. Watching Anne fall unconscious, Suzy, who had been hiding in the wardrobe, retracted the silver needle that she had prepared to throw. It wasnât about helping Dylanâit was simply that she couldnât bear to watch the scene unfold. It was the kind of thing that could make her eyes bleed. What she didnât expect was that Dylan would actually... Anne was supposed to be the woman he loved most. Suzy couldnât quite understand why he knocked her out. Dylan scooped Anne up in his arms and laid her back on the hospital bed before pressing the call button for the doctor. When the doctor arrived, Dylan briefly explained what had just happened. âIs this related to the poison in her system?â After a quick examination, the doctor nodded. âYes, youâre right. The poison in Miss Anneâs body is highly unusual. The last time the poison flared up, nothing like this happened. Now, itâs suddenly escalated, and who knows what could happen next. We need to detox her as soon as possible.â Dylan frowned and thought about what the doctor said. There had been no word from Red Falcon. Forget about tracking her downâshe hadnât even answered a single phone call. Desmond had been trying for days, but every attempt had gone unanswered. Detoxing Anne was proving to be no simple task. For the first time, he found himself played by a woman who had him in the palm of her hand. With his jaw tight, Dylan commanded, âFor now, find a way to alleviate her symptoms.â âThatâs going to be difficult...â the doctor began. âThis poison is something Iâve never encountered before, and I know nothing about it. Iâm concerned that if we administer the wrong medication, it could worsen her condition instead of easing it. So...â The doctor pressed his lips together before continuing, âAt this point, the safest way to relieve her symptoms might be for you, Mr. Wright, to help Miss Anne personally.â âAbsolutely not!â Dylan didnât hesitate. âIf it comes to that, weâll use sedatives.â âBut that might not be safe eitherâŚâ âAt least that way, sheâll maintain her dignity,â Dylan muttered, his voice low as he looked at Anne lying unconscious. âI canât let her lose her honor.â So, it wasnât that he wouldnât touch herâhe just didnât want her to be ridiculed. Suzyâs mind flashed back to a day when she had gone to his office to deliver some documents he had left behind at home. His employees had mistaken her for the maid, and from start to finish, he hadnât said a single word to correct them. They had been married for three years, and not once had he shown her the respect a wife deserved. Yet, when it came to Anne, he shielded her at every turn... Suzy didnât want to compare, but moments like this always brought it to the surface, no matter how hard she tried. Why was she even watching this pathetic drama? She really should find a way to slip out of here. And as luck would have it, the opportunity presented itself. The doctor left, and moments later, Dylanâs phone rang. Probably to avoid waking Anne, he stepped out of the room with his phone. Seizing her chance, Suzy quietly slipped out of the wardrobe. But just as she thought sheâd made her escape, Dylan walked back in. Their eyes locked. The air between them went dead silent. Suzy reacted quickly, darting toward the balcony. Dylan was just as fast, his long strides closing the distance. Just as she was about to leap off the balcony, his hand caught her shoulder, yanking her back. "Speak. Who sent you?" Suzy let out a cold laugh. "The hospital is a public place. Iâm allowed to come and go as I please. Do I need your permission now?" She wasnât worried at all about Dylan recognizing her voice. Before going out, she always used a voice-altering agentânot to hide from him specifically, but out of long-standing habit. Keeping her true identity hidden was a necessity. Though she hadnât gone so far as to disguise herself today, just a simple mask, there was no way Dylan would figure it out. She wouldnât give him the chance. "So, you think you can just come and go as you please, huh..." Dylan's grip on her shoulder tightened, his voice growing colder. "Since you're here, why don't you stay for a while?" "The windâs pretty strong tonightâcareful you donât bite your tongue!" Suzy swiftly dodged his grip, twisting out of his hold, and in one fluid motion, threw a sharp punch directly at him. But Dylan wasnât easy prey either, effortlessly dodging her attack. The two were locked in a fierce exchange, trading blow after blow, kick after kick. After dozens of moves, neither had the upper hand. Dylan chuckled, "Not bad." Suzy smirked. "You're not too shabby yourself, Mr. Wright." But then, his eyes flashed dangerously, and he switched tactics, aiming a series of strikes at her abdomen. Realizing his intent, Suzy shifted her defenses to protect her midsection, but in an unexpected move, Dylan suddenly diverted his hand, reaching for her mask instead. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=14871&ut | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 840 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=14871&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463457255_1100163098194107_747618574130675275_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=xXceajTttgkQ7kNvgHEVZNf&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYBFYIg2EE4R1Cc58YsI1W--S-AgMkvTyuULPIyHCuf4eg&oe=674804AF | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,567 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2510886}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | âWhere the f-k is she?â I hear the Beta scream. Oh no, my ex-mate Beta Kyle is looking for me and trying to torture me again. I groan and get to my feet, grabbing the cleaning basket and taking it with me. The moment Beta Kyle sees me, he strides towards me and his hand slices against my cheek. It hurts more than usual but still, I don't make sound. Years of experience has taught me to do so. âAlpha Trey and I are expecting company and you still have not cleaned the office like you were askedd.â Beta Kyle spits at me. I nod my head and my hand tightens on the cleaning basket. If I could just find the courage to swing it at his head, it would make my day. âWe are trying to make a good impression on Alpha Dane. Do you not understand how important it is for us to join ourselves with his pack?!â I donât answer and keep my eyes low. I know it's a trick, to try and get me to say something so that he can give himself a reason to punish me. Alpha Dane, I had only ever heard rumours about him. He was a ruthless man, a Wolf feared by others. He didnât mess around and he had the largest pack. âHe is the Alpha of Black Shadow, the biggest pack in the world, we need him!â Beta Kyle continues. He places his hands on my shoulders, digging his nails into my thinning skin and turns me around, kicking me in the back as he shoves me towards the office. âUseless f-king Wolf.â He mutters as he moves away. Quietly closing the door, I lean back against the door, observing the already clean office. There was nothing out of place, it looked perfectly fine for a meeting. Closing my eyes, I slide down to the floor. I hated this house. I thought I could finally escape when I turned eighteen, but four years later, here I still am, a slave in my own home. Doing all the dirty tasks for my brother, Alpha Trey and the pack. While my ex mate, Beta Kyle waltzes around reminding me of how worthless I am. Someone clears their throat and I freeze, I thought I was alone. Leaning forward, I see a handsome man sitting in a chair, just around the corner. A foot propped up on his knee as he nurses a glass of drink. His short hair is dark and his eyes are a deep crimson colour, that donât quite look right. They suddenly shift to me and I throw myself back against the door as my heart pounded. âIs this the way you greet all Alphaâs?â His deep voice rumbles through the room, an edge of amusement to his tone. âIâm sorry.â I whisper, getting to my feet. âIâŚI thought I was alone.â I had no idea who he was but I could feel the power radiating off of him, even without my Wolf. âCome forward.â He orders and I already feel a lump forming in my throat. Alpha Trey was going to kill me. I do as Iâm told, allowing him to see me properly and I am met with narrowed crimson eyes. I close my eyes, expecting the worst. âYou smell funny. Yet you are a Wolf, correct?â I nod, though I couldnât tell how he was going to react. Most laughed when they found out about me. âI would prefer it if you spoke to me.â He growls, âIâm not in the mood to play games.â âYes.â I whisper. I couldnât help but think of all the punishments I was going to have to endure. A whipping maybe? Starvation for another week? I wasnât sure how much more my body could take. âHow is it possible for you to not know I was in the room? You should have scented me.â âIâŚ..â I hated the question. âSpit it out, I havenât got all day!â He takes a swig from his drink. I knew why I couldnât scent him. I knew why I hadnât been aware of his presence, but telling people why was not something I ever wanted or liked to do. They never let me tell my side of the story. All they do is accept Alpha Trey's word as the truth. âYou should open your eyes when you are talking to someone. Has your Alpha not taught you anything?â His deep voice sends a shiver through me. Slowly, I open my eyes and lower them, there was no way I was making eye contact. âMy Wolf abilities were bound,â I mutter. He leans forward, I could feel him staring at me, âWhy would someone do that?â If this is the Alpha that my brother is supposed to be meeting with, I knew I could screw everything up for him by saying too much. âIt was a punishment.â I whisper. It wasnât far from the entire truth but it was the simplest answer I could give. Thereâs a twitch in his cheek. Was he angry to hear of such a punishment? Or maybe, just like the others, he was amused by it. I couldnât tell. The door swings open and my brother screeches at me âNeah, what the heck are you doing in my office?â He turns to the crimson eyed man. âI am so sorry that my sister is bothering you, Alpha Dane.â Crap, it was him. My brother spins around, his hand stretching out to hit me. I close my eyes, bracing myself, ready to feel the burn. âI wouldnât do that if I were you.â Alpha Daneâs voice rumbles through the room. Peeking through slits, I see Alpha Dane has risen to his feet, his hand coiled around my brother's wrist. He was taller than my brother, more muscle too. âNeah,â My name rolls off of his tongue, âwas kindly showing me to your office, Alpha Trey, as you failed to meet me at the front of your house like I requested.â What? I had no idea what he was talking about. And he had no reason to lie for me. My brother glares at me, clenching his jaw tight. I was going to pay for this later. I would have to try and steal some food. âGo and get Beta Kyle.â Alpha Trey seethes. âTell him that our guest is here.â I nod my head and hurry from the room, the last thing I wanted was to be caught between bickering men. âBeta Kyle,â I whisper as I enter the dining hall. He instantly glares at me with his dark eyes. I had spoken without being spoken to. âAlpha Trey is in the office with Alpha Dane. I was sent to inform you.â He slams the newspaper down on the table and glares at me as he walks by. âYouâre lucky that the Alpha sent you to get me, otherwise you wouldn't be seeing sunlight for a few days.â Pausing behind me, he yanks my head back, locking his fingers in my hair, leaning in close to me, I feel his hot breath on my skin. He doesnât speak, it was just his way of proving that he could do what he wants when he wants. I try to keep myself busy so I can stay as far away from the office as possible. My peace doesnât last long when I hear my brother calling out to me. Quietly, I pad towards the office and plaster a smile on my face as I open the door. âNeah, go get the champagne and some glasses, we are celebrating.â I bow my head and hurry to the drinks cabinet. Quickly finding what my brother has asked for. As I re-enter the office, I can feel Alpha Dane watching my every move, even the hairs on the back of my neck stand up. No one ever watches me this closely. âNeah is your sister, correct?â Alpha Dane questions my brother. âShe is.â Alpha Trey mutters with disgust. He looks away from me to focus on the man asking questions. âWhy do you treat her like shit?â Straight to the point, my brother wouldnât like that. He only liked sharing information on his terms. No one had spoken to my brother about his treatment of me because everyone took great joy in beating me. I didnât know what to do. I couldnât move but I knew I had to get out of there. If this deal goes to pot because of me, then that would be my fault too. âNeah was responsible for our parents' death.â Alpha Trey spits. I closed my eyes, battling back the tears that were threatening to break free. âResponsible how?â Alpha Daneâs voice rumbles through me. He was definitely angry. âShe served them Wolfsbane.â Donât make a sound. Donât make a sound. I knew Alpha Dane was studying me. They all did, no one could ever quite believe how someone could do something so disgusting as poisoning their own parents. I stood there, with my head hanging low, wishing for the ground to open up and suck me in. There are movements around me. He was standing directly in front of me. With a rough finger he tilts my face up towards his, forcing me to look at him. Slowly, his hand latches onto my throat but he doesnât squeeze. âYou poisoned your parents?â âI was six.â I splutter. âI just made them lemonade.â My voice comes out all squeaky as I try to defend myself. I could barely remember my parents, but I could remember all the guilt I had been made to feel since that day. His crimson eyes flash to my brothers. âHardly seems fair to blame a six year old.â âA six year old should know the difference between plants.â Alpha Trey snaps âSounds to me like she was set up.â Alpha Dane shrugs his shoulders, letting go of my throat. âYou werenât there, Alpha Dane.â My brother muttered through gritted teeth as his eyes narrowed to slits. âI didnât ask you here to talk about my slave!â Alpha Dane grabs his leather jacket from the chair. Unlike other Alphaâs he seemed to dress more casually. A simple black tee and jeans covered his huge frame. And unlike other Alphaâs, his arms are bare of tattoos, not a single bit of ink poked out anywhere. âYouâre right and now I have a few things to mull over.â âI thought we agreed.â My brother exclaims. âNothing has been signed. Now I will show myself out.â The moment he is out of the office, both my brother and Beta Kyle round on me. âWhat the f-k did you say to him?â My brother demands, slamming a hand into my stomach. âN..nothing. Well, he just asked me why I smelled funny.â âDid you tell him?â Beta Kyle demands. He was practically spitting in my face. I hated him. I hated him so much that I had vowed to one day get my revenge and rip his stomach out through his mouth. âWELL?â My brother yells when I donât immediately respond and smacks me across the side of the head. My head involuntarily moves up and down. âBut I didnât say it was you.â I tried to sound strong and confident but it just comes out as a whisper. My brother's hand locks into my black hair as he yanks my head back, sending a shooting pain through my skull. âIf you have ruined this, you wonât see daylight again.â He drags me by my hair from the office and down the hallway towards the basement door. âPleaseâŚ.â I beg. âHe was an AlphaâŚI⌠I had to answer him.â My cheeks burn with my tears as he flings the door open. On the other side of the door is Alpha Dane. He is leaning against the wall with his arms folded, staring out at us. My brother's hand falls from my hair, relieving the pressure on the back of my skull. âAlpha Dane, I thought you had left.â Alpha Trey murmurs angrily. âI said I would show myself out. I thought I had found the door, but instead I find a basement, riddled in your sister's strange scent. Is this how you treat your family?â âAs I said,â my brother holds his ground, âShe is responsible for the death of my parents, so yes, this is what she deserves.â âYou should keep your nose out of other packs' business!â Beta Kyle adds. Alpha Dane laughs. âIf I agree to this deal, everything about your business becomes my business. So tell me, what would your punishment be for her? No food, locked away for a week, beatings?â âWe donâtâŚ.â âReally?â He cocks a brow, âYou really expect me to believe that you would have just let her sleep? I have already stopped you from hitting her once. " My brother and Beta Kyle fell silent. I peer through slits to see his crimson eyes on me. There was no reason for him to defend me and yet he was. I was a nobody, no one special. Just who everyone called a traitor. Only instead of being given a death sentence, my brother had decided to make me spend my life suffering. âI have a proposition for you, Alpha Trey.â Alpha Dane is smirking at my brother. âWe have already agreed on terms.â âWell, Iâm adding one. And if you donât agree, you will not get my help. Instead, you will become my enemy. And we both know, you donât want that.â âI take it that your new terms have something to do with her?â Alpha Trey mutters through clenched teeth. âYou would be correct. Let me take her away to my pack and then you, Trey will have a deal.â Me? Why would he want me? As my brother and his Beta discuss me, Alpha Dane is still studying me. His look made me nervous. What could someone like him possibly want with me? âDeal.â Alpha Trey sticks out his hand for Alpha Dane to shake. He doesnât take it, instead his crimson eyes shift from me to my brother. âI will have paperwork drawn up and will return tomorrow.â He reaches a hand out and cups my face, âEnsure you have everything packed.â He drags his thumb across my bottom lip and strides to the opposite end of the hallway and straight to the front door. He knew exactly where the front door was, so what was he up to? He pauses at the door. âIf I find out any one of you has laid a hand on her. The contract will be the last thing you need to worry about.â He struts out, slamming the door behind him. Seeing Alpha Dane walking out of the door, my brother immediately grabs me by the collar. "You think you're going to lead a good life if you follow Alpha Dane out of here? Don't be naive!" He continues in a vicious voice. "He's the cruellest man in the world, he has killed nine of his mates, I'm waiting to see what will happen to you!" | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783& | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,762 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464300486_441900775589412_3913007690285088857_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=8mpsv09qyHQQ7kNvgEVuX5H&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A80Lk30kXYHH8vbjivm007l&oh=00_AYB6NlHYH4YMNCo7qIGl3-HK7UKPQcrlF37wVKFmX2P4Lw&oe=67483127 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,511,375 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512337}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | At Grace Mansion, Carissa Sinclair stared at the man before herâher husband she had waited for a whole year. Barrett Warren, still in his battle armor, wore an expression of both determination and guilt. "Carissa, the king has issued a royal edict for my marriage with Aurora. She will be joining our household. There's no question about it," said Barrett. Carissa's eyes clouded with confusion. "The queen dowager has praised General Yates as a model for all women in the kingdom. Would she be willing to be a concubine?" Barrett's eyes flashed with a hint of annoyance. "No, she wonât be a concubine. Sheâll be my legal wife, equal to you." "But calling her equal doesn't change the fact that sheâs still just a concubine," Carissa said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Barrett frowned. "Why can't you face the reality? Aurora and I fell in love with each other on the battlefield, and we earned this marriage with our glorified victory. In fact, I donât really need your approval on it." Carissa smiled mockingly. "Fell in love, huh? Have you forgot what you promised me before you left for war?" On their wedding night a year ago, Barrett was called away to lead reinforcements on an expedition. Before he left, he lifted his wifeâs veil and vowed, "Carrisa Sinclair, you're the only woman I'll ever love in my life. I will never take a concubine!" Embarrassed, Barrett avoided her eye contact. "Just forget what I said. Back then, I only considered you a suitable match for a wife. I knew nothing about love until I met Rory." When he spoke of the woman he loved, his eyes softened with deep affection. Turning back to Carissa, he added, "Sheâs unlike any woman Iâve ever met. I love her deeply, and I hope you'll be generous enough to welcome her." Carissa felt a lump in her throat. Despite her disgust and reluctance, she asked, "What about your parents? Do they agree?" "They do. It was a royal edict, and mother liked her a lot upon seeing her." They agreed? Huh... How ironic! Seems like everything Carissa had done for this household had all been for nothing. "Is she currently in the mansion?" Carissa asked, lifting a brow. Barrett carried a softness in his voice, "Yes, sheâs talking to my mother and making her very happy. Even mother's health seems to be improving." "Improving?" Carissa felt a whirlwind of emotions. "When you went to war, your mother was already gravely ill. I brought in the best physician, managed the estateâs affairs by day, and stayed up nights caring for her. That's how her condition started to improve." Carissa wasnât seeking praise. She was just laying out the facts of her exhausting year. "But seeing Aurora has made my mother feel even better," Barrett said earnestly. "I know this is unfair to you, but for the greater good, please support Aurora and me." Carissa lowered her eyes, as if blinking away the tears. But inspected closely, that's actually her sharpened gaze. "Invite General Yates over. I have a few things to ask her." "There's no need," Barrett refused instantly. "Carissa, sheâs different from any woman you know. As a general, sheâs above household squabbles and wouldnât want to meet you." Carissa retorted, "What are women I know like? Or tell me, what kind of woman am I to you? Have you forgotten? I'm also the daughter of the Marquis's family. My father and my six brothers sacrificed on the Southern Frontier three years ago-" "Thatâs them," Barrett interrupted. "you're still a delicate woman suited only for home comforts, while Aurora has no respect for that. Besides, she never holds back her true thoughts. Trust me, you won't want to hear it from her." As Carissa looked up, the striking beauty mark under her eye became more evident in the light. Calmly, she said, "Itâs fine. If she says anything unpleasant, Iâll ignore it. A true matriarch must understand the bigger picture and act with dignity. Donât you trust me?" Barrett sighed in frustration. âWhy put yourself through this? The king has approved this marriage, and Aurora will never threaten your control of the household. Carissa, she couldn't care less about those things.â âOh, you think that's what I fear? Losing the control of this household?â Carissa countered. Little did Barrett know his household had been reduced to a hollow shell - managing it was a hot potato no one else would bear. Over the past year, it was Carissa's dowry alone that kept the Warren familyâs life respectable, and this was her reward. âEnough,â Barrett snapped, his patience running thin. âIâve done my duty by informing you. Your opinion wonât change anything.â As Carissa watched hum storm out, her bitterness deepened. âMy lady, my lord has really crossed the line!â Lulu, Carissaâs maid, said, wiping her tears. âDonât call him that!â Carissa gave her a stern look. âWe never consummated the marriage. Heâs not your lord. Now go fetch my dowry list.â âWhy the dowry list?â Lulu asked, puzzled. Carissa tapped her on the forehead. âSilly girl, we need to reckon everything before we leave.â Lulu gasped. âLeave? But where can we go? To the Northwatch Estate?â Suddenly Lulu held her tongue, aware that she had touched the sensitive subject. She spared Carissa a guilty look, "I'll get the list now, my lady." Upon the mention of Northwatch Estate, the always restrained Carissa finally let her tears fall. When she was fifteen, her father, the Marquis of Northwatch, had sacrificed his life on the battlefield. Then, just six months ago, her entire family at the Northwatch Estate was brutally slaughtered â assassins rumored to be spies from the enemy nation, Westhaven. She rushed back after getting the news, only to find the dismembered bodies of her mother and grandmother. Even her youngest nephew, two years old, didn't escape death, neither. Now, she was the lone survivor of the marquis' family, the idea of restoring her familyâs former glory seemed impossibleâat least to outsiders. After all, she was presented mostly as a delicate, fragile woman, while Aurora Taytes had just made herself the first female general in history. It's only natural that the Warren family was more than happy to agree to the marriage. Yet, unbeknownst to the world, Carissa's martial talent was never beneath her father and brothers. If given a chance on the battlefield, she would definitely outshine Aurora Taytes, perhaps a million times more... Just then, Lulu had brought over the dowry list, "My lady, this year alone, you've spent over six thousand silver coins supporting the household. However, the shops, houses, and estates remain untouched. All the bank savings, along with the property deeds and land titles your mother left, are locked up in the chest." "I see." Carisse's gaze lingered on the list with melancholy. Her mother had given her such a substantial dowry, fearing she might face hardship in her husband's home. Yet now here she was. The Warren family had disregarded all her effort, and Barrett had even broken his vow to take no concubine - the very promise that led her mother to choose him over more eligible suitors, despite the Warren familyâs fall from grace. 'Was this really the life mother wanted me to have?' It took Carissa no time to made up her mind. âLulu, get prepared. There's somewhere we need to go tomorrow.â ... Early the next morning, Carissa and Lulu boarded a carriage, heading straight for the royal palace. It was noon by the time they arrived. Under the scorching autumn sun, Carissa and Lulu stood like statues in front of the palace gates. They waited for a full hour, but no one came to let them in. In the palace's study, Derek Walker had already reported Carissaâs arrival to the king three times. âYour Majesty, Mrs. Warren is still waiting outside the palace gates,â he repeated. The king, Salvador Quinton, set aside the document he was reading and rubbed his temples. âI canât summon her in. The edict has been issued, and can't be taken back. Tell her to go home.â âThe guards tried to persuade her, but she refused to leave. Sheâs been standing there for over an hour without moving.â Salvador felt a pang of guilt. âBarrett requested the marriage as a reward for his military service. I didnât want to agree, either, but not granting it would embarrass both him and General Yates. They have after all won a big war.â âYour Majesty, when it comes to military achievements, no one can compare to the Marquis of Northwatch,â Derek countered. Salvador thought of Hector Sinclair, the Marquis of Northwatch. When Salvador was a crown prince who had recently joined the military, it was Hector who had guided him. Back then, he had also known Carissa when she was only a cute kid. Salvador himself had fought a bloody path to the throne, paved with death. He understood the struggles of military officers, so when Barrett requested marriage as a reward, Salvador had hesitated but eventually agreed. But Derek was right. In terms of military merit, Barrett and Aurora were far inferior to Hector Sinclair. âAlright, let her in. If she agrees to this marriage, Iâll grant her whatever she wants, even if it's a noble title or an official rank,â said Salvador. Derek breathed a sigh of relief. âAs always, you're wise, Your Majesty!â ... Carissa knelt in the study with her head bowed. Recalling that Carissa was now the only one left the Sinclair family, Salvador felt nothing but pity for her. "Rise and speak," he commanded. Carissa bowed deeply with her hands clasped. "Your Majesty, I know it's presumptuous of me to seek an audience today. But I also wish to implore for your grace." "Carissa Sinclair, I have already issued the edict of marriage. It's impossible to revoke it," Salvador said. Carissa shook her head gently. "Your Majesty, I'm not imploring you to reverse that edict, but imploring you for another edict - an amicable divorce with General Warren." The young king was taken aback. "Divorce? You want a divorce?" Carissa nodded her head firmly. She was never someone to pester some man. If Barret Warren loved Aurora Yates so much, then she would let him go. What she needed now was a single edict for an amicable divorce, so she could take away all her dowery and get rid of the despicable Warren family for good, dignified and head high... | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831& | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | shgjfh.com | DCO | https://shgjfh.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=13831&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464198210_1335425697867830_3839403089342624662_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=110&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=EBsfuLbjmDkQ7kNvgFNpGRv&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=And7l2hptBfPwWl1nxuAvCt&oh=00_AYDVj-T9x8n1Dv3QouY1bKbVMtfc5to6Kx8i-fd6lhZf3A&oe=67480CC0 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,512,924 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512639}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
â¤ď¸đ click to read on đ | I watch as my ex-husband Rowan, who's standing next to me, stares at the love of his life, my sister Emma. It is still at my father's funeral, yet he can't hold back his feelings anymore. We were married but instead of two, there were three of us in our marriage. Him, me and the love of his life, Emma, the woman heâs refused to let go for nine long years of our marriage. Itâs honestly sad. The life I have. Living under the perfect shadow that was Emma nailed in the fact that I can never be good enough for anyone. She was my parents' favorite daughter, my husband's love of life. She always comes first in everyoneâs mind while Iâm left chasing after leftovers of their affection. I used to harbor a glimmer of hope for my marriage with Rowan, but this also ended when we got divorced three days ago. âAva, you okay?â Rowan's deep voice always makes me shiver. Itâs then I realize that the service was over and everyone was leaving. Shrugging my shoulders I stand up, without looking at him. I know it seems rude but I just canât look at him. Not when the memory of him staring lovingly at Emma is still fresh in my mind. âSo we finally meet againâ Emmaâs bitter voice says behind me. After what happened nine years ago, Rowan and I soon got married, and Emma vanished without a trace since then. Until now, she showed up again at father's funeral. I turn around to face her. Her face was blotchy and her eyes were red and puffy, but she still looked like a freaking goddess. I sigh. I so didnât want to face her right now. âNot now Emma. Can we just bury father first?â She smiles then leans in so that Iâm the only one that can hear her. âWe will bury him alright but let me tell you that I am here to stay. You also took my family from me all those years ago but no more. I plan to take everything back, including the man that was meant to be mineâ she then steps aside and leaves just as the preacher calls us to go to back where the cemetery is. Iâm left shocked at her words but not really surprised. What she doesnât understand is that she doesnât have to take anything back because none of them were mine to begin with. The family sheâs talking about worships the ground she walks one. And Rowan? Rowan was and still is her man. Pushing down the pain that wanted to drown me, I walked to the place that would be fatherâs final resting place. I stand a little distance from mother, Emma and my brother Travis. Theyâre huddled together. Looking at them and me you would think that I was a stranger just attending the burial instead of part of them. âDust to dustâŚâ the preacher says as they lower fatherâs body to the ground. They then begin to cover his coffin with soil until he is completely buried. Motherâs wails are the loudest as she begs for father to come back to her. Emma and Travis both have silent tears running down their faces as they hold her in their arms. I wipe my tears away. Since no one cares, I need to be strong for myself. Once again people flood us to offer their condolences. I accept them mindlessly. It was like I was there but wasnât at the same time. By the time I come out of it, most people were already dispersed. And there stood Rowan and his parents. I stand awkwardly and don't know if I should greet them. When his parents noticed me, they said something to Rowan and left. I breathed a sigh of relief. I was used to them treating me like that because we both know that I wasnât their choice for their son. Once they leave, we are left standing awkwardly beside each other. Now that his focus wasnât occupied by his parents, it was solely on Emma who was standing a few feet from us. I was about to excuse myself when I hear a screeching of tires. Everything happened so fast. Men with guns opened fire. The minute they started shooting I saw Rowan dive for Emma. I stood shocked as I watched him protect her with his body. I canât believe he abandoned me to protect her. Why was I even surprised? This just proved that Iâll never be his priority. Seeing him protect her with his life completely broke something inside me. âWatch out!â A man with a bullet proof jacket shouted at me. He pushed me out of the way, but it was already too late. Something pierced my skin and I fell from the impact of the hit. | LEARN_MORE | https://weihunda.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=8403& | Happyday | https://www.facebook.com/61558228850235/ | 1,409 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | weihunda.com | DCO | More Free Chaptersđ | https://weihunda.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=8403&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464220573_1074764687536902_460405736839211005_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=9dcvxYHSIXsQ7kNvgE9syHJ&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=Ahlm0DIrIqs4rpvahhKiqCh&oh=00_AYDXY1H6m-7MQ2jItrYDZchXGRczaUyLPamj0ugchcZ1bw&oe=67480882 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Happyday | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,512,600 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
ăăăăŻăŞăăŻăăŚçĄćă§ăčŞăżăă ăăďź | <âŚBěëĄ íĽíë ěŹę°ę¸°ę° ě°ŠëĽ ě¤ ę°ěě¤ëŹě´ ěŹęł ę° ëŹěľëë¤. ě´ëĄ ě¸í´ íěŹ ěŹë§ěěę° 136ëŞ ě ëě´ě°ěźëа ě쥴ěë 3ëŞ ě ëśęłźí ěíŠě ëë¤. ëłě ëĄëšě ëí ě¤íŹëڰěë ě´ë˛ í곾기 ěŹęł ę° ě¤ěę°ěźëĄ ëł´ëëęł ěěë¤. ěľíě°ě ě¸ ëŞ ëżě¸ ě쥴ě ě¤ě íëëĄ ë ë¤ëŚŹě ëśë뼟 ę°ě ěą ě¤íěě¤ ëłě ěě ëě ěěë¤. ꡸ë, ěě ë¤ëڰ í¸ëí°ěě ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. âě§ę¸ ęł ę°ëęťě ě í뼟 ë°ě ě ěěľëë¤. ë¤ěě ë¤ě 깸ě´ěŁźě¸ě.â ěŹęł ę° ëë ꡸ ěę°ëśí° ě§ę¸ęšě§, ë¨í¸ íěě¤ě ě í뼟 ë°ě§ ěěë¤. ě¤ë§ ęˇ¸ę° ě¨ ëëźëĽź ë ë¤ěŠíę˛ í ěŹę°ę¸° ěŹęł 뼟 모뼟 ěźě ěěë¤. ěŹęł ëšě, íěĽěë ěšę°ë¤ě ěě ě´ ěŹę¸°ě 기 ě돴ë ę˛ë ëë ¤ ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë ěŹęł ě 윊겊곟 죽ěě ęłľíŹëĄ ě¨ë ě ëëĄ ě´ ě ěěë¤. 결íźí ě§ 3ë ě´ë ëěě§ë§ ë¨í¸ě ꡸ë ę° ę°ěĽ íěëĄ íë ěę° ě°ë˝ě´ ëě§ ěěë¤. íě°ě ë§ě í ěź ě´ ěë ¤ ě¤ë ę˛ě ëęźë¤. ꡸ë, í´ëí° ë˛¨ ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. íě°¸ě´ë ëŠíę˛ ěë ꡸ë ë ě ě ě ě°¨ëŚŹęł ë°ě ě뼟 íě¸íë¤. í 머ëěë¤. íě°ě ěźęľ´ě´ ě´ëěěĄë¤. âěŹëł´ě¸ě.â ꡸ë ę° ěëŠ ě° ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ě í뼟 ë°ěë¤. ě í ęą´ëí¸ěě ěšě í늴ěë ě°ëĄí 몊ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. [ě°ëŚŹ íě°ě´, ě´ í ëŻ¸ę° ë ë돸ě ě ëŞ ě 몝 ěŁ˝ę˛ ęľŹë. ë돴 ëëźě ë§ě´ěź. ě´ë ë¤ěš ë°ë ěęł ? ěě¤ě´ę° ěě ę°ě´ ěě§?] ę°ěěě ěě¤ě ěší 머ëëĄ íě¨ ě§ě ěŹëë¤ ě¤ ě ěźíę˛ íě°ěę˛ ę´ěŹě ę°ë ëśě´ěë¤. âěě¤ ě¨ëâŚâŚ.â 머ë깰댏ë ꡸ë ě ë§ě ę°ěěě´ ëŹ´ě¸ę°ëĽź ëěš ěą ëŻíë¤. [ě´ë° ě ě ëę° ëě ë´¤ë! ëšěëĄ ë ěë´ëĄ, í´ě¸ ěśěĽę° ë¨í¸ ěźě ë¤ ë´ěŁźęł ěëë° ě´ë ę˛ í° ěŹęł ę° í°ěĄëë°ë ě˝ëšźę¸°ë ěëł´ěŹ? 기ë¤ë ¤ë´ëź! ě´ í ëŻ¸ę° ě ě ëę° ęˇ¸ ë ěě ę°ë§ ëë!] ꡸ë ę° ë¤ě 돟ěë¤. [ě§ę¸ ě´ë ëłěě ěě´? ě§ěŹëĽź ëł´ëź í ë 기ë¤ëŚŹë ´!] íě°ě´ ëłě 죟ě뼟 ěë ¤ěŁźě ę°ěěě ě í뼟 ëěë¤. ꡸ë ë ęł ę°ëĽź íš ěě¸ ěą ë§ěě´ íě ę˝í ěë ěŁźěŹ ë°ëě ëšźëë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ë íľěŚě ě°¸ěźëа 욨ëěě ë´ë ¤ěë¤. âíěëś, ě§ę¸ ëíěë ęą°ěě? ë¤ëŚŹ ëśěě´ ěŹę°íë ěě ě 졨í´ěź í´ě.â ë§ěš¨ ëłě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ě¤ë ę°í¸ěŹę° ęšě§ ëëź ě댏쳤ë¤. âëŞŠë° ě˘ ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźě¸ě. í´ěí´ěźę˛ ě´ě.â íě°ě ë§íŹę° ěźë§ë ë¨í¸íëě§ ę°í¸ěŹę° ëŠíë ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. ěĽę¸°ę° ě ěí´ěź íë¤ëŠ´ ëłěëł´ë¤ë ěě¤ě 본ę°ěě ěěíë í¸ě´ ëě ę˛ ę°ěë¤. ěŹě¤, íě°ě HT꡸룚 íěĽě ëšěěë¤. ě´ë˛ ëë°ě´ ěśěĽě ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ě ěíě ě í ë°°ěšě ꡟ돴ě¸ěě íě ě§ę¸° ěí´ HT꡸룚ě ëíí´ ę°ë ę˛ě´ěë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ěźě 결곟뼟 ěŚě ëł´ęł íę¸°ëĄ ëě´ěěë¤. âíěě¤ ě´ ë¨ě, ëë체 ě§ę¸ ě´ëě ë íęł ěë ęą°ěź?â 결ęľ, ę°í¸ěŹë í´ěíę˛ ë¤ë ꡸ë 뼟 ë§ě§ 몝íë¤. íě°ě ęł§ěĽ ě¤íěě¤ě ëě 몊ë°ě ě§ęł ě ë깰댏늰 ěëŠě˛ëĄ íĽíë¤. ꡸ë, ëłě 1츾 ëĄëšě ě 댏 벽 ëë¨¸ëĄ ěľěí ě°¨ëë˛í¸íě´ ëł´ěë¤. ęł ę¸ ěšěŠě°¨ ëŞ ëę° ęˇ¸ ë¤ëĽź ë°ëĽ´ęł ěěëë° ěě¸í ëł´ë HT ꡸룚 ěě ě ě°¨ë¤ě´ěë¤. 먟ě ě°¨ěě ë´ëڰ ěŹëë¤ě´ ę˛ě ě ěí¸ëĽź ě ě í ë¨ě뼟 뚟곥í ëëŹě¸ęł ěěë¤. ꡸ë ě´ë¤ ěŹě뼟 íě ěęł ěěëë° ęˇ¸ë 뼟 몚ě ěëźë ëŻ ëł´ěë¤. ꡸ě ę˛ě ě ě˝í¸ę° ꡸ë ě íě ë¤ëŚŹëĽź ëŽęł ěěë¤. ë¨ěë íě°ě 쥴ěŹëĽź ě í ěě§ ëŞťí ěą íŠę¸í ëłě ëł¸ę´ ěŞ˝ěźëĄ íĽíë¤. íě°ě ꡸ ě댏ě ěě ěŹě뼟 ěęł ě 돸ě ě§ě°°ě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ę°ë ꡸뼟 ę°ë§í ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. 결íźěí 3ë ëě ě ë ę˛ ë¤ě í ë¨í¸ě 모ěľě í ë˛ë 본 ě ě´ ěěë¤. ęˇ¸ę° ěęł ěë ěŹěë ë꾏ěźęš? ꡸ë ë ę°ě기 ę°ě´ě ěě˛ë íľěŚě´ ë°ë ¤ě¤ë ę˛ě ëęźë¤. ꡸ ęł íľě´ ěźë§ë 인ëě§ í¸íĄě´ 곤ëí ě§ę˛˝ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë, ëłľë ë°ëí¸ěě 깸ě´ě¤ë ę°í¸ěŹę° ë¤ëŚ´ë˝ ë§ë˝ í ěëŚŹëĄ íľíí늰 ꡸ë ě ęłě ěëę°ë¤. âë´ę° ꡸쪽ěźëĄ ę°ę˛. ě ěŹëě´ ę˛˝ě ë´ě¤ě ě죟 ëąěĽíë HT ꡸룚 íęłě íěě¤ě´ěź. ě¤ě ëĄ ëł´ë ë ë¨ěë¤ě´ë°? ě°ëŚŹ ëłěěě ëł´ę˛ ëë¤ë ë돴 ě 기í´. ěŹěěšęľŹ ë°ëŚŹęł ě°ëśě¸ęłźě ě§ëŁë°ěźëŹ ěë ë´.â âě°ëśě¸ęłź? íě¤í´?â âęˇ¸ëź íě¤íě§. ě§ëŁ ě°¨í¸ě ě í 깸 ë´¤ëë° ë˛ě¨ íěę° 12죟ë ëëë°? íě ěíę° ëśěě íě§ ě¤ë ěśíě´ ěěë. ꡸ëě íěŹěĽě´ ěęł ě¨ ęą°ëź ëë°?â ꡸ ë§ě ë¤ě íě°ě´ 머댿ěěźëĄ ë ě§ëĽź ęłě°íë¤. â12죟ëźëŠ´âŚâŚ ë ëŹ ě ?â ě 2í íëě´ ë§şě´ě¤ 읤í íě°ě ë ëŹ ě , 1ěŁźěź ě ë ěśěĽ ěźě ě´ ěĄí ěë íěě¤ě ěźě ëł´ęł ěę° ěę°ëŹë¤. í¸ëí°ě ěĽęł ěë ꡸ë ě ěě´ ë¨ë ¤ěë¤. â꡸ ë ě긴 ěě´ě¸ ęą°ěź?â ꡸ë ë íěě¤ě ě¨ę˛¨ě§ ěë´ëĄ ě¤ë ě ëśí° ëšë°ęłě˝ě ë§şęł ěěë¤. íě§ë§ ě´ě ęť ë¨í¸ě ě¤ěşë¤ě ëí´ěë ë¤ě´ëł¸ ě ě´ ěěë¤. âíěě¤ ěŹěĽě´ ěŹěěšęľŹěę˛ ě°¸ ę°ëłí ę˛ ę°ěâŚâŚ ě ěŹěë ě ěě ëëźëĽź 꾏íë ë´. ëł´ěíë ęł§ ęłľěë°íę° ë ę˛ ę°ěë°?â â꡸ëŹę˛. ëë ěęš ę˛ěí´ ë´¤ě´. ë¤ ěę°ě ě ěŹëě´ ěŹěěšęľŹę° ë§ë ę˛ ę°ě?â ěš´í¸ëĽź ë°ęł ę°ë ě ě ę°í¸ěŹę° ěě ěë ę°í¸ěŹěę˛ í¸ëí° ě ěŹě§ě ëł´ěŹěŁźěë¤. ꡸ëŹě ꡸ë ę° ęšě§ ëëźëа ë§íë¤. âë§ě, ë§ě! ě´ ěŹěěź! ST꡸룚 ë째 ë¸! íěě¤ě´ë ë돴 ě ě´ě¸ëŚŹě§ ěě? íëě´ ë§şě´ě¤ 읤í ę°ě!â ë ěŹëě í¸ë¤ę°ě ë¨ëа ë°ëí¸ěźëĄ 깸ě´ę°ë¤. âST ꡸룚ě´ëźâŚâŚ.â í´ě ěěě ë§ěš íě°ě ě§ěŹě 차뼟 íęł ę°ëŠ´ěë ë§ěě´ ě˘ě˛ëź ě§ě ëě§ ěěë¤. ë°ěݤ ě´ëڰ 창돸 ěë í¸ëí° í늴ě ëśëšě´ 창밹í íě°ě ěźęľ´ě ëšěˇë¤. ě ěě´ ę˛ěí´ ë´¤ě§ë§ íěě¤ęłź ST ꡸룚곟ě ě°ę´ěąě ě í ě°žě ě ěěë¤. âBěě ě ëę°ë ë ëŞ ëŹ¸ę° ě§ěě´ ě´ë° ěěźëĄ ěŽě´ë¤ë ě´ěí´.â ěě¤ě 본ę°ě ëě°Šíë ęą°ě¤ě ëśě´ ěźě ¸ ěěë¤. ëěŁę°ě ę°ě ěëě´ ëě ěě¤ě í 머ëě¸ ę°ěě ěŹěŹę° ě§íĄě´ě 몸ě ěě§í ěą ęˇ¸ë 뼟 기ë¤ëŚŹęł ěěë¤. âě°ëŚŹ íě°ě´ ě꾏ë! ë¤ę° ëłľě´ ë§ěě ꡸ í° ěŹęł ě¤ěë 돴ěŹí꾏ë. ë돴 ëëźě íë§í°ëŠ´ ě¨ě´ ëě´ę° ëťíě§ ëë.â âí 머ë, ě ę´ě°Žěě.â íě°ě ěŹëźę° ěŹęł ěśě ë§ěě´ ěť¸ě§ë§ ěěźëа ë§íë¤. âí 머ë, ěŹě¤ ě ě˘ íźęł¤í´ě.â â꡸ë, ꡸ë. ěźëĽ¸ ěŹëźę°ě ěŹě´ëź. ěě¤ě´íí ě°ë˝í´ ë¨ěźëęš ęł§ ěŹ ęą°ë¤.â íě°ě 몸ě ěě´ë ěę° ěŹí íľěŚě´ ëŞ°ë ¤ě ěźęľ´ě´ ěźęˇ¸ëŹěĄë¤. ę°ěěě ꡸ë ę° ę´´ëĄě´ ě´ě ę° ěě¤ ë돸ě´ëźęł ěę°íë¤. íě°ě 머댿ěě ěě¤ě ěę°ě´ ě¤ěł ě§ëę°ë¤. ꡸ë ěě ěę˛ ě§ě§ 모ěľě ě¨ę¸°ęł ěěë¤. ꡸ěę˛ ěŹěěšęľŹę° ěë¤ë ěŹě¤ě´ ě´ë ę˛ ę°ě´ě ę°ěę° ëě´ ë°í ě¤ě 몰ëë¤. âë´ę° ě§ę¸ęšě§ ě°¸ęł ę˛Źëě¨ ë ě´ íěę°ě ě°ě¤ěě§ë¤ëâŚâŚ.â âŚâŚ ěě¤ě ë¤ěë ë°¤ ëŚę˛ë ëě´ ëł¸ę°ě ëě°Šíë¤. âěě§ ě ě¤ě´? ęš¨ě´ ěěźëŠ´ě ëśě ě ęşź ëě´?â ęˇ¸ę° ěš¨ě¤ě ëśě ěź°ë¤. íě°ě ęˇ¸ë° ęˇ¸ëĽź 보늰 ë§ěě´ ëśí¸íë¤. ꡸ë ë í루 ě˘ ěź ěš¨ëě ëěë§ ěěë¤. ě§ěŹę° ę°ě ¸ë¤ě¤ ěěë ęą°ě ë¨šě§ ëŞťíęł ę˛°ęľ ęˇ¸ę˛ë¤ě ě°¨ę°ę˛ ěě´ë˛ëڰ ěíěë¤. âëšě ëŠ°ěš ëě ě´ëě ěěě´ě?â ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě ëł´ě§ë ěě ěą ěě˛í´ě§ 모ěľěźëĄ ëěěě íěě´ ëŹźěë¤. ěŹíˇě ë˛ě ꡸ě ííí ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ëëŹëŹë¤. ěě¤ě ꡸ë ě 돟ěě 미ę°ě ěëŠ ě°í¸ëڰ ěą ěš¨ë í¤ë 쪽ěźëĄ ëě ëë ¸ë¤. ę˛°íź 3ë ëě ꡸ë ę° ě´ë ę˛ ěě ě íë°Šě ěśęśíë ę˛ě ě˛ěě´ěë¤. âTěě ěë ě§ěŹě 돸ě ę° ěě´ě ěśěĽ ë¤ë ěě´.â ěě¤ě íěě˛ëź ëë´íę˛ ëëľí í, ęˇě°Žë¤ë ëŻ ęą°ěš ę˛ ëĽíě´ëĽź ëě´ë´ëŚŹęł ë ěě¤ ěŞ˝ěźëĄ íĽíë¤. â꡸ëě?â íě°ě ěě ěëŚŹę° ěš¨ě¤ ěě ě¸ë ¸ë¤. âëšěě¤ ęľŹëí ě¤ěĽëęť ěŹě¤ë´¤ëë° TěëĄ ę°ë ëší기í 꾏매ë´ěě´ ěëęľ°ě.â ꡸ë ě ë§íŹě ěěŹě´ ěëŠ ëŹťě´ëŹë¤. âëŹ´ě¨ ë§ě íęł ěśě ęą°ěź?â ěě¤ě´ ěě¤ ě 꾏ě ëŠěś° ěě 돟ěë¤. ęľłě´ ěźęľ´ě ëł´ě§ ěěë ęˇ¸ę° íę° íë°í기 ě§ě ě´ëźë ę˛ěݤě ě ě ěěë¤. âí, ęł§ ëś ę°ě´ í뼟 ë´ę˛ ë¤.â ě 3í íě¨ ě§ě 늰ëëŚŹę° ë ě´ě âëšě ě´ë ꡸ ěŹě, ë체 ě¸ě ëśí° ë§ë ęą°ěź?â íě°ě´ ę˛¨ě° ëŞ¸ě ěśě¤ëŚŹëŠ° 욨ëě 기ë ěěë¤. ěě¤ě ꡸ë ę° 3ë ě íźě¸ě ęł ëĽź í ëëł´ë¤ í¨ěŹ ë§ëë¤ë ę˛ě ěěěąë¤. ě´ě°ë ěźěěëě§ ë°ëě´ ëśëŠ´ ë ěę°ë˛ëŚ´ ę˛ ę°ěë¤. âëšě ë´ ëˇěĄ°ěŹëĽź í ęą°ěź?â ꡸ě ěěě´ ëłíë¤. âë´ę° ꡸ë ę˛ íę°í ěŹëěźëĄ ëł´ěŹě? ë´ę° ě ěíë ëłěěě ë´ ë ëěźëĄ ëšě ë¤ ë ěŹëě ë´¤ě´ě.â ꡸ë ë ëŽě 몊ě댏ëĄ, í ę¸ě í ę¸ě ëë°ëë° ë´ ëąěë¤. ěę°, ěŹěĽě´ 찢기ë ę˛ ę°ěë¤. íě§ë§ ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ěë 몝ë§ë í 기ěě´ ěë Ľíë¤. ꡸ë íě°ě´ ěŹęł ę° ë ę˛ě ě늴ěë ęąąě íë ë§ í ë§ë ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë ęˇ¸ę° íë ë§ë¤ě ë¤ěźëа íě¤ě¤ëŹě´ ëëě´ ë¤ěë¤. âëśëśëĄ ě´ěë 3ë ě´ëźë ěę°ě´ ě돴ę˛ë ěë ę˛ ę°ě.â íě°ě 늰ëëŚŹę° íë ěź ë§ë¤ í¸ě§ěĄë ěě´ë¨¸ëě ěě ě ëěŁę°ěě˛ëź ěŹę¸°ë ěëě´ěę˛ ě ěąě ë¤íë¤. ě§ěěë 죟ëśëĄ ë íěŹěěë íě ě ě¸ ëšě ěí ě ëë§Ąěë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě í 머ë ę°ěě ěŹěŹě ëťě ë°ëź ěë¤, ë¸ ě ëłë ě˘ě ěě늰ëëŚŹę° ëë ¤ęł ë ¸ë Ľíë¤. 3ë ëě ꡸ë§íź íěźëŠ´ ę°ěě ěŹěŹěę˛ ę°ěĄąěźëĄěě ě댏ë 윊ëśí ě§í¨ ę˛ě´ë¤. íě§ë§ ꡸ 결곟ë ě´ë íę°? 3ë ę° íě°ě ěě¤ě 몸ě ěę°ë˝ íëë ë ěę° ěěë¤. í ë°Šě ě°ęł ěěě§ë§ 욨ëë ë°ëĄ ěźę¸° ë돸ě´ěë¤. íě°ě ë°ë ¤ě¤ë íľěŚě ě°¸ěźëа ě°¨ę°ě´ ꡸ě ëě ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. ꡸ëŹë¤ ëŹ´ě¨ ěŠę¸°ę° ëŹëě§ ě댏뼟 ë´ě´ ę°ëłę˛ ěěë¤. âëšě ě´ë¨¸ëë ë´ę° ě ë 몝 ëłěźëŠ´ě 결íźí ěěŹë ěë ěŹěëźęł íěŁ . ꡸ë°ë° ě§ę¸ ëšě ě´ ë°ěě ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŹěě ěě´ëĽź ę°ě§ 깸 ë´ę° ě´ëťę˛ ë°ěë¤ěŹěź íěŁ ?â ę°ě í 욨ëě 기ëęł ěë ꡸ë ë ëšěĽě´ëźë ě°ëŹě§ ę˛ ę°ěë¤. íě§ë§ ęł ę°ëĽź ęźżęźżíę˛ ěłë¤ęł ë ꡸ě ěˇęšě ěĄěë¤. íě§ë§ ęł§ë°ëĄ ęľľě ꡸ě ěě ěĄíęł ë§ěë¤. íěě¤ě ě°¨ę°ě´ ëëšěźëĄ ꡸ë 뼟 뚤í ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. âí경ě´ë ë´ ě¸ěť¨ëę° ěëěź. 20ë ëę˛ ěęł ě§ë¸ ěŹě´ěź.â âě´ëŚ´ ě ëśí° ěęł ě§ë¸ ěŹě´ě꾏ë.â íě°ě ěě ě ěĄęł ěë ěě¤ě ěě ě ě íě´ ë¤ě´ę°ë ę˛ě ëęźë¤. âí경ě´ę° 5ë ě ě ěśęľí ě´íëĄ ěëĄ íë˛ë ě°ë˝í ě ěě´.â ꡸ë ë ë¤íľě뼟 í ë ě¸ę˛ ë§ě ę˛ ę°ěë¤. âě´ěŠě§ ě돴댏 ě°žěë´ë ěŹě뼟 ë§ë íě ě´ 1ë ěëëźëâŚâŚ.â íě§ë§ ꡸ ěŹěę° ěě í ę˛ě´ ë¤ě ěę°ëŹë¤. ꡸ë ë ë¤ě ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ęł ě° ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ëŹźěë¤. â꡸ëě ě´ě ë ěŹë, ë¤ě ë§ëë ęą°ěě?â íěě¤ě ëę° ë§íë ¤ë¤ę° ě ě ë¤ëŹźěë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ë ě´ëěě§ ęˇ¸ë ě ëëě뼟 ě 늴ěźëĄ ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. âë´ę° ě ëšě ě ě´ ęłł ě죟ě¸ěźëĄ ë¤ěëě§ ë˛ě¨ ěě ę˛ ę°ęľ°.â HT ꡸룚 ë´ěë ěěě ěíë íě ë¤ě´ ë§ěęł íęłě ě댏뼟 ë ¸ëŚŹë ěë¤ë ë§ěë¤. ěě¤ě í 머ëě¸ ę°ěě ěŹěŹë ěźëśëŹ Běě ëŻ¸íź ěŹěą ě¤ěě ěě늰ë댏뼟 ęł¨ëź ęˇ¸ě 결íźěí¤ęł , ěë¤ ë¸ě ëłě ꡸룚 ë´ěěě ě ě§ëĽź ë¨ë¨í íë ¤ęł íë¤. ę°ěě ěŹěŹë ěě ě ěëŞ ě ęľŹí´ ě¤ íě°ě ěě늰ëëŚŹëĄ ěśě˛íë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ě°žěę° ëŞ¨ë ěźě ę°ěíě§ ěę˛ ë¤ęł ě˝ěíęł ëšë°ę˛°íźě ëěíë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ëšěě ěě ě´ ě´ěíë ě ëę°ë ë¸ëë ěľë 돸ě ëŤěë¤. ꡸ íëĄ HT꡸룚ě ë¤ě´ę° ěě¤ě ěźě ëë ëšěëĄ ěźí´ěë¤. ꡸ëě ęˇ¸ę° íě°ěę˛ ě ě ëě§ ë§ëźęł ę˛˝ęł íë ę˛ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ę° ěěźëа ë§íë¤. âě긴ě, íë뼟 ěě ëŁěźëŠ´ ë ę°ęł ěśě ę˛ ěŹë ěěŹě´ěěě?â ꡸ë ě ěźęľ´ě 창밹íě§ë§ ëëěë ëšě´ ëęł ěěë¤. ěźęľ´ě 미ěë§ě ěěëëźëŠ´ ë§ěš 돴ë¤ěě ęą¸ě´ ëě¨ ě˛ë ęˇě ę°ě ëł´ěěě§ë 몰ëë¤. ěę°, ěě¤ě íě°ě´ ě´ëę° ëłíë¤ęł ëęźë¤. íě§ë§ ꡸ ë§ě ě ë°ě ë´ě§ë ěěë¤. ꡸ë ę° ěĄí ěě ěŹëаě ëšźëë¤. 꽤 í° ěš¨ě¤ě ě°˝ëŹ¸ě´ ëŤí ěěëë° ęłľę¸°ę° ě ě ëľëľí´ě§ęł ěěë¤. ě¨ëë ě ě ëěě ¸ ě´ëë§ ě¨ëęłę° 30ë뼟 ę°ëŚŹí¤ęł ěěë¤. ëě´ ęłľę¸°ě ěě¤ě ě¨ě´ ę°ëš ě¤ë ę˛ě´ ëęť´ěĄë¤. íě°ě ë¤ě ꡸ě ě ě¸ ęšě ěě ę°ě ¸ë¤ ëë¤. ꡸ë íźíě§ ěęł ę°ë§í ěěë¤. ꡸ë ě˝ę° íę° ë ëŻí ěźęľ´ě´ěě§ë§ ë돴 ëě ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ě´ëź ę¸°ë Ľě´ ěě´ ëł´ěë¤. âëšě ě§ę¸ ëŹ´ě¨ ě§ě íë ęą°ěź?â ě 4í ë ě´ě íě¨ ě§ě 늰ëëŚŹę° ěëěě íě°ě ěě¤ě ě ě¸ ë¨ěśëĽź íëěŠ íěë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ęˇ¸ě 볾ꡟě ë°ëź ë´ë ¤ę°ëа ě ě ë§ěśěë¤. ě¤ëŤëě ę°ěś°ě¨ ěě¤ě ëí ę°ë§ íě¸ě§ ęˇë°ęšě§ ëśě´ěĄë¤. ꡸ë ë ěë댟ě ëŠěśě§ ěě ěą ě° ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ë§íë¤. âë´ę° ě´ëťę˛ ě´ ě§ě ěě ě죟ě¸ě´ ëěëě§ ěěëęł ě? ě´ëťę˛ ěě ě ěę˛ ě´ě. ě ě돴ë ëšě ě ěě´ëĽź ëłë ęą°ěě. ě§ę¸ ëë ë´ ě돴뼟 ěííęł ěë ęą°ęł ě.â âě´ëťę˛ ęˇ¸ë° ë§ě?!â í뼟 ë´ë ěě¤ě ííí ëłľęˇźě´ ě¸ëŁŠëśëŁŠ ěě§ěë¤. âë°Š ěě ěľěě 뼟 ě˘ ëżë ¸ě´ě. 쥰ę¸ë§ ě°¸ěźëŠ´ ęł§ ę´ě°Žěě§ ęą°ěě. ě ë ě ě돴뼟 ěí´ ěě´ëĽź ę°ě§ë ¤ë ę˛ëżě´ěě.â ꡸ë ë ë ëë´íęł ęłźę°íę˛ íëíë¤. ě ěë íë˛ë ëł´ěŹě¤ ě ěë ěěźí 모ěľě´ěë¤. íě°ě ě ꡚě ě¸ ëë°ě ěě¤ě ëŞ¸ě´ ëł¸ëĽě ěźëĄ ë°ěí기 ěěíęł í¸íĄë ęą°ěš ě´ěĄë¤. ě´ ëŞ¨ë ę˛ ěľěě ë돸ě´ëźęł ěěźëĄ ëëě´ëа, ěě¤ě í ëě ęš¨ëŹźě´ ę°ęšě¤ëĄ ëě°žě ěźë§ě ě´ěąěźëĄ íě°ě 깰욨ěë ěě ę˝ ěěź ěĄěë¤. âěľíě°, ë ě ë§ ě겨ě.â ěě¤ě ë§ě ꡸ë ě ëě´ě¤ëĽ´ë ěë§ě´ ěěę°ě íě ę°ëźěě ë˛ë ¸ë¤. íě°ě ëě ëëŹźě´ ęł ěë¤. ë§ě§ë§ě¸ ëŻ í ë§ë 돟ěë¤. âë뼟 ěë ę˛ ęˇ¸ë ę˛ ęľŹěě§ëě?â â꡸ë!â ěě¤ě ꡸ë 뼟 ëë°ëĄ ěłë¤ëł´ëŠ´ě 쥰ę¸ë ë§ě¤ě´ě§ ěęł ëëľíë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ë°ěłëë¤. ëë ꡸ë ě íë§ëë íęł ěśě§ ěěë¤. ěě¤ě íě°ě´ ë˛ę¸´ ěˇě ě§ě´ ë¤ęł ë¤ě ě 기 ěěíë¤. ꡸ë ë¨ěśë ě ęˇ¸ě§ ěě ěą ěąíźěąíź ęą¸ě´ ëę°ë˛ë ¸ë¤. ë°ŠëŹ¸ě´ âěž âíęł ëŤí늴ě 죟ěę° ë¤ě 쥰ěŠí´ěĄë¤. íě°ě ęˇ¸ę° ëę°ě 긴ěĽě´ íë ¤ ë°ëĽě 죟ě ěěë¤. ëěë ěë§ě´ ě°¨ěŹëë¤. ěě¤ě ë°Šě ëě늰 ěę°íë¤. âě´ ě ëëĄ íěźëŠ´ ěë ë§ěë ěě´ě§ę˛ ě§âŚâŚ.â âŚâŚ ë¤ěë ě욨, íě°ě ěě§ ěąěš ěě ë¤ěš ë¤ëŚŹëĽź ě ë깰댏늰 ěŹíę°ë°Šě ëęł ěë츾ěźëĄ ë´ë ¤ę°ë¤. ě§ě ě´ëŚźě ëë ę°ě ëśę° ěěŹëĽź ě¤ëšíęł ěěë¤. ę°ěě ěŹěŹë ě벽기ë뼟 ëëŚŹëŹ ę°ëëź ě§ě ëšě´ ěíěë¤. âě´ë¨¸, ěě¸ë! ěŁ˝ë¤ ě´ěë ě§ ěźë§ ëě§ë ěěëë° ë˛ě¨ ě§ ëęł ě´ë ę°ë ¤ë ęą°ěě? íšě ěŹí ę°ě?â íěě¤ě ěšëě íěěě´ ëšě 깰댏늰 ë§íë¤. ꡸ë ë íěŹ Bëíęľ 2íë ě ěŹíě¤ě´ë¤. ěěě íě°ęłź ě´ë ę˛ ę°ěĄąěźëĄ ë§ëë ę˛ě´ ěŹě í ěľěíě§ ěęł ëśí¸íę¸°ë§ íë¤. âëę°ę¸° ě ě ë 머댏 íë ęą° ě˘ ëěěŁźęł ę°ě.â íě°ě ěěŹěŁźę° ě˘ě í¸ě´ëź ěěě 머댏뼟 ęł§ě ěě§í´ěŁźěë¤. ě¤íěźě´ ě˘ěě ěšęľŹë¤ëĄëśí° ëśëŹěě ěë¤. íě§ë§ ě¤ë íě°ě ꡸ë ě ë§ě ě í ëꞸë íě§ ěęł ě§ě ëęł ë´ë ¤ěë¤. ë§ěš¨ ęˇëśě¸ě˛ëź ěšěĽí íě¨ ě§ěě ěěŁźě¸ ě´ěě ěŹěŹě ë§ěŁźěł¤ë¤. ꡸ë ë HT꡸룚 ííęˇ íěĽě ëë˛ě§¸ ěë´ě´ě ěě¤ě ěšě´ë¨¸ëěë¤. ě´ěě ë ě˛ěëśí° íě°ě ěˇě°¨ëŚźęłź ę°ě ë°°ę˛˝ě´ ë§ěě ë¤ě§ ěě í¨ëśëĄ ë§í기 ěźě¤ěë¤. âě욨 ëë°ëëśí° ěŹíę°ë°Šě ëęł ë¤ë늰 ëíë ě§ě´ěź? ëšěĽ ë´ë ¤ëęł ě˛ěě¤ě¸ ě´ëިëě´ë ëěëź. ęł§ ěëĄ ěŹëě´ ë¤ě´ěě ě§ë´ę˛ ë ęą°ëęš.â íě°ě ëęşźíě´ ë¨ë ¤ěë¤. ěě ě´ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ęł ěë ěźě´ ěźě´ëęł ěěë¤. ꡸ë, ěěě ëŁęł ěë íěěě´ ęśę¸ěŚě ě°¸ě§ ëŞťíęł ëŹźěë¤. âěëĄ? ëę°ě?â âëę° ě˘ě 죽ë íę˛˝ě´ ë§ęł ëę° ë ěę˛ ë?â âë¤? í경ě¸ë ęˇęľíě´ě?â âëěě¤ę¸°ë§ í ę˛ ěëęł , ë¤ ě¤ëš ěě´ëĽź ę°ěĄěě. ě°ëŚŹě§ í°ę° ě˘ěě ě ęš ě기 ě§ěźëĄ ë¤ě´ę°ę¸° ě ě ěŹę¸°ě 몸ě ěśě¤ëĽź ęą°ěź.â ꡸ë ë ě´ěźę¸°í늴ě íě°ě íë˛ íë ěłë¤ëł´ěë¤. 믟í경ě´ěź ë§ëĄ ěě ě´ ěę°í´ě¨ ě´ěě ě¸ ëŠ°ë댿ę°ě´ěë¤. ě ě´ě ꡸ ěźě´ ěëěěźëŠ´ ěě¤ě í경곟 결íźíě ę˛ě´ë¤. ꡸ë ę° íě°ě ë´ë ¤ë¤ëł´ëŠ´ě 돴ěíë íŹëĄ ë§íë¤. âë ěě§ë 깰기 ěě ëŠíë ëíęł ěë? ě˛ěíëŹ ę°ě§ ěęł ?â ěě ę°ěěźëŠ´ íě°ě í댟ěě´ ěě´ë¨¸ëě ëšě뼟 ë§ěśěě ę˛ě´ë¤. íě§ë§ ě¤ëě ěě ě 늸ěíë ꡸ë ě ëťëëĄ íęł ěśě§ ěěë¤. íě°ě ë돴ëë ęł íľě¤ëŹě ě§ë§ 욨찊íę˛ ëě í íë뼟 ěě§ ěęł ë§íë¤. âě¤ëëśí° ě ě ěě¤ ě¨ë ë ě´ě ëśëśěŹě´ę° ěëěě. ěěě´ ë¨¸ëŚŹ íë ęą°ë ë°Š ě˛ě ę°ě íëë ěźě ě´ě ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŹëěę˛ ěí¤ě¸ě.â ě 5í ě´íźíŠěě ě´ěě ěŹěŹë íě°ě´ ě ęłźë ěě í ë¤ëĽ¸ íŹëĄ ë§íë ę˛ě ëł´ęł ëě í 믿기ě§ę° ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë 읤ë¤ë ěŹíě´ě´ę° ë°í ë°ě§ëĽź ë ěę°ë˝ěźëĄ íě°ě ę°ëŚŹěź°ë¤. âęˇ¸ę˛ ëŹ´ě¨ íëěź!? ë°Šę¸ íë ë§ ë¤ě íë˛ í´ë´!â íě§ë§ íě°ě 쥰ę¸ë ëë ¤ěíë 기ě ěě´ ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ëë°ëĄ ěłë¤ë´¤ë¤. â믟í경ě´ëźë ěŹěę° ě§ě ë¤ě´ě¤ëŠ´ ꡸ ěŹěíí ě§ěěźě ěí¤ě¸ě. ě ë ěěźëĄ íě§ ěě ęą°ěě.â íě°ě ěľëě˛ëź ëśě ě ě ëĄ ëë°ëë° ë§íë¤. ë§ě íęł ëë ěě´ ěěíë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹë ꡸ë ě ë§ě ë˛ěťĽ í뼟 ëë¤. âë!â âěë§, ěë§!â ěěě´ íĽëśí ěë§ě íě ëśěĄęł 몊ě댏뼟 ëŽěśě´ ë§íë¤. âěě¸ë íë ęą° ë§ěŁ ? ě´ě Żë°¤ě ě¤ëš ę°âŚâŚ.â ꡸ë ë ëśë ě§ě ëśěąě§ě´ëźë íë ¤ë ëŻ ě´ě Żë°¤ ěźě ęşźë´ë ¤ęł íë¤. ꡸ 모ěľě ëł´ë íě°ě í뼟 ëě°ë ¤ë ěëę° ěśŠëśí ëł´ěë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹë ë¸ě ěë뼟 ę¸ë°Š ěěěąęł ë¤ě ě°¨ëśí´ěĄë¤. ꡸ë ë íšě ě ęą°ë¤ë¨šęą°ëŚŹë íŹëĄ ë§íë¤. âë¨í¸ íë ëśěĄě§ 몝íë 죟ě ě ëł ěľě§ëĽź ë¤ ëśëŚŹë¤. ę°í ěě´ë¨¸ë íě í´?â íě°ě ë댿ë댿 ě§ě ëęł ëě¤ë¤ę° ě í ě 꾏ěě ë°ęą¸ěě ëŠěśěë¤. ěŹěĽë°ëě´ ëš¨ëźě§ëŠ´ě ë¨¸ëŚŹę° ěŞźę°ě§ ëŻ ěí ë¤. ꡸ë ë ęł ę°ëĽź ëë ¤ ěě íźëśęł ěśě ë§ěě ęžš ë뼴늰 ě°¨ę°ę˛ ë§íë¤. âě§ë 3ë ëě ěě´ę° ěěë ę˛ ë¤ ě ë돸ě´ëźęł íě ¨ěŁ ? ě ěěŹí기 ě ě ěě¤ ě¨ěę˛ ëšë¨ę¸°ęłź ě§ëŁëĽź ë°ěźëźęł íë í¸ě´ ëš ëĽź ęą°ěě. ꡸ëŹëŠ´ ěě ě´ ěëë ěě¸ě´ ęłźě° ë꾏 쪽ě ěëě§ ě ě ěě ęą°ěě.â âë, ëę° ę°í!â íě°ě ë§ě ě´ ěŹěŹě ěě ë ë¤ ęšě§ ëëë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹë 머댏 ëęšě§ íę° ěšë°ěë¤. âěľíě°! ë ëë ě°ëŚŹ ěě¤ě´íęł ęź ě´íźěí¤ęł ë§ í ë ëęł ë´!â ꡸ëě íě°ě ěě¤ě í 머ë ę°ěě ěŹěŹěě ě ě ěę°í´ě íě¨ ě§ě ěŹëë¤ęłź ë¤íźě íźíë¤. ě ë§í´ě ě기 ě겏ě ë´ě¸ě°ě§ ěęł ěë§íę˛ ě§ë´ěë¤. ě§ę¸ęšě§ë ě§ě ěŹëë¤ęłź ę°ëąě´ ěę¸¸ęš ë´ ëë ¤ěí늰 ě§ëě§ë§ ě´ě ë ě 경 ě°ě§ ěę¸°ëĄ íë¤. â꡸ëŹěëę°ě.â ꡸ë ë íë§ë ë´ëąęł ěě¤ě 본ę°ëĽź ëěë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹę° íę° ëě ę¸¸ę¸¸ě´ ë°ë ë§ë ěę´ěěë¤. íě°ě´ ëę°ě ë§ě ě´ ěŹěŹë ëę° ě´ěíë¤ë ěę°ě´ ë¤ěë¤. ꡸ë ë ë¸ íěěě ë°ëźëł´ëа 돟ěë¤. â2츾 ěŹëźę°ě ě°ëŚŹě§ě ë ë ë§í ëŹźęą´ě´ ěě´ěĄëě§ ě ě´í´ë´. ë¤ęł ëę°ë ěşëŚŹě´ę° 꽤ë 돴깰ě ëł´ě´ëë° íšě ěąę˛¨ę°ëě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ěě!â ě ě í ëśëŚŹëěź ęłë¨ě ë°ě´ë´ë ¤ě¤ë íěěě ěě ěëĽę° íë ë¤ë ¤ ěěë¤. âěë§, ěě´ě§ ęą´ ěě´ě. ëě 욨ë 머댏맥ě ëę° íë ěě´ě!â ěëĽëĽź ëšźěě ě´í´ëł´ë ě´ ěŹěŹě ëëšě´ íë¤ë ¸ë¤. [ě´íźíŠěě] ě´ ěŹěŹë ęł§ěĽ ěě¤ěę˛ ě í뼟 ęą¸ě´ íě°ě íę°ě ꡸ěę˛ ë¤ ěěëë¤. íí ë°ë ě´ë¨¸ëě ě ěě ëě¤ë ë¨ě´ë¤ ě¤ âě´íźíŠěěâ, âë°ę¸°ëśě â ëąě ë¤ě ěě¤ě ěěě ęą¸ě´ ë ě¸íŹëĽź 깸ěšęł ěŚě íěě¤ě ëě°ë¤. "ěë§, ěë§! ěźë¨ ě§ě ě˘ě." ęˇ¸ę° ëŽě 몊ěëŚŹëĄ ě´ë¨¸ë뼟 ě§ě ěěź°ë¤. [ë´ę° ě§ę¸ ě§ě íę˛ ě겟ě´? ë´ ęˇí ěë¤ěę˛ ě´ ë°ě ë§ë¤ě ě¨ ë¨ëë°? ë§ěš¨ í경ě´ę° ë¤ě´ěŹ ęą°ëęš ě´ íě´ë°ě ě§ ëę°ě¤ ęą´ ě°¸ ęł ë§ě§ë§. ěë, ě§ę° ëëźęł ę°í 먟ě ě´íź ě기뼟 ęşźë´? 몽ëĽě´ ě°ě§ëĄ ěŤěë´ë ěěě°Žě ë âŚâŚ] ě´ë¨¸ëě ě´ěźę¸°ę° 길ě´ě§ ę˛ ę°ě ěě¤ě ě´ëě´ íě ěźëĄ íľíě˘ ëŁ ë˛íźě ëë ë¤. ěŹíęť ěě˘ ě ě´ęł ëěš ëš ëĽ´ę˛ íëíë íě°ě´ ě´ë° ěźě ě ě§ë ë¤ë ěŹě¤ě´ ëě í 믿ě´ě§ě§ ěěë¤. íě§ë§ ě´ě Żë°¤ íěěë ëŹëë ꡸ë ę° ěę°ëŹë¤. ꡸ë í´ëí° ě°ë˝ě˛ 몊ëĄěě íě°ě ë˛í¸ëĽź ę˛ěíë¤. ęˇ¸ę° ë¨źě ě í뼟 ęą°ë ę˛ě 3ë ë§ě ě˛ěě´ěë¤. íľíě°ę˛°ěě´ ë¤ëŚŹë ěę°, ëšěě¤ ęľŹëí ě¤ěĽě´ ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í°ěě ë´ëŚŹëë ꡸ěę˛ ë¤ę°ěë¤. âěŹěĽë, ë°Šę¸ ě ě´ëŠěźëĄ ěëĽę° íë ëě°Šíëë°, ěľíě° ëšěě ěŹě§ěě ëë¤.â 꾏ě¤ěĽě ë돴 ëëź ě¨ě´ ë§í ě§ę˛˝ě´ěë¤. â꡸ëě ěľëšěę° ě§ííë ěŹě ë¤ě´ ě ě§ ěěľëë¤. ꡸ ě¤ ě ěź ě¤ěí íëĄě í¸ę° ëë°ě´ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëíě¸ë° ěľëšěę° ěě§ íěěěę˛ ě 돴 ě¸ęłëĽź íě§ ěěěľëë¤. ě´ëťę˛âŚâŚ íě¤ ęą´ě§âŚâŚ.â ěě¤ě ëŻëšě´ ëěą ě´ëěěĄë¤. ꡸ë í´ëí°ěě ěŹěě 몊ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. [ęł ę°ëě´ ě í뼟 ë°ě ě ěěľëë¤. ě ě íě ë¤ě ęą¸ě´ ěŁźě기 ë°ëëë¤.] í, ěľíě°. ě§ę¸ ë´ ě í ěšëë¤ ě´ęą°ě§? ě 6í íěě¤ě ě°žěę°ë¤ ęłľí ëĄëšě ě ěë ěľíě°ě ě ě í´ě§ í¸ëí°ě ě¨ě´ í¸ě´ë 기ëśě´ěë¤. ěë§ë ě¤ëŤëě íě¨ ę°ëʏěę˛ ěľěě ë°ě기 ëëŹ¸ěź ę˛ě´ë¤. íě§ë§ ě§ę¸ě ě¨ëŞ¸ě´ ę°ë˛źě ë¤. ě¤ę°ë ěŹíę°ë¤ě ëł´ë íě°ě ěę°ě ě 겟ë¤. âBě뼟 ë ëë¤ęł ěę°íë ě˘ ěąěěěíë¤.â â꡸ëë ę´ě°Žě, ë ě´ě íë ěźě ěě ęą°ěź.â ꡸ë ë ë¨ěí íěě¤ě ěŹëě´ ěěë¤ęł ë§ ěę°íě§ë§, ě§ę¸ě ě´ ëŞ¨ë ę˛ ë¤ ęˇ¸ę° ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŹëě ěŹëíęł ě기 ë돸ě´ëźë ę˛ě ě ě ěěë¤. âě°¨ëźëŚŹ ęšëíę˛ ë ë죟ë ę˛ ë ëě.â íě°ě ęł§ěĽ ęłľí ěš´ě´í°ëĄ ę°ě 체íŹě¸ě íęł , ě´ëݏ Dęľí í°ěźě ě매í ěíěë¤. ě˛ě ꡸ë ë ę°ěĄąě ë ë ě ëśě ě¨ę¸°ęł Běě 머돟ë ë¤. ě´ë˛ě Dęľěě ě´ëڰ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëí íëĄě í¸ë§ ěëěë¤ëŠ´ í ěë˛ě§ë ꡸ë ě ěě¤ě ë§ëęł ěśě´íě ¨ě ę˛ě´ęł , ě´ íëĄě í¸ëĽź HT꡸룚ě ěšě¸íě§ ěěě ę˛ě´ë¤. ꡸ëŹë ěě¤ě ę°ěŹí´í기ë읤ë ꡸ë íźě ëł´ëë¤. ě´ě íě° ě°¨ëĄěë¤. âěë íěëęš, ěë. ě´ í°ěźě íěŹ ě 겨 ěě´ ëšëśę° ě˛ëŚŹí ě ěěľëë¤.â ëšěŚëě¤ ěš´ě´í° ě§ěě ě ě¤íę˛ ęą°ě íë¤. âě 겨ěë¤ęł ě?â 믿ě ě ěë íě°ě ě¨ëŞ¸ě´ ěźě´ëśěë¤. âęˇ¸ë´ ëŚŹę° ěëë°âŚâŚ, ë¤ě íë˛ íě¸í´ 죟ěę˛ ě´ě?â âíěŹ ęłě˘ëĄ ě매íě ¨ëě? ë°Šę¸ íëśí ę˛ěźëĄ íě¸ëëë°, ě ëśěŚ ě˘ ëł´ěŹěŁźěę˛ ěľëęš?â ââŚâŚ.â íě°ě 돸ë í ę°ě§ ěŹě¤ě´ ë ěŹëë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ëšěě기ě íěŹěě ë§ë¤ě´ě¤ ëëśëśě ęłě˘ë HTęˇ¸ëŁšě´ ę´ëŚŹíë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ě ëśěŚěâŚâŚ. ěźë§ě íěŹ ě¸ěŹëśěě ě´ë¤ ę˛ě ëąëĄí´ěź íë¤ëа ë¤ęł ę° ěíěë¤. íě°ě ë돴 긴ěĽí´ ěě´ ëë ë¨ë ¸ë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě˛ë°ě ë¨ě§ ěě ě´ ëě뼟 í루 뚨댏 ë ëęł ěśě´ 체ęłě ě´ě§ 몝í ëśëśě´ ë§ěë¤. âěŁěĄí´ě, ě ę° ě íí´ě 돟ě´ëłźę˛ě.â ꡸ë ë ę°ěĽěëŚŹëĄ ęą¸ě´ę° í´ëí°ě ęşźë´ HT꡸룚 ě¸ěŹíě ě í뼟 깸ěě§ë§ ě íë ęą¸ëŚŹě§ ěěęł , ěŹěŠí ě ěë ë˛í¸ëźë ëŠěě§ë§ ë´ë¤. íě°ě 머댏ěě´ ěíěěĄë¤. âě´ëťę˛ ë´ í´ëí° ë˛í¸ë HT꡸룚ěě ěźę´ě ěźëĄ ę´ëŚŹíë¤ë 깸 ěęł ěěěęš!â âHT꡸룚, HT꡸룚!â HT꡸룚ě ęłěí´ě ꡸ë ě 깸댟ëě´ěë¤. ęłľíě ëš ě ¸ëě¨ íě°ě íŠę¸í íě뼟 ěĄęł HT꡸룚 ëšëŠěźëĄ íĽíë¤. 차창 ë°ěźëĄ ëšę° íëë°Šě¸ ë¨ě´ě§ę¸° ěěíęł , ęł§ ě°ë ěě 깴돟ë¤ě´ ëě ë¤ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ë ě´ě 기ěŹěę˛ ëě ęą´ë¨ ë¤ ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź ëęł HT꡸룚 본ę´ěźëĄ ë¤ě´ę°ë¤. ë¤íí ꡸ë ě í´ěŹ ěěě ěě§ íźě§ě§ ěěęł , íě°ě ëšě ě ě´ íí¸ëŹě§ 머댏뼟 ě 댏í í ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í°ëĽź íë¤. ꡸ë ë ě¸ěŹíě´ ěë 12츾ě ëë ¸ë¤. âěě´ęł , ěľ ëšěë, ě¤ë ëš ě¨ë¤ęł íëë° ëŞ¨ëĽ´ě ¨ë ë´ě.â ě¸ěŹí ě°¨ěĽě ěŹěąě¤ëŹě´ ěě§ě ěŚę˛¨ íë 기ěě¤ëźëšě´ě, ěëśě ëĽí ě ě´ě¨ě´ěë¤. ěě¤ě´ íě°ěę˛ ěí´ěŁźě§ ěë ę˛ě 본 ꡸ë íě íě°ě ë§ëíë ë°ě ěľěíë¤. âë´ ě ëśěŚě ě´ëěě´ě?â íě°ě ꡸ě ëíí ěę°ě´ ěě기ě ë°ëĄ ěě ëśí° ë§íë¤. âě ëśěŚě´ě? ęˇ¸ëź ě몝 ě°žěě¤ě ¨ë¤ě. 2ëś ě ě ëí ëšěě¤ ęľŹ ě¤ěĽëě´ ę°ě ¸ę°ě ¨ëë° ě ę° ě´ëťę˛ ěę˛ ě´ě.â ââŚâŚ!â íě°ě ě´ ę˛°ęłźëĽź ěěíě´ěź íë¤. ěě¤ě ëšěŚëě¤ëĽź í ë ě겊íęł ě ěíę˛ ěě§ě´ęł íë˛ í ë§ě ë°ęž¸ě§ ěë Běěě ěě죟ë ëííě´ěë¤. ě´ëťę˛ íě°ě´ ě˝ę˛ ꡸ěę˛ ëě í ě ěę˛ ëę°! íě°ě´ ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź ëęł ëěěě ěě¤ěę˛ ę°ë ¤ęł íëë° ě ě´ě¨ě´ ꡸ë 뼟 ěĄěë¤. ꡸ě íëę° ëë°ě ě¸ě§, ě ěę° ěëě§ë ëśëśëŞ íë¤. âí´ęł ë ěë ěě´ě, ě ěę°í´ě. ě§ę¸ ě츾ěěë 꽤 ě¤ěí íěę° ě´ëŚŹęł ěęł , í ëíëęťë ě´ëݏ ě˝íźë ę° ěë¤ęł ë¤ěě´ě.â ě 7í 믟í경ě ëśí íěě¤ě ě˝íźě? ěľíě°ęłź íěě¤ě ëšë° 결íźě í기ě íěŹ ěŹëë¤ě ꡸ë ę° ěě¤ě ëšěëźë ę˛ë§ ěęł ěěë¤. âęˇ¸ëź ëŻźí경ě ę°ëŚŹí¤ë ęą´ę°?â íě°ě ě´íźíěěě ěíŹë ë§ëĽ´ę¸° ě ě í경ě HT꡸룚ě íë ¤íę˛ ëąěĽíë¤. ëě¤ě ꡸ë ë íë íě°ě´ ě¤ë 욨ëěě ě ě ěęł ěě¤ęłź ě ě댏뼟 ę°ě§ę¸°ë í ę˛ě´ë¤. ě´ ěę°ě íě°ě ěě´ ë¨ëŚŹę¸° ěěíě§ë§ ę˛ěźëĄë ë´ë´íę˛ ëëľíë¤. âęł ë§ěě.â ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ęˇ¸ë ë ęł§ë°ëĄ ě¸ěŹí ěŹëŹ´ě¤ě ëę°ë¤. ě ě´ě¨ě ě ě ěë íě ěźëĄ íě°ě ëˇëިěľě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. âěě´ęł , ěľ ëšěëě´ ëíëě ě˘ěíë ęą´ ë°ëł´ę° ěë ě´ě 모ëę° ë¤ ě ě ěëë°, í´ęł ëě§ ěë ę˛ ë ě´ěíě§.â ꡸ë ěť´í¨í°ëĽź 보늰 ë§íë¤. âě, ë ěŹë°ë ěźě´ ěę¸°ę˛ ë¤.â ëíě¤ě´ ěë 츾ě ëě°Ší íě°ě ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í°ěě ë´ëŚŹěë§ě 꾏ëí뼟 ë§ëŹë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ě¤ě ¨ë¤ě.â ꡸ë ě ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź 본 ëíë í댟ěě´ íě°ě´ ě ëśěŚě 찞기 ěí´ ěë¤ë ę˛ě ěęł ě ëśěŚě´ ěë íěě¤ě ę°ëŚŹěź°ë¤. âëšěë ě ëśěŚě ëíëęť ëë ¸ě´ě. ěě§ íě ě¤ě´ě ë°, ěě§ ě¸ ë˛ě§¸ íěěě. ę¸íě늴 ě ę° ë§ěë댴ęšě?â âěë¨, ęˇ¸ë´ íě ěě´ě.â íě°ě 돴ë¤ë¤íę˛ ë§íë¤. âěŹę¸°ě 기ë¤ëŚ´ę˛ě.â âë¤, ěę˛ ěľëë¤. ěť¤íź í ě ę°ë¤ ë댴ęšě?â ëíë ěě¤ě´ ꡸ë 뼟 í´ęł í ěę°ě´ ěë¤ë ę˛ě ěęł ěěë¤. íě°ě ë§ě ěźě ë´ëšíęł ěěęł , ě¤ěí íëĄě í¸ę° ë§ě ꡸ë 뼟 í´ęł í늴 ëšěĽ ě ëší ě§ěě ě°žę¸°ę° íë¤ě기 ë돸ě´ë¤. íě°ě ëíë ꡸ě íëë ě ëł´ë¤ í¨ěŹ ëśëëŹěěĄë¤. âKęľě í¸ëë댽 읤íźěě, ë°°ě´ě§ ěźë§ ě ëě§ë§ě.â âě ě ë§ ę´ě°Žěě.â ěě¤ęłź ęšëíę˛ í¤ě´ě§ęł ěśěë íě°ě 죟ě ěŹëë¤ěę˛ ęłě ë´ě´ěŁźě§ ěěë¤. ě´ ë§ě ë¤ě ëíë ě돴 ë§ë íě§ ěęł ě´ëě´ ěźęľ´ëĄ íěě¤ě ë¤ě´ę° ěě¤ěę˛ ěëĽëĽź ęą´ë¸ë¤. íě°ě ëíě¤ ěě ě§ëę°ë¤ íěě¤ ěŞ˝ě íë ěłë¤ë´¤ë¤. 돸íěŹě´ëĄ ëł´ě¸ íěě¤ ë´ëśěë ěŹëŹ ěŹëě´ í ě´ë¸ě ě¤ěŹěźëĄ ěě ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ëˇëިěľęłź ě ěĽë ë˛í°ě§ 몝í ě ëëĄ ëě ꡸ě ě´ęš¨ëĽź ë´¤ë¤. ꡸ë ě쪽ě ěë ěŹëë¤ě ëł´ęł ëĽź ëŁęł ěěęł , 쥰ę¸ěŠ ëł´ě´ë ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě ě°¨ę°ě ěźëа í ë˛ěŠ ě ě ě´ ěě§ěë¤. ěě¤ě íěě ě§ě¤íęł ěěë¤. ěě ě ë댰 íě°ě ěě ě ěě ë¤ëڰ ěşëŚŹě´ě ëšě í ëť ě ě ěˇě ë´ë ¤ë¤ëł´ěë¤. ë§ě ę°ěěë íěě¤ě ë¤ě´ę°ęł ěśěě§ë§, ꡸깴 ëëŚŹę° ěëëźęł ěę°íë¤. ꡸ë ë ë¤ě ëíě¤ě ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. ëśíŹëŞ í ě 댏ěě§ë§ ě´ë ´íě´ íšě í ěěě ěě ěë ěŹěąě ě¤ëٍěŁě´ ëł´ěë¤. ꡸ ěŹěë ëłěěě ě°ě°í ë§ěŁźěł¤ë íę˛˝ě´ ëśëŞ íë¤. ě§ę¸ ë¤ě´ę°ë ęą´ ěě ě ëśëëŹěě ëí ëżě´ěë¤. ě´ë° ěę°ě íě°ě ě§ě ě ě ëł´ę´í í íěĽě¤ëĄ ę° ě°ŹëŹźëĄ ě¸ě뼟 í늰 ěě¤ěę˛ ě´ëťę˛ ëë ¤ëŹëźęł í ě§ ěę°í늰 ë§ěě ě§ě ěěź°ë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ě ě´ë ę˛ ëŚę˛ ě¤ě ¨ě´ě!â ěě ěťěźëŹ ě¨ ě¸í´ ëšěę° ë¤ę°ě ě¸ěŹëĽź ęą´ë¸ë¤. â꡸ë ę˛ ëë¤.â íě°ě ëłë¤ëĽ¸ ě¤ëŞ ě íě§ ěěë¤. ě¸í´ ëšěę° ë ë í í´ě§ëĄ ěźęľ´ě ëŚěźëа ěě ě ěźęľ´ě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. âě§ë ë˛ě Dęľěě í°ě¤ëš ę° ě´ě´ ëš ěĄë¤ęł í길ë ë¤ě´ě´í¸ íë¤ęł íěëë°âŚâŚ.â âë¤ě ěę°í´ëł´ë ě´ ę˛°íź ë돸ě ě¤í¸ë ě¤ ë°ě ęą°ěě´.â â꡸ë, 결곟ě ěźëĄ ěí ě íě´ěź.â ꡸ë ę°ě기 íěĽě¤ ëŹ¸ě´ ě´ëŚŹëë ě°ěí ěíě ěŹěąě´ ë¤ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ě ěźęľ´ě íěęł íŹëŞ íěźëа ě´ě§ ëśëŁŠí 배뼟 ě ě¸íęł ë ě¨ë޸ěě ęł ęˇí¨ęłź ě°ěí¨ě´ ëŹźěŹ í겟ë¤. í경ě 본 íě°ě ě ě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ę˛ ě´ëąę°ě´ ě겟ë¤. ꡸ë ë ěŹëš¨ëŚŹ ë¨ě 돟기뼟 ëŚęł , ěˇë§¤ëŹ´ě뼟 ě 댏í í ëěěě ëę°ë ¤ íë¤. âě ěë§ě.â ꡸ëŹë ěěě í경ě 몊ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¸ë¤. âë°Šę¸ ěŹëë¤ě´ ěľ ëšěëě´ëźęł ëśëĽ´ëë°, ěě¤ ě¨ ëšě ë§ěŁ ?â ę°ęšěě§ë ë°ě댏ě íě°ě 몸ě ꡸ëëĄ ęľłě´ěĄë¤. í경ě ꡸ë ěę˛ ë¤ę°ę° ëśëë˝ę˛ 미ě뼟 ě§ěë¤. âěě¤ ě¨ íěę° ęł§ ëë ę˛ ę°ěë° ěť¤íź í ěë§ ëíě¤ëĄ ę°ě ¸ë¤ 죟ěę˛ ě´ě? íí¸ ě¨ę° ëŹ´ě¨ ěť¤íźëĽź ě˘ěíëě§ ě ěěěěě, ꡸ë ěŁ ?â ě 8í ě ěę˛ ě죟 ě¤ěí 돟깴ě ëíëęťě ę°ě§ęł ęłěëë¤ ěľíě°ě ě´ëݏ ěŹě§ě뼟 ëěźë 믟í경ě ë§ě ë¤ě ěëŹ´ę° ěě´ ęą°ě íë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ëŻźí경ě ëśíě ęą°ě ëŞ ë šě ę°ęšě 기ě ꡸ë ě ěŹę¸°ëĽź ëśí¸íę˛ ë§ë¤ěë¤. íě§ë§ íě°ě ě ëśěŚě´ ěě§ íěě¤ěę˛ ěěźë ë§ě§ë§ěźëĄ ěĄë¤í ěźě ë§Ąę¸°ëĄ íë¤. ëëśě´ 읤íźëĽź ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźëŠ´ě ěě°ě¤ë ꡸ěę˛ ë§ě 깸 ěë ěěë¤. íě°ě ěŹí¸íĄě í ë¤ ëěíë¤. âěę˛ ěľëë¤.â âęˇ¸ëź ëśíí ę˛ě.â ꡸ë ę˛ ë§í í í경ě íěĽě¤ě ëę°ë¤. ěě í 모ěąě ę° ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ę°ě¸ë ěę°ě´ ě ě ěěě§ë§, ěŹě í í경ěę˛ě í겨 ëě¤ë ěě ę°ęłź íë ¤í¨ě íě°ęłź ë쥰ě ě´ěë¤. ęłźęą° íě°ě ëśě í ě§ěě ꡸ë ěë íę˛˝ëł´ë¤ ëí늴 ëíě§ ëíě§ë ěěë¤. íě§ë§ ëŞ ë ě´ í뼸 ě§ę¸, íě°ě ě´ëźí ě ě¸ěë¤. ěě˛ë 겊차ě ꡸ë ë ě ě댏ě ě°ë ě ěěë¤. ęšě íě¨ě ë´ěŹëа ę°ě ě ěśě¤ëڰ í ě ëíźěźëĄ ę°ěě ęł íěĽě¤ěě ëě¨ íě°ě íëšě¤ëĄ ę°ě 읤íźëĽź ë§ë¤ěë¤. ěě¤ě íě¤í 3 í°ě¤íźęłź ě°ě 뼟 ëŁě ěëŠëŚŹěš´ë ¸ëĽź ě˘ěíë¤. íěę° ëë ěŹëë¤ě íë ëěŠ íěě¤ě ëš ě ¸ëěě§ë§ ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ë°ę˛Źíě§ ëŞťíë¤. âë˛ě¨ ëíě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ę° ęą´ę°?â íě°ě 읤íźëĽź ë¤ęł ëíě¤ ëŹ¸ě ëëë ¸ë¤. âë¤ě´ě¤ě¸ě.â ěěě ë¤ë ¤ě¨ ę˛ě ěě¤ě ě°¨ę°ě´ 몊ěëŚŹę° ěë ě¨ííęł ëśëëŹě´ í경ě 몊ě댏ěë¤. íě°ě ěě´ ë¨ë ¤ íë§í°ëŠ´ 읤íźëĽź ěě ëťíë¤. 긴 ęł ëŻź ëě ꡸ë ë ë§ěš¨ë´ ěŠę¸°ëĽź ë´ě´ ëíě¤ ëŹ¸ě ě´ěë¤. 돸ě ě´ěë§ě ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě 돴ëŚě ěě ꡸ě 몊ě ęť´ěęł ěë í경ě ë°ę˛Źíë¤. ě´ëě ë ěěě íě§ë§ ꡸ ěĽëŠ´ě ë ëěźëĄ ëł´ë íě°ě ě§ě í ě ěěęł ěŹěĽě ęł íľěźëĄ ë°ęł ěěë¤. ëíě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ě¨ íě°ě 본 í경ě ěĄ°ę¸ ëšíŠí ëŻíë¤. âěŹę¸°ě ëęł ëę°ě늴 ëźě.â í경ě ëśëëŹě´ 몊ě댏ě ꡸ë ë ë¤ě 머댿ěě´ ëłľěĄí´ěĄë¤. íě°ě ě˛ě˛í ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ěęł ę˝¤ ę°ęšě´ 깰댏ěě ěě ě ë°ëźëł´ęł ěë ěě¤ě ëęłź ë§ěŁźěł¤ë¤. ꡸ě ëěě ëżě´ě ¸ ëě¤ë ëę¸°ę° ë¨ě¨ě ěě ě ěźěźë˛ëŚ´ ę˛ ę°ěë¤. ꡸ ěę° íě°ě ě§ę°ě ěźëĄ ěě¤ě´ ěźëśëŹ ęˇ¸ë° ëŞ¨ěľě ëł´ěë¤ë ę˛ě ěěë¤. âë´ę° ě ěë ě§ ě늴ě ëíí ęľłě´ ě´ë° 모ěľě ëł´ě´ë ě´ě ę° ëěź!â âěľ ëšěë?â ě°ěż 읤ë ě ěë íě°ě 본 íę˛˝ě´ ě ě ě´ěë¤. âë¤.â íě°ě ęł ę°ëĽź ě´ě§ ëëě´ęł 읤íźëĽź í ě´ë¸ ěě ěŹë ¤ ëě í ëë§ěšëŻ ëěę°ě§ë§ ë¨ ë 깸ě ë§ě 깸ěě ëŠěˇë¤. ë¤ěě ë¤ë ¤ě¤ë íŹëݏí ě댏ě ꡸ë ě 머댏ěě ë¤ěěź ěë ë ěŹëě 모ěľëżě´ěë¤. íě°ě ë¤ëŚŹě íě´ íë ¤ 죟ě ěě ę˛ ę°ěë¤. íě§ë§ íěŹě ěźëĄ ë˛í źë¤. ꡸ëŹë í경ě ěě ęłź ěě¤, ëë§ě ěę°ě ë°Ší´íë ꡸ë ě 쥴ěŹę° ęą°ěŹë ¸ë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ë ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŠęą´ ěěźě¸ě?â â꡸âŚâŚ.â íě°ě ëë´ ěŠę¸°ëĽź ë´ě´ ë¤ě íë˛ ë¤ëĽź ëě ë§íë¤. âě ěę˛ ě죟 ě¤ěí 돟깴ě ëíëęťě ę°ě§ęł ęłěëë¤. ëíë, ëë ¤ěŁźě¸ě.â 200ě 곹미í°ě ëŹíë ëíě¤ě ëśě기ë ěěę°ě ěźě´ëśěë¤. ěą ě ěěë ěëĽę° ě°ë미ě˛ëź ěěŹ ěęł , í° ě ě¸ ëĽź ě ęł ę°ěŁ˝ ěěě ěě ěë ěě¤ě ěëŚ ëźěšë íě ě ě§ęł ěěë¤. âě? 돟깴ě´ě?â ě´ ë§ě ë¤ě í경ě í¸ę¸°ěŹě´ ë°ëíëě§ ěě¤ě ë ę˝ ęť´ěěźëа 돟ěë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ě ëšě 돟깴ě ě¨ę¸°ë ęą°ěź?â âě, ëłęą° ěëěź.â ěě¤ě í경ě ěě íě ěĄěëšę˛źęł , íě°ě ë ěěě ë ěŹëě 몸ě ë ë°ě°Šěěź°ë¤. íě°ě ě ě ě ě§ë ęš¨ëŹźęł ě돴 ë§ë íě§ ěěě§ë§ íźëëŹźě´ ëë 기ëśě´ěë¤. ë¨ ëł´ë¤ ëŞťí ěě¤ě ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëźëł´ëа ë§íë¤. âëę°ë´.â ꡸ ë§ě ę°ë Źíęł ë ę°íšíë¤. ęˇ¸ë° ěě¤ě 모ěľě ꡸ë ěę˛ ě ëśěŚě ě˝ę˛ ëë ¤ě¤ ěę°ě´ ěě´ ëł´ěë¤. âě ě ëśěŚě´ěě.â íę˛˝ě´ ěë íě í ꡸ë ë ë¨ëě§ě ě ěźëĄ ë§í´ ě´ ěźě í´ę˛°íęł ęšëíę˛ ë ëęł ěśěě ëż ě ěë ěŹę¸°ě ë¨¸ëŹźęł ěśě§ ěěë¤. âě ě´ëݏ HT꡸룚ěě í´ě§íëë° ëíëęťě ě ě ě ëśěŚě ę°ě ¸ ę°ě ¨ëě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ę˛ ě´ě? ëíëě´ ě ěę˛ ë¤ëĽ¸ ę°ě ě´ëźë ę°ě§ęł ęłě ęą´ ěëě§ ěěŹě¤ë˝ěľëë¤. HT꡸룚ěë ěź ěíë ěŹëě´ ě°¨ęł ëěšěěě. ě ę°ě ëšěěę˛ ęˇ¸ë° ëšě´í ë°Šë˛ě ěŹěŠíě§ ěěźě ¨ěźëŠ´ ě˘ę˛ ěľëë¤.â ě 9í 모ëę° ë¤ ëł´ë ěěě ě ëíźě ë˛ë¤ ëíě¤ě ě´ěźěěĽęłź ę°ěë¤. ë íěě¤ě 쥰ěŹě¤ë˝ę˛ ëíë ěľíě°ě´ ę°ěě ě´ęł ě°¨ę°ě´ íë뼟 ëł´ě¸ ę˛ě ě´ë˛ě´ ě˛ěě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ě ë§ě ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě´ ę¸ě¸ ě´ëěěĄë¤. âě ë§ě´ěź, ěě¤ ě¨?â íę˛˝ě´ ë¤ę°ě¨ ěę°, ěě¤ě ꡸ë ę° ëěšěąě§ 몝íę˛ ëŻ¸ę°ě ě°í¸ë ¸ë¤. âě ë§ě´ę˛ ě´?â ꡸ë ěëí íě ěźëĄ ë§íë¤. âě ěŹě ë§ëëĄ HT꡸룚ě ěź ě íë ěŹëě ě°¨ęł ë쳤ě´. ě ë° ěźę° ëšěě ě ëśěŚě ěíě§ë, íěíě§ë ěě.â âí´ěŹí기 ě ě ě¸ěě¸ęłë ëë°ëĄ í´ěźě§. ě ěŹí ë ě§ę¸í ě ëíźě ě ęł ě¸ěě¸ęłë ěě´ ë ëë ęą´ HT꡸룚 ęˇěšě ě´ę¸ëëęš.â ꡸ě ěź íě°ě ěě ě ě ëśěŚě ě´ěŠí´ HT꡸룚ěźëĄ ëśëŹë¤ě¸ ěě¤ě ěë뼟 ěěě°¨ë ¸ë¤. ě´ęłłě ë¨ęą°ë ě돴ę˛ë ěě´ ë ëęą°ë. ěě¤ě ě´ë° ë°Šë˛ě ěŹěŠí´ ꡸ë 뼟 íëłľíëëĄ íë ¤ęł íěźëа íě°ě´ íëłľí ę˛ě´ëź íě íë¤. ꡸ ěę°, íě°ěę˛ ë¨ě ěë ë§ě§ë§ ě쥴ěŹęšě§ 모쥰댏 ě§ë°íë¤. âě, ęˇ¸ë° ęą°ěź? ęˇ¸ë° ęą°ëŠ´ ěľ ëšěę° ě몝íë¤.â âěę° ěľ ëšěë ěě¤ ě¨ ěŹě´ě ëę° ěë ě¤ ěěěě.â íę˛˝ě´ ěě¤ě íě ë íęł ëë ę˛ě 본 íě°ě 미ěšëŻě´ ë¨ëŚŹë ë§ěě ěľëëĽ´ęł ę˛ěě ě ëíź ěěźě ë˛ęł ě ě¸ ëĽź íëěŠ íěë¤. âë˛ěę˛ě.â ę°ę˛°íęł íě¤í ë¤ ę¸ě. âěě¤ ě¨ ë§ě´ ë§ě. ëëź ęą°ëŠ´ íě¤íę˛ ëë´ěźě§.â ꡸ë ě ę°ěě¤ëŹě´ íëě ëíě¤ě ě˝ěę°ě ęł ěí´ěĄë¤. í경ě 믿ě ě ěë¤ë íě ěźëĄ ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. ě´ëݏ ęł ę°ëĽź ěě¸ ěě¤ě ěě ěźëĄ ěźëŁŠě§ ěëí ëëšě´ ěźě´ëśěë¤. ꡸ë ěľęˇź íě°ě´ ě´ě ęłź íě°í ë¤ëĽ´ë¤ë ę˛ě ëśëŞ íę˛ ëęźë¤. ě´ ëëě ꡸ë ę° ěě ě 쥹ěěě ěě í ë˛ě´ë ę˛ě˛ëź ë§ëĄë ě¤ëŞ í기 ě´ë ¤ě´ ę°ě ě´ěë¤. ěě¤ě ěě í íľě ë Ľě ěěë¤. ěë늴 3ë ě´ëźë ę˛°íź ěíëě ꡸ë 뼟 ě ë§ëĄ ě´í´íě§ ëŞťí ęą´ ěëęš? ëíě¤ě ěëŹ¸ě´ ëš ëĽ´ę˛ íźě§ě ë§ě ě§ěë¤ě´ 돸 ěěě 기ěęą°ë ¸ë¤. ě돴ë íě ě¨ííęł ěšě íë íě°ěę˛ ęˇ¸ë° ęą°ěš ëŠ´ě´ ěě ęą°ëź ěę°íě§ ëŞťíë¤. ě ě¸ ëĽź ë˛ě íě°ě íě ëěë§ ě ęł ěěęł , ꡸ë ě ěëŚë¤ě´ ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ëëŹëŹë¤. ꡸ë ě ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ëëŹëě ë°ě ěë ëëŁë¤ě ě ě ë¤ëŹźě§ ëŞťíë¤. âě ë§ ë˛ě ě¤ě 몰ëě´ě, ęˇźë° ěľ ëšěë 몸매 ě§ě§ ěěë¤ěâŚâŚ.â âěë, ě°ëŚŹ ě ëíźě´ ě´ë ę˛ ííźě§íë° ëę° ěľ ëšěë ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ě ë ę˛ ě˘ěě§ ěěę˛ ě´ě?â 꾏ëíě ëź ë댏ë ë§ëĄ ꡸ë¤ě ěë¤ę° ëŠěˇë¤. âě죟 íę°íě§? ěź ě í´? ě ëś ěę¸ěě ęšěź ě¤ ěě!â ëŞ¨ěŹ ěë ě§ěë¤ě ěëĄě ëěšëĽź ëł´ë¤ ěŚě ę°ěě ěëŚŹëĄ ëěę°ë¤. ꡸ě ěź ëíë ě´ě§ ě´ëڰ 창돸 íěźëĄ ěě ë¤ěŹë¤ëł´ěęł ě´í´ę° ě ëë ëśëśě´ ë§ěěěě 윊ëíë¤. âëíëě´ ě´ëݏ í´ěŹí ěźę° ëšě ë돸ě ěźě ě´ë ę˛ ě´ë ľę˛ ë§ëë ęą´ ě˛ě ë´, ëë체 ëŹ´ě¨ ěźě´ ěěë ęą°ěź?â ëíě¤ ěěě ëě íëë§ ě ęł ěë íě°ě ę°ěě¤ëŹě´ ě°Ź 곾기ě ěě°íë¤. ꡸ë ë ěśě뼟 겏ë í ę°ě í ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ěë¤. âëíë, ě´ě ě ě ëśěŚ ě˘ ěŁźě¤ëě?â íě°ě ęˇ¸ę° ë ë¤ëĽ¸ ě´ě 뼟 ë늰 ęą°ě í ęš ë´ ęąąě í늰 ë§íë¤. âë§ěíě ě¸ěě¸ęłë ě ę° ě댏뼟 ěĄě í 꾏 ě¤ěĽëęť ě´ëŠěźëĄ ëł´ë´ę˛ ěľëë¤. ëíë ë§ěě ë¤ě§ ěěźëŠ´ ě§ë ëŹ ěę¸ě ě 죟ě ë ëŠëë¤.â ě´ë ěě¤ęłźě ę´ęłëĽź ěě í ëę˛ ë¤ë ëťě´ěë¤. ěě¤ě ę˛ě ëëěë ěëí´ěĄęł , íęł í íě°ě 모ěľě ě ě ěë ę°ě ě´ ę°ě´ ęšě ęłłěěëśí° í몰ěěšęł ěěë¤. ě 10í ě¤ëš ě ë§ě¤ âěě¤ ě¨?â 믟í경ě í ęłľę°ě ę°ě´ ěë ě´ ë ěŹëě´ ě´ë¤ ę´ęłě¸ě§ 모뼸 ěą ęˇ¸ě ěľíě°ě´ ëě ęą°ěŹëŚŹę¸°ë§ íë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ěźëĽ¸ ěŁźęł ëł´ë´! ě¤ë ě°ëŚŹ ëśëިëě´ ë´ę° ëšě ë°ëŚŹęł ě¤ë ě¤ ěęł ę¸°ë¤ëŚŹęł ěě´, ě¤ëŤëě 몝 ë§ëŹěě, ě°ëŚŹ ëśëިëě´ ěě¤ ě¨ ëł´ęł ěśë.â ëśëëŹě´ ꡸ë ě 몊ě댏ě íěě¤ě ě ě ě ě°¨ë ¸ë¤. íě¨ ę°ëʏě ëŻźě¨ ę°ëʏě ę°ěą ě ëëźęł ěě´ ęˇ¸ë ëŻźě¨ ě íě 밊돸íě´ěź íë¤. íě§ë§ ě´ ë§ěë íě°ě ěźęľ´ě ěě¤ě ëí 모ë ę˛ë¤ě´ ë ě´ě ꡸ë ě ě돴 ěę´ě´ ěë ę˛ě˛ëź íě¨íë¤. ěě¤ě ëľëľíęł ëłľěĄíë¤. âě 기 ěě´.â íě°ě ęˇ¸ę° íąěźëĄ ę°ëŚŹí¨ ěŞ˝ě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. ꡸곳ě ě ëśěŚě´ ě ě기 ë°ě ě돴ë ę˛ë ëë¸ëŹě§ ěą ë§ěš ꡸ë ě˛ëź ë˛ëŚźë°ě ę˛ě˛ëź ëł´ěë¤. âë¤.â íě°ě ěě¸í ë§ěě ěľëëĽ´ęł ě ëśěŚě 죟ěë¤ě ë¤ ë¤ë ëěëł´ě§ ěęł ëěěě ëíě¤ě ë ëŹë¤. ꡸ ë¤ěë ë ěš´ëĄęł ě°¨ę°ě´ ěě ě´ ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ë°ëźë¤ëë ę˛ ę°ěë¤. ëíě¤ ëŹ¸ě ě´ęł ëę°ë ěę° ěŹëŹ´ě¤ ě§ěë¤ě ěě ě´ ěźě í ě ë ¸ë¤. ꡸ě íĽëݏëĄę˛ ëł´ë ěŹëë ěęł ëě íë ěŹëë ěěě§ë§ ꡸ë¤ě ěě ěë ę°ě깰댏ëźë ë°°ę˛˝ě´ ęšë ¤ ěěë¤. ëęľ°ë¤ë íěŹěě íě°ě´ ěě¤ě ꟏ě ě ꡸ěę˛ ěŤę˛¨ëŹë¤ë ě돸ë ëěë¤. ꡸ë ë ë˛ě ěźëĄ ěě¤ě ëśě¸ě´ěě§ë§, ë´ě°ë ëĄ ěšëśëë¤. íě°ě ëěě¸ě´ ëśě´ěĄë¤. ë돟ě 참기 ěí´ ě ě°ëа 1츾 ëĄëšě ëě°Šíě ë ë¤ěě ë¤ę°ě¤ë ë°ěęľ ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¸ë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ë°ě ëš ěě. ěśě°ě늴 ě ę˛ěˇ ë댴ę˛ě.â ě°ě°ě ę°ě ¸ë¤ě¤ ěŹëě ë¤ëŚěë 꾏ëíěë¤. â매ě í HT꡸룚ěë ë°ëťí ěŹëě´ ě긴 í꾏ë.â ę˛ěˇě ë˛ěźë ¤ë ëí뼟 본 íě°ě ꡸뼟 ë§ëŚŹëŠ° ěě¸í¨ě 몊ě ěźěź°ë¤. âěëěě, ęł ë§ěě 꾏 ě¤ěĽë. ě´ě ë§ë ěźë ěę˛ ë¤ě.â ꡸ë ě ěě¸í íě ě 본 ëíë ě ě ěě§ěě§ë§ íëě ëŹ´ě¨ ë§ě í´ěź í ě§ ëŞ°ëë¤. ęˇ¸ę° ë¨¸ë깰댏ë ěŹě´ íě°ě ëŻ¸ë ¨ěě´ ě댏뼟 ë ë ëš ěěźëĄ ë°ě´ë¤ěë¤. ě´ë´ ëë ííě°ë§ě´ ężěě ꚨě´ë ě ěë ě ěźí ë°Šë˛ě´ěë¤. ęłľíěźëĄ íĽíë íěě ěě ě°˝ë°ěźëĄ ěěě§ë ëšě¤ę¸°ëĽź ë°ëźëł´ë íě°ě ëŞ ë ëě ě´ěë ëěę° ëě ë¤ě´ě ě°¸ě§ ëŞťíęł ě í뼟 깸ěë¤. ě íę° ě°ę˛°ëěë§ě ě§ěš ꡸ë ë ě 먚ë íě ë¤í´ ë§íë¤. âě¤ëš âŚâŚ.â ꡸ë ë ěëěę˛ ëŞ ë§ë ë§ě í ë¤ ě í뼟 ëěë¤. 8ěę° í, ě ěŠę¸°ę° Bě ęłľíě ě°ŠëĽíë¤. íě°ě í¤ę° íŹęł ę˛ě ěˇě ě ě í ë¨ěě íě ě겟ë¤. ë¤ě ěë 경í¸ěě´ ęˇ¸ë ě ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź ëęł ë ěŹëě ě ěŠę¸°ě íě ë¤. âŚâŚ ëŚě ë°¤, ę˛ěě 벤í댏 í ëę° ě˛ě˛í íě¨ ęł íěźëĄ ë¤ě´ě°ë¤. ëˇě˘ěě ěě ěë ěě¤ě ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ě´ 돴ěąí ę´ëŞŠ ěë ęł ě¸ľ ě íě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. íě ë ëśě´ ěźě ¸ ěë 욨ě¤ë ě´ëĄę¸°ë§ íë¤. âě§ě§ ę°ęľŹë.â í경ě ěëí ěě¤ě 기ě´ě ëęźęł , ěěŹ ě댏ěě ꡸ë ě ěë˛ě§ę° í ë§ ë돸ě íë ę˛ ëśëŞ íë¤ęł ěę°íë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ë°Ľ 먚ě ë ě°ëŚŹ ě¸ëë ěě¤ ě¨ ěŹě´ě ěźě´ë ěźëĄ 기ëśě´ ěíë¤ë ęą° ěě. 결íźě ěëëĽ´ě§ ěěë ëź, ě°ëŚŹ ěëš ë ě 경 ě°ě§ ë§. ě°ëŚŹ ěëš ë ë´ę° íźě ěě ě´ëź ěŹě´íë ę˛ëżě´ěźâŚâŚ.â í경ě ë§ě ěě¤ě ěę°ě ë¤ëĄ 미ë¤ëęł , ꡸ë ę° ěĄě ěě ě ě매 ëě 보늰 ë§íë¤. â꾏겨ěĄë¤.â í경ě ꡸ě ë§ě 돴ěěě ěźëĄ ěě ëë¤. ꡸ í ěě¤ě 돸ě ě´ęł ě°¨ěě ë´ë ¸ęł , í경ě ě¸ě¸í ë ëë ꡸ě ëˇëިěľě ëŠíë ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. âě¤ë ëíě¤ěě ě기 ë¤ëŚŹ ěě ěíěźëŠ´ě ě´ëťę˛ í루ë ě ě§ëŹëë° ë´ ěŹëě´ ë ęą°ěź?â íě§ë§ ꡸ë ë ěę°ě ě ě 미ë¤ëęł ěě¤ě ë¤ëĽź ë°ëź ě°¨ěě ë´ë ¸ë¤. ě 11í ě°¸ę° ěę˛Šě´ ë°íëšíë¤ ęł íěě íě°¸ě 기ë¤ëڰ ę°ě ëśë ëěě¨ íěě¤ě ě¸íŹëĽź ë°ěë¤ěęł , ěě¤ě ë¤ě ěë 믟í경ě ëł´ęł ě ě ëŠí´ěĄë¤. âí경 ěę°ě¨, ë°Šě ě¤ëší´ ëěľëë¤. ě´ěŞ˝ ëłľë뼟 ë°ëź ěŹëźę°ě늴 ëŠëë¤.â ěě¤ě ë°ëź ęłë¨ěźëĄ íĽíë í경ě ëŠěś° ěě 믿ě ě ěë¤ë ëŻě´ ěłë¤ë´¤ë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ě°ëŚŹ ę°ě´ ěë ęą° ěëěě?â ꡸ë ę° ęł íěźëĄ ë¤ě´ě¤ë 깸 ëěí ěě¤ě 결íźë ě돾ě ěźëĄ ëěí 겊ě´ěë¤. í¨ęť ěŹë ęą´ ëšě°í ěźě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ě ë§ě ěě¤ě 미ę°ě ě°í¸ë ¸ë¤. â꡸âŚâŚ.â í경ě ë ě´ě ě´ë í ë§ë ę°í íě§ ëŞťíë¤. ë¨ěěë íě°ě íě ě´ ěŹëźě§ęš ë´ ęˇ¸ë ę°ě ëśěę˛ ë¤ëĽ¸ ë°Šě ě¤ëší´ëźęł ě§ěíěë¤. âë ěě§ í ěźě´ ë¨ěěźëęš ë¨źě ěëŹ ę°.â ěě¤ě 돴ę´ěŹí ě´íŹëĄ í경ě ë°ëźëł´ëа ëëšě ëł´ëë¤. âíě§ë§âŚâŚ.â ěěëëĄ í경ě ěŹě í ëŹę°ě§ ěě ěśęśě í´ ěęł , ěě¤ě ě§ě뼟 ë°ě ë°°íěě´ ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ë§ěë¤. âí경 ěę°ě¨, ě ë°ëźě¤ě¸ě.â ęł íě ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í° ëŹ¸ě´ ëŤí늰 ě°¨ę°ę¸° ě§ě´ ěë ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě´ ę°ë ¤ěĄë¤. í경ě ë§ěěě ëśë§ě ěľëë ë¤. âęˇęľí íëĄ ěě¤ ě¨ě íëě´ ë돴 ëŹëźěĄě´.â ę°ęšęł ë 먟 ꡸ě ë§ěě ëě í ě ě ěěë¤. ěěŹëĄ ëěě¨ ěě¤ě ě¤ě뼟 íęł ëŞŠěę°ě´ě ě ě ë¤ ěě ë 돸ě뼟 íě´ë´¤ě§ë§ ě ě ě ë´ ë°ëĄ ę° ěěë¤. ěě ę°ěźëŠ´ íě°ě´ ěěŹě ë°ëťí ěí뼟 ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźęł ěš¨ě¤ëĄ ę° ęˇ¸ëĽź 기ë¤ë ¸ě ę˛ě´ë¤. ëëĄë ěěŹěě ë°¤ě ě§ěě°ę¸°ë íęł , ëëĄë 욨ě¤ëĄ ëěě ꡸ë ë ěíěě, ěě¤ě 욨ëěě ě기ë íě§ë§ ꡸ë ë í루ë ëš ě§ěě´ ěí뼟 ę°ě ¸ë¤ě¤Źë¤. íě§ë§ ě¤ëě ě돴댏 기ë¤ë ¤ë ěí뼟 ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźë ěŹëě´ ěěë¤. ě´ë° ꡸ë ě íě ě ěě¤ě ę´í ě§ěŚě´ ëŹë¤. ě´ë ě íę° ě¸ë ¸ë¤. í늴ě ëŹ â꾏 ě¤ěĽâě´ëźë ę¸ě뼟 ëł´ęł ěě¤ě ě ě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ę˛ ëëě´ ě˘ě§ ěě 미ę°ě ě°í¸ë ¸ë¤. [ëíë, ë°Šę¸ Dęľ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëí ë´ëšěěę˛ ě°ë˝ě´ ěëë° HTęˇ¸ëŁšě´ ę¸°ëśę¸ěĄ ě ë¤ë ě´ě ëĄ ě°¸ę° ě겊ě ë°íëšíë¤ęł íŠëë¤.] ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě ę¸ě¸ ě´ëěěĄë¤. ěë ě´ ëŞ¨ë ę˛ě íě°ě´ ë´ëšíě§ë§ ꡸ë ę° ë ë ě´ě 모ë ęą´ ëíě ëŞŤě´ ëěë¤. â기ëśę¸ěĄ ě ë¤ęł ? ë°ëí ě°¸ę° ě겊ě ę° ęˇ¸ëŁšě´ ě ěěěŹě 기ëśí ę¸ěĄě 기ě¤ěźëĄ 결ě íë ęą° ěëěź? HT꡸룚ě ěë ě ě´ëݏ 600ěľ ěě 기ëśíě´, ęˇźë° ě ë¤ęł ?â ëíě 기ëśě´ ěŹěěš ěë¤ë ę˛ě ëë ëíë ëąě ěěëě´ íë ë¤. [ě ë ě´í´ę° ëě§ ěě ě´ ëŹ¸ě ě ëí´ ěěëł´ë ¤ęł ěľ ëšěëęť ě°ë˝ëë ¸ě§ë§, ěŹěŠí ě ěë ë˛í¸ëźęł âŚâŚ.] ââŚâŚ.â ëíë ë¤ě ë§ě ęłě ě´ě´ ëę° ě ěěë¤. ęł§ ěěŹë ě ě ě íŠě¸ěęł ěě¤ě ě¸ěě ě§ěźëа ě¤ë ëíě¤ěě ě ëíźě ë˛ë íě°ě 모ěľě ë ěŹë ¸ë¤. ꡸ë ě ě ěë ę°ě ě ę°ě´ě´ í몰ě쳤ë¤. ꡸ě 기ěľě´ ë§ë¤ëŠ´, íě°ě ě골ěě íě´ë ěëęś ëíě ě ííë¤. ꡸ë ë ë ¸ë Ľ ëě ěˇę°ę˛ëĽź ě´ěě§ë§ ěě¤ęłź 결íźí í ěźë§ ëě§ ěě 돸ě ëŤěë¤. ꡸ë ę˛ íě°ě íě¨ ě§ěěě ě 기ě ěźëĄ 죟ë ěŠëě ě ě¸íęł ë ěśę° ěě ě´ ěěë¤. âëë ěë ěŹěę° ě´ëëĄ ę°ěęš?â âě°ě ěęł¨ëĄ ę° ë´.â ꡸ë íě°ě´ ěë ¤ě¤ ęł íĽ ěŁźě뼟 ěě§ë 기ěľíęł ěěęł , ꡸ë 뼟 ě°žě ě ěë¤ęł íě íë¤. âęˇ¸ëŚŹęł Dęľ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëí ë´ëšěěę˛ ě íí´. ě´ěą ěěë ě기뼟 í´ ë´ěź ę˛ ě´.â ě í뼟 ëě ěě¤ě í´ëí°ě ě§ě´ ëěĄęł , ꡸ě ěźęľ´ě ě ě ë ě´ëěěĄë¤. ě 12í Dęľě ë¤ěŻ ě¤ëš ë¤ ě ë˝í 깴돟ě í¸íëĄě´ ě¤ěí¸ëُ, ěľíě°ě ěľěí ëŻ ę¸°ě§ę°ëĽź í´ęł ěźě´ëŹë¤. ë°Š 꾏쥰ë ę°ęľŹë¤ě ꡸ë ę° ë ëŹě ëě ë¤ëŚěěë¤. íě°ě 머댏맥ěë ë°ëťí ě°¨ę° ëěŹ ěěęł , 욨ë ěěë ě¸ë ¨ë ěˇë¤ě´ ěŹëŹ ë˛ ëěŹ ěěë¤. ě˝ ëě´ ěí°ęą°ë ¸ë¤. Běěěë ężë ęž¸ě§ ëŞťí ëě°ěë¤. âí ěë˛ě§ë ëší기 ěśë˝ ěŹęł ěěě ë¤ěźěęł ë¤ę° ě í뼟 ě ë°ěě ěŹě ě§ę° ě¤ě ¨ě´, ěě§ë ëłěě ëěęłě .â ë¤ěě ë°ěëŚŹę° ę°ęšěě§ëë ę˛ě ěˇě ě ě í° í¤ě ë¨ěę° ěš´ëŚŹě¤ë§ě ěě°ëźëĽź í기늰 ꡸ë ě 욨ě¤ě ëíëŹë¤. ꡸ë BěëĄ íě°ě ë°ëŚŹëŹ ě¨ ě¤ëš ěľí믟ě´ěë¤. í믟ě íěŹ ěľě¨ ę°ëʏě 경ěě ě´ëęł ěęł íě ě¨íí¨ě ě ě§í늰 í ë˛ë í뼟 ë¸ ě ě´ ěë¤. í ěë˛ě§ę° í¸ě°Žěźěë¤ë ěěě íě°ě ë일 ę˛ě´ ë ě¸ë¨šěë¤. âě¤ëš , ë§ě´ ěě¤íě ęą°ěźâŚâŚ?â âěŹę°í ě ëë ěëěź, ë ë¤ ëŞ¸ě´ë ěąę˛¨.â í믟ě íě°ě ěě ěĄěëšę¸°ëа ëę°ë ¤ë ꡸ë 뼟 ë§ěë¤. âě§ę¸ ë¤ ęź´ě ë´, ě´ę˛ ěŹë ěźęľ´ě´ěź? ěě ě í ě˝ě ěěě´?â ě´ ë§ě ë¤ě íě°ě ë°ęą¸ěě ëŠěˇë¤. ëšě°í ěě§ ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë í ěë˛ě§ěę˛ íěě¤ě´ ěě ě ěŹëíě§ ěęł ëěę° ě´íźęšě§ íę˛ ëë¤ëŠ´ ěěí ěľě¨ ę°ëʏě ë¨ě ę°ě ě ëę˛ ë¤ęł ě˝ěíë¤. ěŹě§ě´ íě°ě ěľě¨ ę°ëʏě ěŹě ě íěĽí기 ěí´ 4ë ę°ëʏ ě¤ íëě¸ ëě¨ ę°ëŹ¸ęłź 결íźíę˛ ë¤ë ě ěě ěěí ë°ěë¤ě´ę¸°ëĄ íë¤. âě¤ëš ę° ę°ě기 ě´ë° ë§ě íë 깸 보늴, ë˛ě¨ ěŹëě ě°žě ëě ęą°ěź?â âëě¨ ę°ëʏě ěë¤ě ěě죟ë ë°ëëĽě´ëźęł íëë°âŚâŚ.â âęˇźë° ě¤ëš ë ě´íźíě§ë ěźë§ ě ëęł , ěě§ ěŹíźí ěę°ě´ ěě´âŚâŚ.â ꡸ë ë ęą°ě ëšë¤ěíź ë§íë¤. ěę° í믟ě íě ě íëë ě ëł´ë¤ í¨ěŹ ëśëëŹěě§ ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ë§íë¤. ëšě°í ę˛ěŁźë ¤ęł í ë§ě´ěë¤. âë ěľě¨ ě§ě ë¸ě´ěź. ě°ëŚŹ ę°ëʏě ěěě í늴ěęšě§ ě§ěě í¤ě°ě§ ěě íě§ë§, í ěë˛ě§ę° ěěšíě¤ ëęšě§ë ë´ ěěě ě¤ëĽ¸í ěí ě ëëí í´.â ě´ ë§ě ě미ë Dęľě ěë í믟ě DS꡸룚ě ë¤ě´ě¤ëźë ë§ě´ěë¤. íě°ě ę°ěĄąë¤ě ꡸ë ę° ěě´ë ę¸ëĄë˛ëšě§ëě¤íëśě ë¤ě´ę° ëëśí° ě´ ěźě ěźëě ëęł ěěë¤. íě§ë§ íě°ě´ ěě ě ężě ě´ëٍ揰 ěí´ ëěě´ë ë¸ëë ěě ě´ęł ěě¤ěę˛ ě˛Ťëě ë°í ě¤ě ëę° ěěě´ëźë íěęš? âě¤ëš ë í ěë˛ě§ę° ë§ě´ ěěí´íě¤ ęą°ěź.â çŽäťďźçťĺŠä¸ĺš´ďźéťćčżééłĺçććé˝ć˛Ąç˘°ĺ°ďźć´ĺŤćčŻä¸ä¸ĺżĺ弳ă ç´ĺ°ä¸ĺşçŠşéžďźĺĽšä˝ä¸şĺš¸ĺč ďźĺ´ĺ¨ĺťé˘éćč§äşééłĺéŞĺŤç弳人ĺäş§ćŁă 弚ćçĽéďźĺĽšäťćŞčľ°čżčżčżä¸Şçˇäşşçĺżćżă ĺłĺŽćžćçéŁä¸ĺťďźĺĽšć躍ä¸ĺçŤçśćäşĺ ¨çéŚĺŻçĺ¤ĺ弳ă ć˘çśé太太ĺä¸äşďźéŁĺ°ąĺéć°çćťĺŻšĺ¤´ďźčŽŠäťĺäšéŤćä¸ä¸ďź <âŚBěëĄ íĽíë ěŹę°ę¸°ę° ě°ŠëĽ ě¤ ę°ěě¤ëŹě´ ěŹęł ę° ëŹěľëë¤. ě´ëĄ ě¸í´ íěŹ ěŹë§ěěę° 136ëŞ ě ëě´ě°ěźëа ě쥴ěë 3ëŞ ě ëśęłźí ěíŠě ëë¤.> ëłě ëĄëšě ëí ě¤íŹëڰěë ě´ë˛ í곾기 ěŹęł ę° ě¤ěę°ěźëĄ ëł´ëëęł ěěë¤. ěľíě°ě ě¸ ëŞ ëżě¸ ě쥴ě ě¤ě íëëĄ ë ë¤ëŚŹě ëśë뼟 ę°ě ěą ě¤íěě¤ ëłě ěě ëě ěěë¤. ꡸ë, ěě ë¤ëڰ í¸ëí°ěě ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. âě§ę¸ ęł ę°ëęťě ě í뼟 ë°ě ě ěěľëë¤. ë¤ěě ë¤ě 깸ě´ěŁźě¸ě.â ěŹęł ę° ëë ꡸ ěę°ëśí° ě§ę¸ęšě§, ë¨í¸ íěě¤ě ě í뼟 ë°ě§ ěěë¤. ě¤ë§ ęˇ¸ę° ě¨ ëëźëĽź ë ë¤ěŠíę˛ í ěŹę°ę¸° ěŹęł 뼟 모뼟 ěźě ěěë¤. ěŹęł ëšě, íěĽěë ěšę°ë¤ě ěě ě´ ěŹę¸°ě 기 ě돴ë ę˛ë ëë ¤ ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë ěŹęł ě 윊겊곟 죽ěě ęłľíŹëĄ ě¨ë ě ëëĄ ě´ ě ěěë¤. 결íźí ě§ 3ë ě´ë ëěě§ë§ ë¨í¸ě ꡸ë ę° ę°ěĽ íěëĄ íë ěę° ě°ë˝ě´ ëě§ ěěë¤. íě°ě ë§ě í ěź ě´ ěë ¤ ě¤ë ę˛ě ëęźë¤. ꡸ë, í´ëí° ë˛¨ ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. íě°¸ě´ë ëŠíę˛ ěë ꡸ë ë ě ě ě ě°¨ëŚŹęł ë°ě ě뼟 íě¸íë¤. í 머ëěë¤. íě°ě ěźęľ´ě´ ě´ëěěĄë¤. âěŹëł´ě¸ě.â ꡸ë ę° ěëŠ ě° ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ě í뼟 ë°ěë¤. ě í ęą´ëí¸ěě ěšě í늴ěë ě°ëĄí 몊ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. [ě°ëŚŹ íě°ě´, ě´ í ëŻ¸ę° ë ë돸ě ě ëŞ ě 몝 ěŁ˝ę˛ ęľŹë. ë돴 ëëźě ë§ě´ěź. ě´ë ë¤ěš ë°ë ěęł ? ěě¤ě´ę° ěě ę°ě´ ěě§?] ę°ěěě ěě¤ě ěší 머ëëĄ íě¨ ě§ě ěŹëë¤ ě¤ ě ěźíę˛ íě°ěę˛ ę´ěŹě ę°ë ëśě´ěë¤. âěě¤ ě¨ëâŚâŚ.â 머ë깰댏ë ꡸ë ě ë§ě ę°ěěě´ ëŹ´ě¸ę°ëĽź ëěš ěą ëŻíë¤. [ě´ë° ě ě ëę° ëě ë´¤ë! ëšěëĄ ë ěë´ëĄ, í´ě¸ ěśěĽę° ë¨í¸ ěźě ë¤ ë´ěŁźęł ěëë° ě´ë ę˛ í° ěŹęł ę° í°ěĄëë°ë ě˝ëšźę¸°ë ěëł´ěŹ? 기ë¤ë ¤ë´ëź! ě´ í ëŻ¸ę° ě ě ëę° ęˇ¸ ë ěě ę°ë§ ëë!] ꡸ë ę° ë¤ě 돟ěë¤. [ě§ę¸ ě´ë ëłěě ěě´? ě§ěŹëĽź ëł´ëź í ë 기ë¤ëŚŹë ´!] íě°ě´ ëłě 죟ě뼟 ěë ¤ěŁźě ę°ěěě ě í뼟 ëěë¤. ꡸ë ë ęł ę°ëĽź íš ěě¸ ěą ë§ěě´ íě ę˝í ěë ěŁźěŹ ë°ëě ëšźëë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ë íľěŚě ě°¸ěźëа 욨ëěě ë´ë ¤ěë¤. âíěëś, ě§ę¸ ëíěë ęą°ěě? ë¤ëŚŹ ëśěě´ ěŹę°íë ěě ě 졨í´ěź í´ě.â ë§ěš¨ ëłě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ě¤ë ę°í¸ěŹę° ęšě§ ëëź ě댏쳤ë¤. âëŞŠë° ě˘ ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźě¸ě. í´ěí´ěźę˛ ě´ě.â íě°ě ë§íŹę° ěźë§ë ë¨í¸íëě§ ę°í¸ěŹę° ëŠíë ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. ěĽę¸°ę° ě ěí´ěź íë¤ëŠ´ ëłěëł´ë¤ë ěě¤ě 본ę°ěě ěěíë í¸ě´ ëě ę˛ ę°ěë¤. ěŹě¤, íě°ě HT꡸룚 íěĽě ëšěěë¤. ě´ë˛ ëë°ě´ ěśěĽě ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ě ěíě ě í ë°°ěšě ꡟ돴ě¸ěě íě ě§ę¸° ěí´ HT꡸룚ě ëíí´ ę°ë ę˛ě´ěë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ěźě 결곟뼟 ěŚě ëł´ęł íę¸°ëĄ ëě´ěěë¤. âíěě¤ ě´ ë¨ě, ëë체 ě§ę¸ ě´ëě ë íęł ěë ęą°ěź?â 결ęľ, ę°í¸ěŹë í´ěíę˛ ë¤ë ꡸ë 뼟 ë§ě§ 몝íë¤. íě°ě ęł§ěĽ ě¤íěě¤ě ëě 몊ë°ě ě§ęł ě ë깰댏늰 ěëŠě˛ëĄ íĽíë¤. ꡸ë, ëłě 1츾 ëĄëšě ě 댏 벽 ëë¨¸ëĄ ěľěí ě°¨ëë˛í¸íě´ ëł´ěë¤. ęł ę¸ ěšěŠě°¨ ëŞ ëę° ęˇ¸ ë¤ëĽź ë°ëĽ´ęł ěěëë° ěě¸í ëł´ë HT ꡸룚 ěě ě ě°¨ë¤ě´ěë¤. 먟ě ě°¨ěě ë´ëڰ ěŹëë¤ě´ ę˛ě ě ěí¸ëĽź ě ě í ë¨ě뼟 뚟곥í ëëŹě¸ęł ěěë¤. ꡸ë ě´ë¤ ěŹě뼟 íě ěęł ěěëë° ęˇ¸ë 뼟 몚ě ěëźë ëŻ ëł´ěë¤. ꡸ě ę˛ě ě ě˝í¸ę° ꡸ë ě íě ë¤ëŚŹëĽź ëŽęł ěěë¤. ë¨ěë íě°ě 쥴ěŹëĽź ě í ěě§ ëŞťí ěą íŠę¸í ëłě ëł¸ę´ ěŞ˝ěźëĄ íĽíë¤. íě°ě ꡸ ě댏ě ěě ěŹě뼟 ěęł ě 돸ě ě§ě°°ě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ę°ë ꡸뼟 ę°ë§í ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. 결íźěí 3ë ëě ě ë ę˛ ë¤ě í ë¨í¸ě 모ěľě í ë˛ë 본 ě ě´ ěěë¤. ęˇ¸ę° ěęł ěë ěŹěë ë꾏ěźęš? ꡸ë ë ę°ě기 ę°ě´ě ěě˛ë íľěŚě´ ë°ë ¤ě¤ë ę˛ě ëęźë¤. ꡸ ęł íľě´ ěźë§ë 인ëě§ í¸íĄě´ 곤ëí ě§ę˛˝ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë, ëłľë ë°ëí¸ěě 깸ě´ě¤ë ę°í¸ěŹę° ë¤ëŚ´ë˝ ë§ë˝ í ěëŚŹëĄ íľíí늰 ꡸ë ě ęłě ěëę°ë¤. âë´ę° ꡸쪽ěźëĄ ę°ę˛. ě ěŹëě´ ę˛˝ě ë´ě¤ě ě죟 ëąěĽíë HT ꡸룚 íęłě íěě¤ě´ěź. ě¤ě ëĄ ëł´ë ë ë¨ěë¤ě´ë°? ě°ëŚŹ ëłěěě ëł´ę˛ ëë¤ë ë돴 ě 기í´. ěŹěěšęľŹ ë°ëŚŹęł ě°ëśě¸ęłźě ě§ëŁë°ěźëŹ ěë ë´.â âě°ëśě¸ęłź? íě¤í´?â âęˇ¸ëź íě¤íě§. ě§ëŁ ě°¨í¸ě ě í 깸 ë´¤ëë° ë˛ě¨ íěę° 12죟ë ëëë°? íě ěíę° ëśěě íě§ ě¤ë ěśíě´ ěěë. ꡸ëě íěŹěĽě´ ěęł ě¨ ęą°ëź ëë°?â ꡸ ë§ě ë¤ě íě°ě´ 머댿ěěźëĄ ë ě§ëĽź ęłě°íë¤. â12죟ëźëŠ´âŚâŚ ë ëŹ ě ?â ě 2í íëě´ ë§şě´ě¤ 읤í íě°ě ë ëŹ ě , 1ěŁźěź ě ë ěśěĽ ěźě ě´ ěĄí ěë íěě¤ě ěźě ëł´ęł ěę° ěę°ëŹë¤. í¸ëí°ě ěĽęł ěë ꡸ë ě ěě´ ë¨ë ¤ěë¤. â꡸ ë ě긴 ěě´ě¸ ęą°ěź?â ꡸ë ë íěě¤ě ě¨ę˛¨ě§ ěë´ëĄ ě¤ë ě ëśí° ëšë°ęłě˝ě ë§şęł ěěë¤. íě§ë§ ě´ě ęť ë¨í¸ě ě¤ěşë¤ě ëí´ěë ë¤ě´ëł¸ ě ě´ ěěë¤. âíěě¤ ěŹěĽě´ ěŹěěšęľŹěę˛ ě°¸ ę°ëłí ę˛ ę°ěâŚâŚ ě ěŹěë ě ěě ëëźëĽź 꾏íë ë´. ëł´ěíë ęł§ ęłľěë°íę° ë ę˛ ę°ěë°?â â꡸ëŹę˛. ëë ěęš ę˛ěí´ ë´¤ě´. ë¤ ěę°ě ě ěŹëě´ ěŹěěšęľŹę° ë§ë ę˛ ę°ě?â ěš´í¸ëĽź ë°ęł ę°ë ě ě ę°í¸ěŹę° ěě ěë ę°í¸ěŹěę˛ í¸ëí° ě ěŹě§ě ëł´ěŹěŁźěë¤. ꡸ëŹě ꡸ë ę° ęšě§ ëëźëа ë§íë¤. âë§ě, ë§ě! ě´ ěŹěěź! ST꡸룚 ë째 ë¸! íěě¤ě´ë ë돴 ě ě´ě¸ëŚŹě§ ěě? íëě´ ë§şě´ě¤ 읤í ę°ě!â ë ěŹëě í¸ë¤ę°ě ë¨ëа ë°ëí¸ěźëĄ 깸ě´ę°ë¤. âST ꡸룚ě´ëźâŚâŚ.â í´ě ěěě ë§ěš íě°ě ě§ěŹě 차뼟 íęł ę°ëŠ´ěë ë§ěě´ ě˘ě˛ëź ě§ě ëě§ ěěë¤. ë°ěݤ ě´ëڰ 창돸 ěë í¸ëí° í늴ě ëśëšě´ 창밹í íě°ě ěźęľ´ě ëšěˇë¤. ě ěě´ ę˛ěí´ ë´¤ě§ë§ íěě¤ęłź ST ꡸룚곟ě ě°ę´ěąě ě í ě°žě ě ěěë¤. âBěě ě ëę°ë ë ëŞ ëŹ¸ę° ě§ěě´ ě´ë° ěěźëĄ ěŽě´ë¤ë ě´ěí´.â ěě¤ě 본ę°ě ëě°Šíë ęą°ě¤ě ëśě´ ěźě ¸ ěěë¤. ëěŁę°ě ę°ě ěëě´ ëě ěě¤ě í 머ëě¸ ę°ěě ěŹěŹę° ě§íĄě´ě 몸ě ěě§í ěą ęˇ¸ë 뼟 기ë¤ëŚŹęł ěěë¤. âě°ëŚŹ íě°ě´ ě꾏ë! ë¤ę° ëłľě´ ë§ěě ꡸ í° ěŹęł ě¤ěë 돴ěŹí꾏ë. ë돴 ëëźě íë§í°ëŠ´ ě¨ě´ ëě´ę° ëťíě§ ëë.â âí 머ë, ě ę´ě°Žěě.â íě°ě ěŹëźę° ěŹęł ěśě ë§ěě´ ěť¸ě§ë§ ěěźëа ë§íë¤. âí 머ë, ěŹě¤ ě ě˘ íźęł¤í´ě.â â꡸ë, ꡸ë. ěźëĽ¸ ěŹëźę°ě ěŹě´ëź. ěě¤ě´íí ě°ë˝í´ ë¨ěźëęš ęł§ ěŹ ęą°ë¤.â íě°ě 몸ě ěě´ë ěę° ěŹí íľěŚě´ ëŞ°ë ¤ě ěźęľ´ě´ ěźęˇ¸ëŹěĄë¤. ę°ěěě ꡸ë ę° ę´´ëĄě´ ě´ě ę° ěě¤ ë돸ě´ëźęł ěę°íë¤. íě°ě 머댿ěě ěě¤ě ěę°ě´ ě¤ěł ě§ëę°ë¤. ꡸ë ěě ěę˛ ě§ě§ 모ěľě ě¨ę¸°ęł ěěë¤. ꡸ěę˛ ěŹěěšęľŹę° ěë¤ë ěŹě¤ě´ ě´ë ę˛ ę°ě´ě ę°ěę° ëě´ ë°í ě¤ě 몰ëë¤. âë´ę° ě§ę¸ęšě§ ě°¸ęł ę˛Źëě¨ ë ě´ íěę°ě ě°ě¤ěě§ë¤ëâŚâŚ.â âŚâŚ ěě¤ě ë¤ěë ë°¤ ëŚę˛ë ëě´ ëł¸ę°ě ëě°Šíë¤. âěě§ ě ě¤ě´? ęš¨ě´ ěěźëŠ´ě ëśě ě ęşź ëě´?â ęˇ¸ę° ěš¨ě¤ě ëśě ěź°ë¤. íě°ě ęˇ¸ë° ęˇ¸ëĽź 보늰 ë§ěě´ ëśí¸íë¤. ꡸ë ë í루 ě˘ ěź ěš¨ëě ëěë§ ěěë¤. ě§ěŹę° ę°ě ¸ë¤ě¤ ěěë ęą°ě ë¨šě§ ëŞťíęł ę˛°ęľ ęˇ¸ę˛ë¤ě ě°¨ę°ę˛ ěě´ë˛ëڰ ěíěë¤. âëšě ëŠ°ěš ëě ě´ëě ěěě´ě?â ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě ëł´ě§ë ěě ěą ěě˛í´ě§ 모ěľěźëĄ ëěěě íěě´ ëŹźěë¤. ěŹíˇě ë˛ě ꡸ě ííí ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ëëŹëŹë¤. ěě¤ě ꡸ë ě 돟ěě 미ę°ě ěëŠ ě°í¸ëڰ ěą ěš¨ë í¤ë 쪽ěźëĄ ëě ëë ¸ë¤. ę˛°íź 3ë ëě ꡸ë ę° ě´ë ę˛ ěě ě íë°Šě ěśęśíë ę˛ě ě˛ěě´ěë¤. âTěě ěë ě§ěŹě 돸ě ę° ěě´ě ěśěĽ ë¤ë ěě´.â ěě¤ě íěě˛ëź ëë´íę˛ ëëľí í, ęˇě°Žë¤ë ëŻ ęą°ěš ę˛ ëĽíě´ëĽź ëě´ë´ëŚŹęł ë ěě¤ ěŞ˝ěźëĄ íĽíë¤. â꡸ëě?â íě°ě ěě ěëŚŹę° ěš¨ě¤ ěě ě¸ë ¸ë¤. âëšěě¤ ęľŹëí ě¤ěĽëęť ěŹě¤ë´¤ëë° TěëĄ ę°ë ëší기í 꾏매ë´ěě´ ěëęľ°ě.â ꡸ë ě ë§íŹě ěěŹě´ ěëŠ ëŹťě´ëŹë¤. âëŹ´ě¨ ë§ě íęł ěśě ęą°ěź?â ěě¤ě´ ěě¤ ě 꾏ě ëŠěś° ěě 돟ěë¤. ęľłě´ ěźęľ´ě ëł´ě§ ěěë ęˇ¸ę° íę° íë°í기 ě§ě ě´ëźë ę˛ěݤě ě ě ěěë¤. âí, ęł§ ëś ę°ě´ í뼟 ë´ę˛ ë¤.â ě 3í íě¨ ě§ě 늰ëëŚŹę° ë ě´ě âëšě ě´ë ꡸ ěŹě, ë체 ě¸ě ëśí° ë§ë ęą°ěź?â íě°ě´ ę˛¨ě° ëŞ¸ě ěśě¤ëŚŹëŠ° 욨ëě 기ë ěěë¤. ěě¤ě ꡸ë ę° 3ë ě íźě¸ě ęł ëĽź í ëëł´ë¤ í¨ěŹ ë§ëë¤ë ę˛ě ěěěąë¤. ě´ě°ë ěźěěëě§ ë°ëě´ ëśëŠ´ ë ěę°ë˛ëŚ´ ę˛ ę°ěë¤. âëšě ë´ ëˇěĄ°ěŹëĽź í ęą°ěź?â ꡸ě ěěě´ ëłíë¤. âë´ę° ꡸ë ę˛ íę°í ěŹëěźëĄ ëł´ěŹě? ë´ę° ě ěíë ëłěěě ë´ ë ëěźëĄ ëšě ë¤ ë ěŹëě ë´¤ě´ě.â ꡸ë ë ëŽě 몊ě댏ëĄ, í ę¸ě í ę¸ě ëë°ëë° ë´ ëąěë¤. ěę°, ěŹěĽě´ 찢기ë ę˛ ę°ěë¤. íě§ë§ ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ěë 몝ë§ë í 기ěě´ ěë Ľíë¤. ꡸ë íě°ě´ ěŹęł ę° ë ę˛ě ě늴ěë ęąąě íë ë§ í ë§ë ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë ęˇ¸ę° íë ë§ë¤ě ë¤ěźëа íě¤ě¤ëŹě´ ëëě´ ë¤ěë¤. âëśëśëĄ ě´ěë 3ë ě´ëźë ěę°ě´ ě돴ę˛ë ěë ę˛ ę°ě.â íě°ě 늰ëëŚŹę° íë ěź ë§ë¤ í¸ě§ěĄë ěě´ë¨¸ëě ěě ě ëěŁę°ěě˛ëź ěŹę¸°ë ěëě´ěę˛ ě ěąě ë¤íë¤. ě§ěěë 죟ëśëĄ ë íěŹěěë íě ě ě¸ ëšě ěí ě ëë§Ąěë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě í 머ë ę°ěě ěŹěŹě ëťě ë°ëź ěë¤, ë¸ ě ëłë ě˘ě ěě늰ëëŚŹę° ëë ¤ęł ë ¸ë Ľíë¤. 3ë ëě ꡸ë§íź íěźëŠ´ ę°ěě ěŹěŹěę˛ ę°ěĄąěźëĄěě ě댏ë 윊ëśí ě§í¨ ę˛ě´ë¤. íě§ë§ ꡸ 결곟ë ě´ë íę°? 3ë ę° íě°ě ěě¤ě 몸ě ěę°ë˝ íëë ë ěę° ěěë¤. í ë°Šě ě°ęł ěěě§ë§ 욨ëë ë°ëĄ ěźę¸° ë돸ě´ěë¤. íě°ě ë°ë ¤ě¤ë íľěŚě ě°¸ěźëа ě°¨ę°ě´ ꡸ě ëě ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. ꡸ëŹë¤ ëŹ´ě¨ ěŠę¸°ę° ëŹëě§ ě댏뼟 ë´ě´ ę°ëłę˛ ěěë¤. âëšě ě´ë¨¸ëë ë´ę° ě ë 몝 ëłěźëŠ´ě 결íźí ěěŹë ěë ěŹěëźęł íěŁ . ꡸ë°ë° ě§ę¸ ëšě ě´ ë°ěě ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŹěě ěě´ëĽź ę°ě§ 깸 ë´ę° ě´ëťę˛ ë°ěë¤ěŹěź íěŁ ?â ę°ě í 욨ëě 기ëęł ěë ꡸ë ë ëšěĽě´ëźë ě°ëŹě§ ę˛ ę°ěë¤. íě§ë§ ęł ę°ëĽź ęźżęźżíę˛ ěłë¤ęł ë ꡸ě ěˇęšě ěĄěë¤. íě§ë§ ęł§ë°ëĄ ęľľě ꡸ě ěě ěĄíęł ë§ěë¤. íěě¤ě ě°¨ę°ě´ ëëšěźëĄ ꡸ë 뼟 뚤í ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. âí경ě´ë ë´ ě¸ěť¨ëę° ěëěź. 20ë ëę˛ ěęł ě§ë¸ ěŹě´ěź.â âě´ëŚ´ ě ëśí° ěęł ě§ë¸ ěŹě´ě꾏ë.â íě°ě ěě ě ěĄęł ěë ěě¤ě ěě ě ě íě´ ë¤ě´ę°ë ę˛ě ëęźë¤. âí경ě´ę° 5ë ě ě ěśęľí ě´íëĄ ěëĄ íë˛ë ě°ë˝í ě ěě´.â ꡸ë ë ë¤íľě뼟 í ë ě¸ę˛ ë§ě ę˛ ę°ěë¤. âě´ěŠě§ ě돴댏 ě°žěë´ë ěŹě뼟 ë§ë íě ě´ 1ë ěëëźëâŚâŚ.â íě§ë§ ꡸ ěŹěę° ěě í ę˛ě´ ë¤ě ěę°ëŹë¤. ꡸ë ë ë¤ě ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ęł ě° ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ëŹźěë¤. â꡸ëě ě´ě ë ěŹë, ë¤ě ë§ëë ęą°ěě?â íěě¤ě ëę° ë§íë ¤ë¤ę° ě ě ë¤ëŹźěë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ë ě´ëěě§ ęˇ¸ë ě ëëě뼟 ě 늴ěźëĄ ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. âë´ę° ě ëšě ě ě´ ęłł ě죟ě¸ěźëĄ ë¤ěëě§ ë˛ě¨ ěě ę˛ ę°ęľ°.â HT ꡸룚 ë´ěë ěěě ěíë íě ë¤ě´ ë§ěęł íęłě ě댏뼟 ë ¸ëŚŹë ěë¤ë ë§ěë¤. ěě¤ě í 머ëě¸ ę°ěě ěŹěŹë ěźëśëŹ Běě ëŻ¸íź ěŹěą ě¤ěě ěě늰ë댏뼟 ęł¨ëź ęˇ¸ě 결íźěí¤ęł , ěë¤ ë¸ě ëłě ꡸룚 ë´ěěě ě ě§ëĽź ë¨ë¨í íë ¤ęł íë¤. ę°ěě ěŹěŹë ěě ě ěëŞ ě ęľŹí´ ě¤ íě°ě ěě늰ëëŚŹëĄ ěśě˛íë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ě°žěę° ëŞ¨ë ěźě ę°ěíě§ ěę˛ ë¤ęł ě˝ěíęł ëšë°ę˛°íźě ëěíë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ëšěě ěě ě´ ě´ěíë ě ëę°ë ë¸ëë ěľë 돸ě ëŤěë¤. ꡸ íëĄ HT꡸룚ě ë¤ě´ę° ěě¤ě ěźě ëë ëšěëĄ ěźí´ěë¤. ꡸ëě ęˇ¸ę° íě°ěę˛ ě ě ëě§ ë§ëźęł ę˛˝ęł íë ę˛ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ę° ěěźëа ë§íë¤. âě긴ě, íë뼟 ěě ëŁěźëŠ´ ë ę°ęł ěśě ę˛ ěŹë ěěŹě´ěěě?â ꡸ë ě ěźęľ´ě 창밹íě§ë§ ëëěë ëšě´ ëęł ěěë¤. ěźęľ´ě 미ěë§ě ěěëëźëŠ´ ë§ěš 돴ë¤ěě ęą¸ě´ ëě¨ ě˛ë ęˇě ę°ě ëł´ěěě§ë 몰ëë¤. ěę°, ěě¤ě íě°ě´ ě´ëę° ëłíë¤ęł ëęźë¤. íě§ë§ ꡸ ë§ě ě ë°ě ë´ě§ë ěěë¤. ꡸ë ę° ěĄí ěě ěŹëаě ëšźëë¤. 꽤 í° ěš¨ě¤ě ě°˝ëŹ¸ě´ ëŤí ěěëë° ęłľę¸°ę° ě ě ëľëľí´ě§ęł ěěë¤. ě¨ëë ě ě ëěě ¸ ě´ëë§ ě¨ëęłę° 30ë뼟 ę°ëŚŹí¤ęł ěěë¤. ëě´ ęłľę¸°ě ěě¤ě ě¨ě´ ę°ëš ě¤ë ę˛ě´ ëęť´ěĄë¤. íě°ě ë¤ě ꡸ě ě ě¸ ęšě ěě ę°ě ¸ë¤ ëë¤. ꡸ë íźíě§ ěęł ę°ë§í ěěë¤. ꡸ë ě˝ę° íę° ë ëŻí ěźęľ´ě´ěě§ë§ ë돴 ëě ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ě´ëź ę¸°ë Ľě´ ěě´ ëł´ěë¤. âëšě ě§ę¸ ëŹ´ě¨ ě§ě íë ęą°ěź?â ě 4í ë ě´ě íě¨ ě§ě 늰ëëŚŹę° ěëěě íě°ě ěě¤ě ě ě¸ ë¨ěśëĽź íëěŠ íěë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ęˇ¸ě 볾ꡟě ë°ëź ë´ë ¤ę°ëа ě ě ë§ěśěë¤. ě¤ëŤëě ę°ěś°ě¨ ěě¤ě ëí ę°ë§ íě¸ě§ ęˇë°ęšě§ ëśě´ěĄë¤. ꡸ë ë ěë댟ě ëŠěśě§ ěě ěą ě° ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ë§íë¤. âë´ę° ě´ëťę˛ ě´ ě§ě ěě ě죟ě¸ě´ ëěëě§ ěěëęł ě? ě´ëťę˛ ěě ě ěę˛ ě´ě. ě ě돴ë ëšě ě ěě´ëĽź ëłë ęą°ěě. ě§ę¸ ëë ë´ ě돴뼟 ěííęł ěë ęą°ęł ě.â âě´ëťę˛ ęˇ¸ë° ë§ě?!â í뼟 ë´ë ěě¤ě ííí ëłľęˇźě´ ě¸ëŁŠëśëŁŠ ěě§ěë¤. âë°Š ěě ěľěě 뼟 ě˘ ëżë ¸ě´ě. 쥰ę¸ë§ ě°¸ěźëŠ´ ęł§ ę´ě°Žěě§ ęą°ěě. ě ë ě ě돴뼟 ěí´ ěě´ëĽź ę°ě§ë ¤ë ę˛ëżě´ěě.â ꡸ë ë ë ëë´íęł ęłźę°íę˛ íëíë¤. ě ěë íë˛ë ëł´ěŹě¤ ě ěë ěěźí 모ěľě´ěë¤. íě°ě ě ꡚě ě¸ ëë°ě ěě¤ě ëŞ¸ě´ ëł¸ëĽě ěźëĄ ë°ěí기 ěěíęł í¸íĄë ęą°ěš ě´ěĄë¤. ě´ ëŞ¨ë ę˛ ěľěě ë돸ě´ëźęł ěěźëĄ ëëě´ëа, ěě¤ě í ëě ęš¨ëŹźě´ ę°ęšě¤ëĄ ëě°žě ěźë§ě ě´ěąěźëĄ íě°ě 깰욨ěë ěě ę˝ ěěź ěĄěë¤. âěľíě°, ë ě ë§ ě겨ě.â ěě¤ě ë§ě ꡸ë ě ëě´ě¤ëĽ´ë ěë§ě´ ěěę°ě íě ę°ëźěě ë˛ë ¸ë¤. íě°ě ëě ëëŹźě´ ęł ěë¤. ë§ě§ë§ě¸ ëŻ í ë§ë 돟ěë¤. âë뼟 ěë ę˛ ęˇ¸ë ę˛ ęľŹěě§ëě?â â꡸ë!â ěě¤ě ꡸ë 뼟 ëë°ëĄ ěłë¤ëł´ëŠ´ě 쥰ę¸ë ë§ě¤ě´ě§ ěęł ëëľíë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ë°ěłëë¤. ëë ꡸ë ě íë§ëë íęł ěśě§ ěěë¤. ěě¤ě íě°ě´ ë˛ę¸´ ěˇě ě§ě´ ë¤ęł ë¤ě ě 기 ěěíë¤. ꡸ë ë¨ěśë ě ęˇ¸ě§ ěě ěą ěąíźěąíź ęą¸ě´ ëę°ë˛ë ¸ë¤. ë°ŠëŹ¸ě´ âěž âíęł ëŤí늴ě 죟ěę° ë¤ě 쥰ěŠí´ěĄë¤. íě°ě ęˇ¸ę° ëę°ě 긴ěĽě´ íë ¤ ë°ëĽě 죟ě ěěë¤. ëěë ěë§ě´ ě°¨ěŹëë¤. ěě¤ě ë°Šě ëě늰 ěę°íë¤. âě´ ě ëëĄ íěźëŠ´ ěë ë§ěë ěě´ě§ę˛ ě§âŚâŚ.â âŚâŚ ë¤ěë ě욨, íě°ě ěě§ ěąěš ěě ë¤ěš ë¤ëŚŹëĽź ě ë깰댏늰 ěŹíę°ë°Šě ëęł ěë츾ěźëĄ ë´ë ¤ę°ë¤. ě§ě ě´ëŚźě ëë ę°ě ëśę° ěěŹëĽź ě¤ëšíęł ěěë¤. ę°ěě ěŹěŹë ě벽기ë뼟 ëëŚŹëŹ ę°ëëź ě§ě ëšě´ ěíěë¤. âě´ë¨¸, ěě¸ë! ěŁ˝ë¤ ě´ěë ě§ ěźë§ ëě§ë ěěëë° ë˛ě¨ ě§ ëęł ě´ë ę°ë ¤ë ęą°ěě? íšě ěŹí ę°ě?â íěě¤ě ěšëě íěěě´ ëšě 깰댏늰 ë§íë¤. ꡸ë ë íěŹ Bëíęľ 2íë ě ěŹíě¤ě´ë¤. ěěě íě°ęłź ě´ë ę˛ ę°ěĄąěźëĄ ë§ëë ę˛ě´ ěŹě í ěľěíě§ ěęł ëśí¸íę¸°ë§ íë¤. âëę°ę¸° ě ě ë 머댏 íë ęą° ě˘ ëěěŁźęł ę°ě.â íě°ě ěěŹěŁźę° ě˘ě í¸ě´ëź ěěě 머댏뼟 ęł§ě ěě§í´ěŁźěë¤. ě¤íěźě´ ě˘ěě ěšęľŹë¤ëĄëśí° ëśëŹěě ěë¤. íě§ë§ ě¤ë íě°ě ꡸ë ě ë§ě ě í ëꞸë íě§ ěęł ě§ě ëęł ë´ë ¤ěë¤. ë§ěš¨ ęˇëśě¸ě˛ëź ěšěĽí íě¨ ě§ěě ěěŁźě¸ ě´ěě ěŹěŹě ë§ěŁźěł¤ë¤. ꡸ë ë HT꡸룚 ííęˇ íěĽě ëë˛ě§¸ ěë´ě´ě ěě¤ě ěšě´ë¨¸ëěë¤. ě´ěě ë ě˛ěëśí° íě°ě ěˇě°¨ëŚźęłź ę°ě ë°°ę˛˝ě´ ë§ěě ë¤ě§ ěě í¨ëśëĄ ë§í기 ěźě¤ěë¤. âě욨 ëë°ëëśí° ěŹíę°ë°Šě ëęł ë¤ë늰 ëíë ě§ě´ěź? ëšěĽ ë´ë ¤ëęł ě˛ěě¤ě¸ ě´ëިëě´ë ëěëź. ęł§ ěëĄ ěŹëě´ ë¤ě´ěě ě§ë´ę˛ ë ęą°ëęš.â íě°ě ëęşźíě´ ë¨ë ¤ěë¤. ěě ě´ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ęł ěë ěźě´ ěźě´ëęł ěěë¤. ꡸ë, ěěě ëŁęł ěë íěěě´ ęśę¸ěŚě ě°¸ě§ ëŞťíęł ëŹźěë¤. âěëĄ? ëę°ě?â âëę° ě˘ě 죽ë íę˛˝ě´ ë§ęł ëę° ë ěę˛ ë?â âë¤? í경ě¸ë ęˇęľíě´ě?â âëěě¤ę¸°ë§ í ę˛ ěëęł , ë¤ ě¤ëš ěě´ëĽź ę°ěĄěě. ě°ëŚŹě§ í°ę° ě˘ěě ě ęš ě기 ě§ěźëĄ ë¤ě´ę°ę¸° ě ě ěŹę¸°ě 몸ě ěśě¤ëĽź ęą°ěź.â ꡸ë ë ě´ěźę¸°í늴ě íě°ě íë˛ íë ěłë¤ëł´ěë¤. 믟í경ě´ěź ë§ëĄ ěě ě´ ěę°í´ě¨ ě´ěě ě¸ ëŠ°ë댿ę°ě´ěë¤. ě ě´ě ꡸ ěźě´ ěëěěźëŠ´ ěě¤ě í경곟 결íźíě ę˛ě´ë¤. ꡸ë ę° íě°ě ë´ë ¤ë¤ëł´ëŠ´ě 돴ěíë íŹëĄ ë§íë¤. âë ěě§ë 깰기 ěě ëŠíë ëíęł ěë? ě˛ěíëŹ ę°ě§ ěęł ?â ěě ę°ěěźëŠ´ íě°ě í댟ěě´ ěě´ë¨¸ëě ëšě뼟 ë§ěśěě ę˛ě´ë¤. íě§ë§ ě¤ëě ěě ě 늸ěíë ꡸ë ě ëťëëĄ íęł ěśě§ ěěë¤. íě°ě ë돴ëë ęł íľě¤ëŹě ě§ë§ 욨찊íę˛ ëě í íë뼟 ěě§ ěęł ë§íë¤. âě¤ëëśí° ě ě ěě¤ ě¨ë ë ě´ě ëśëśěŹě´ę° ěëěě. ěěě´ ë¨¸ëŚŹ íë ęą°ë ë°Š ě˛ě ę°ě íëë ěźě ě´ě ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŹëěę˛ ěí¤ě¸ě.â ě 5í ě´íźíŠěě ě´ěě ěŹěŹë íě°ě´ ě ęłźë ěě í ë¤ëĽ¸ íŹëĄ ë§íë ę˛ě ëł´ęł ëě í 믿기ě§ę° ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë 읤ë¤ë ěŹíě´ě´ę° ë°í ë°ě§ëĽź ë ěę°ë˝ěźëĄ íě°ě ę°ëŚŹěź°ë¤. âęˇ¸ę˛ ëŹ´ě¨ íëěź!? ë°Šę¸ íë ë§ ë¤ě íë˛ í´ë´!â íě§ë§ íě°ě 쥰ę¸ë ëë ¤ěíë 기ě ěě´ ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ëë°ëĄ ěłë¤ë´¤ë¤. â믟í경ě´ëźë ěŹěę° ě§ě ë¤ě´ě¤ëŠ´ ꡸ ěŹěíí ě§ěěźě ěí¤ě¸ě. ě ë ěěźëĄ íě§ ěě ęą°ěě.â íě°ě ěľëě˛ëź ëśě ě ě ëĄ ëë°ëë° ë§íë¤. ë§ě íęł ëë ěě´ ěěíë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹë ꡸ë ě ë§ě ë˛ěťĽ í뼟 ëë¤. âë!â âěë§, ěë§!â ěěě´ íĽëśí ěë§ě íě ëśěĄęł 몊ě댏뼟 ëŽěśě´ ë§íë¤. âěě¸ë íë ęą° ë§ěŁ ? ě´ě Żë°¤ě ě¤ëš ę°âŚâŚ.â ꡸ë ë ëśë ě§ě ëśěąě§ě´ëźë íë ¤ë ëŻ ě´ě Żë°¤ ěźě ęşźë´ë ¤ęł íë¤. ꡸ 모ěľě ëł´ë íě°ě í뼟 ëě°ë ¤ë ěëę° ěśŠëśí ëł´ěë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹë ë¸ě ěë뼟 ę¸ë°Š ěěěąęł ë¤ě ě°¨ëśí´ěĄë¤. ꡸ë ë íšě ě ęą°ë¤ë¨šęą°ëŚŹë íŹëĄ ë§íë¤. âë¨í¸ íë ëśěĄě§ 몝íë 죟ě ě ëł ěľě§ëĽź ë¤ ëśëŚŹë¤. ę°í ěě´ë¨¸ë íě í´?â íě°ě ë댿ë댿 ě§ě ëęł ëě¤ë¤ę° ě í ě 꾏ěě ë°ęą¸ěě ëŠěśěë¤. ěŹěĽë°ëě´ ëš¨ëźě§ëŠ´ě ë¨¸ëŚŹę° ěŞźę°ě§ ëŻ ěí ë¤. ꡸ë ë ęł ę°ëĽź ëë ¤ ěě íźëśęł ěśě ë§ěě ęžš ë뼴늰 ě°¨ę°ę˛ ë§íë¤. âě§ë 3ë ëě ěě´ę° ěěë ę˛ ë¤ ě ë돸ě´ëźęł íě ¨ěŁ ? ě ěěŹí기 ě ě ěě¤ ě¨ěę˛ ëšë¨ę¸°ęłź ě§ëŁëĽź ë°ěźëźęł íë í¸ě´ ëš ëĽź ęą°ěě. ꡸ëŹëŠ´ ěě ě´ ěëë ěě¸ě´ ęłźě° ë꾏 쪽ě ěëě§ ě ě ěě ęą°ěě.â âë, ëę° ę°í!â íě°ě ë§ě ě´ ěŹěŹě ěě ë ë¤ ęšě§ ëëë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹë 머댏 ëęšě§ íę° ěšë°ěë¤. âěľíě°! ë ëë ě°ëŚŹ ěě¤ě´íęł ęź ě´íźěí¤ęł ë§ í ë ëęł ë´!â ꡸ëě íě°ě ěě¤ě í 머ë ę°ěě ěŹěŹěě ě ě ěę°í´ě íě¨ ě§ě ěŹëë¤ęłź ë¤íźě íźíë¤. ě ë§í´ě ě기 ě겏ě ë´ě¸ě°ě§ ěęł ěë§íę˛ ě§ë´ěë¤. ě§ę¸ęšě§ë ě§ě ěŹëë¤ęłź ę°ëąě´ ěę¸¸ęš ë´ ëë ¤ěí늰 ě§ëě§ë§ ě´ě ë ě 경 ě°ě§ ěę¸°ëĄ íë¤. â꡸ëŹěëę°ě.â ꡸ë ë íë§ë ë´ëąęł ěě¤ě 본ę°ëĽź ëěë¤. ě´ ěŹěŹę° íę° ëě ę¸¸ę¸¸ě´ ë°ë ë§ë ěę´ěěë¤. íě°ě´ ëę°ě ë§ě ě´ ěŹěŹë ëę° ě´ěíë¤ë ěę°ě´ ë¤ěë¤. ꡸ë ë ë¸ íěěě ë°ëźëł´ëа 돟ěë¤. â2츾 ěŹëźę°ě ě°ëŚŹě§ě ë ë ë§í ëŹźęą´ě´ ěě´ěĄëě§ ě ě´í´ë´. ë¤ęł ëę°ë ěşëŚŹě´ę° 꽤ë 돴깰ě ëł´ě´ëë° íšě ěąę˛¨ę°ëě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ěě!â ě ě í ëśëŚŹëěź ęłë¨ě ë°ě´ë´ë ¤ě¤ë íěěě ěě ěëĽę° íë ë¤ë ¤ ěěë¤. âěë§, ěě´ě§ ęą´ ěě´ě. ëě 욨ë 머댏맥ě ëę° íë ěě´ě!â ěëĽëĽź ëšźěě ě´í´ëł´ë ě´ ěŹěŹě ëëšě´ íë¤ë ¸ë¤. [ě´íźíŠěě] ě´ ěŹěŹë ęł§ěĽ ěě¤ěę˛ ě í뼟 ęą¸ě´ íě°ě íę°ě ꡸ěę˛ ë¤ ěěëë¤. íí ë°ë ě´ë¨¸ëě ě ěě ëě¤ë ë¨ě´ë¤ ě¤ âě´íźíŠěěâ, âë°ę¸°ëśě â ëąě ë¤ě ěě¤ě ěěě ęą¸ě´ ë ě¸íŹëĽź 깸ěšęł ěŚě íěě¤ě ëě°ë¤. "ěë§, ěë§! ěźë¨ ě§ě ě˘ě." ęˇ¸ę° ëŽě 몊ěëŚŹëĄ ě´ë¨¸ë뼟 ě§ě ěěź°ë¤. [ë´ę° ě§ę¸ ě§ě íę˛ ě겟ě´? ë´ ęˇí ěë¤ěę˛ ě´ ë°ě ë§ë¤ě ě¨ ë¨ëë°? ë§ěš¨ í경ě´ę° ë¤ě´ěŹ ęą°ëęš ě´ íě´ë°ě ě§ ëę°ě¤ ęą´ ě°¸ ęł ë§ě§ë§. ěë, ě§ę° ëëźęł ę°í 먟ě ě´íź ě기뼟 ęşźë´? 몽ëĽě´ ě°ě§ëĄ ěŤěë´ë ěěě°Žě ë âŚâŚ] ě´ë¨¸ëě ě´ěźę¸°ę° 길ě´ě§ ę˛ ę°ě ěě¤ě ě´ëě´ íě ěźëĄ íľíě˘ ëŁ ë˛íźě ëë ë¤. ěŹíęť ěě˘ ě ě´ęł ëěš ëš ëĽ´ę˛ íëíë íě°ě´ ě´ë° ěźě ě ě§ë ë¤ë ěŹě¤ě´ ëě í 믿ě´ě§ě§ ěěë¤. íě§ë§ ě´ě Żë°¤ íěěë ëŹëë ꡸ë ę° ěę°ëŹë¤. ꡸ë í´ëí° ě°ë˝ě˛ 몊ëĄěě íě°ě ë˛í¸ëĽź ę˛ěíë¤. ęˇ¸ę° ë¨źě ě í뼟 ęą°ë ę˛ě 3ë ë§ě ě˛ěě´ěë¤. íľíě°ę˛°ěě´ ë¤ëŚŹë ěę°, ëšěě¤ ęľŹëí ě¤ěĽě´ ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í°ěě ë´ëŚŹëë ꡸ěę˛ ë¤ę°ěë¤. âěŹěĽë, ë°Šę¸ ě ě´ëŠěźëĄ ěëĽę° íë ëě°Šíëë°, ěľíě° ëšěě ěŹě§ěě ëë¤.â 꾏ě¤ěĽě ë돴 ëëź ě¨ě´ ë§í ě§ę˛˝ě´ěë¤. â꡸ëě ěľëšěę° ě§ííë ěŹě ë¤ě´ ě ě§ ěěľëë¤. ꡸ ě¤ ě ěź ě¤ěí íëĄě í¸ę° ëë°ě´ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëíě¸ë° ěľëšěę° ěě§ íěěěę˛ ě 돴 ě¸ęłëĽź íě§ ěěěľëë¤. ě´ëťę˛âŚâŚ íě¤ ęą´ě§âŚâŚ.â ěě¤ě ëŻëšě´ ëěą ě´ëěěĄë¤. ꡸ë í´ëí°ěě ěŹěě 몊ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¤ěë¤. [ęł ę°ëě´ ě í뼟 ë°ě ě ěěľëë¤. ě ě íě ë¤ě ęą¸ě´ ěŁźě기 ë°ëëë¤.] í, ěľíě°. ě§ę¸ ë´ ě í ěšëë¤ ě´ęą°ě§? ě 6í íěě¤ě ě°žěę°ë¤ ęłľí ëĄëšě ě ěë ěľíě°ě ě ě í´ě§ í¸ëí°ě ě¨ě´ í¸ě´ë 기ëśě´ěë¤. ěë§ë ě¤ëŤëě íě¨ ę°ëʏěę˛ ěľěě ë°ě기 ëëŹ¸ěź ę˛ě´ë¤. íě§ë§ ě§ę¸ě ě¨ëŞ¸ě´ ę°ë˛źě ë¤. ě¤ę°ë ěŹíę°ë¤ě ëł´ë íě°ě ěę°ě ě 겟ë¤. âBě뼟 ë ëë¤ęł ěę°íë ě˘ ěąěěěíë¤.â â꡸ëë ę´ě°Žě, ë ě´ě íë ěźě ěě ęą°ěź.â ꡸ë ë ë¨ěí íěě¤ě ěŹëě´ ěěë¤ęł ë§ ěę°íě§ë§, ě§ę¸ě ě´ ëŞ¨ë ę˛ ë¤ ęˇ¸ę° ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŹëě ěŹëíęł ě기 ë돸ě´ëźë ę˛ě ě ě ěěë¤. âě°¨ëźëŚŹ ęšëíę˛ ë ë죟ë ę˛ ë ëě.â íě°ě ęł§ěĽ ęłľí ěš´ě´í°ëĄ ę°ě 체íŹě¸ě íęł , ě´ëݏ Dęľí í°ěźě ě매í ěíěë¤. ě˛ě ꡸ë ë ę°ěĄąě ë ë ě ëśě ě¨ę¸°ęł Běě 머돟ë ë¤. ě´ë˛ě Dęľěě ě´ëڰ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëí íëĄě í¸ë§ ěëěë¤ëŠ´ í ěë˛ě§ë ꡸ë ě ěě¤ě ë§ëęł ěśě´íě ¨ě ę˛ě´ęł , ě´ íëĄě í¸ëĽź HT꡸룚ě ěšě¸íě§ ěěě ę˛ě´ë¤. ꡸ëŹë ěě¤ě ę°ěŹí´í기ë읤ë ꡸ë íźě ëł´ëë¤. ě´ě íě° ě°¨ëĄěë¤. âěë íěëęš, ěë. ě´ í°ěźě íěŹ ě 겨 ěě´ ëšëśę° ě˛ëŚŹí ě ěěľëë¤.â ëšěŚëě¤ ěš´ě´í° ě§ěě ě ě¤íę˛ ęą°ě íë¤. âě 겨ěë¤ęł ě?â 믿ě ě ěë íě°ě ě¨ëŞ¸ě´ ěźě´ëśěë¤. âęˇ¸ë´ ëŚŹę° ěëë°âŚâŚ, ë¤ě íë˛ íě¸í´ 죟ěę˛ ě´ě?â âíěŹ ęłě˘ëĄ ě매íě ¨ëě? ë°Šę¸ íëśí ę˛ěźëĄ íě¸ëëë°, ě ëśěŚ ě˘ ëł´ěŹěŁźěę˛ ěľëęš?â ââŚâŚ.â íě°ě 돸ë í ę°ě§ ěŹě¤ě´ ë ěŹëë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ëšěě기ě íěŹěě ë§ë¤ě´ě¤ ëëśëśě ęłě˘ë HTęˇ¸ëŁšě´ ę´ëŚŹíë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ě ëśěŚěâŚâŚ. ěźë§ě íěŹ ě¸ěŹëśěě ě´ë¤ ę˛ě ëąëĄí´ěź íë¤ëа ë¤ęł ę° ěíěë¤. íě°ě ë돴 긴ěĽí´ ěě´ ëë ë¨ë ¸ë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě˛ë°ě ë¨ě§ ěě ě´ ëě뼟 í루 뚨댏 ë ëęł ěśě´ 체ęłě ě´ě§ 몝í ëśëśě´ ë§ěë¤. âěŁěĄí´ě, ě ę° ě íí´ě 돟ě´ëłźę˛ě.â ꡸ë ë ę°ěĽěëŚŹëĄ ęą¸ě´ę° í´ëí°ě ęşźë´ HT꡸룚 ě¸ěŹíě ě í뼟 깸ěě§ë§ ě íë ęą¸ëŚŹě§ ěěęł , ěŹěŠí ě ěë ë˛í¸ëźë ëŠěě§ë§ ë´ë¤. íě°ě 머댏ěě´ ěíěěĄë¤. âě´ëťę˛ ë´ í´ëí° ë˛í¸ë HT꡸룚ěě ěźę´ě ěźëĄ ę´ëŚŹíë¤ë 깸 ěęł ěěěęš!â âHT꡸룚, HT꡸룚!â HT꡸룚ě ęłěí´ě ꡸ë ě 깸댟ëě´ěë¤. ęłľíě ëš ě ¸ëě¨ íě°ě íŠę¸í íě뼟 ěĄęł HT꡸룚 ëšëŠěźëĄ íĽíë¤. 차창 ë°ěźëĄ ëšę° íëë°Šě¸ ë¨ě´ě§ę¸° ěěíęł , ęł§ ě°ë ěě 깴돟ë¤ě´ ëě ë¤ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ë ě´ě 기ěŹěę˛ ëě ęą´ë¨ ë¤ ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź ëęł HT꡸룚 본ę´ěźëĄ ë¤ě´ę°ë¤. ë¤íí ꡸ë ě í´ěŹ ěěě ěě§ íźě§ě§ ěěęł , íě°ě ëšě ě ě´ íí¸ëŹě§ 머댏뼟 ě 댏í í ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í°ëĽź íë¤. ꡸ë ë ě¸ěŹíě´ ěë 12츾ě ëë ¸ë¤. âěě´ęł , ěľ ëšěë, ě¤ë ëš ě¨ë¤ęł íëë° ëŞ¨ëĽ´ě ¨ë ë´ě.â ě¸ěŹí ě°¨ěĽě ěŹěąě¤ëŹě´ ěě§ě ěŚę˛¨ íë 기ěě¤ëźëšě´ě, ěëśě ëĽí ě ě´ě¨ě´ěë¤. ěě¤ě´ íě°ěę˛ ěí´ěŁźě§ ěë ę˛ě 본 ꡸ë íě íě°ě ë§ëíë ë°ě ěľěíë¤. âë´ ě ëśěŚě ě´ëěě´ě?â íě°ě ꡸ě ëíí ěę°ě´ ěě기ě ë°ëĄ ěě ëśí° ë§íë¤. âě ëśěŚě´ě? ęˇ¸ëź ě몝 ě°žěě¤ě ¨ë¤ě. 2ëś ě ě ëí ëšěě¤ ęľŹ ě¤ěĽëě´ ę°ě ¸ę°ě ¨ëë° ě ę° ě´ëťę˛ ěę˛ ě´ě.â ââŚâŚ!â íě°ě ě´ ę˛°ęłźëĽź ěěíě´ěź íë¤. ěě¤ě ëšěŚëě¤ëĽź í ë ě겊íęł ě ěíę˛ ěě§ě´ęł íë˛ í ë§ě ë°ęž¸ě§ ěë Běěě ěě죟ë ëííě´ěë¤. ě´ëťę˛ íě°ě´ ě˝ę˛ ꡸ěę˛ ëě í ě ěę˛ ëę°! íě°ě´ ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź ëęł ëěěě ěě¤ěę˛ ę°ë ¤ęł íëë° ě ě´ě¨ě´ ꡸ë 뼟 ěĄěë¤. ꡸ě íëę° ëë°ě ě¸ě§, ě ěę° ěëě§ë ëśëśëŞ íë¤. âí´ęł ë ěë ěě´ě, ě ěę°í´ě. ě§ę¸ ě츾ěěë 꽤 ě¤ěí íěę° ě´ëŚŹęł ěęł , í ëíëęťë ě´ëݏ ě˝íźë ę° ěë¤ęł ë¤ěě´ě.â ě 7í 믟í경ě ëśí íěě¤ě ě˝íźě? ěľíě°ęłź íěě¤ě ëšë° 결íźě í기ě íěŹ ěŹëë¤ě ꡸ë ę° ěě¤ě ëšěëźë ę˛ë§ ěęł ěěë¤. âęˇ¸ëź ëŻźí경ě ę°ëŚŹí¤ë ęą´ę°?â íě°ě ě´íźíěěě ěíŹë ë§ëĽ´ę¸° ě ě í경ě HT꡸룚ě íë ¤íę˛ ëąěĽíë¤. ëě¤ě ꡸ë ë íë íě°ě´ ě¤ë 욨ëěě ě ě ěęł ěě¤ęłź ě ě댏뼟 ę°ě§ę¸°ë í ę˛ě´ë¤. ě´ ěę°ě íě°ě ěě´ ë¨ëŚŹę¸° ěěíě§ë§ ę˛ěźëĄë ë´ë´íę˛ ëëľíë¤. âęł ë§ěě.â ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ęˇ¸ë ë ęł§ë°ëĄ ě¸ěŹí ěŹëŹ´ě¤ě ëę°ë¤. ě ě´ě¨ě ě ě ěë íě ěźëĄ íě°ě ëˇëިěľě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. âěě´ęł , ěľ ëšěëě´ ëíëě ě˘ěíë ęą´ ë°ëł´ę° ěë ě´ě 모ëę° ë¤ ě ě ěëë°, í´ęł ëě§ ěë ę˛ ë ě´ěíě§.â ꡸ë ěť´í¨í°ëĽź 보늰 ë§íë¤. âě, ë ěŹë°ë ěźě´ ěę¸°ę˛ ë¤.â ëíě¤ě´ ěë 츾ě ëě°Ší íě°ě ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í°ěě ë´ëŚŹěë§ě 꾏ëí뼟 ë§ëŹë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ě¤ě ¨ë¤ě.â ꡸ë ě ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź 본 ëíë í댟ěě´ íě°ě´ ě ëśěŚě 찞기 ěí´ ěë¤ë ę˛ě ěęł ě ëśěŚě´ ěë íěě¤ě ę°ëŚŹěź°ë¤. âëšěë ě ëśěŚě ëíëęť ëë ¸ě´ě. ěě§ íě ě¤ě´ě ë°, ěě§ ě¸ ë˛ě§¸ íěěě. ę¸íě늴 ě ę° ë§ěë댴ęšě?â âěë¨, ęˇ¸ë´ íě ěě´ě.â íě°ě 돴ë¤ë¤íę˛ ë§íë¤. âěŹę¸°ě 기ë¤ëŚ´ę˛ě.â âë¤, ěę˛ ěľëë¤. ěť¤íź í ě ę°ë¤ ë댴ęšě?â ëíë ěě¤ě´ ꡸ë 뼟 í´ęł í ěę°ě´ ěë¤ë ę˛ě ěęł ěěë¤. íě°ě ë§ě ěźě ë´ëšíęł ěěęł , ě¤ěí íëĄě í¸ę° ë§ě ꡸ë 뼟 í´ęł í늴 ëšěĽ ě ëší ě§ěě ě°žę¸°ę° íë¤ě기 ë돸ě´ë¤. íě°ě ëíë ꡸ě íëë ě ëł´ë¤ í¨ěŹ ëśëëŹěěĄë¤. âKęľě í¸ëë댽 읤íźěě, ë°°ě´ě§ ěźë§ ě ëě§ë§ě.â âě ě ë§ ę´ě°Žěě.â ěě¤ęłź ęšëíę˛ í¤ě´ě§ęł ěśěë íě°ě 죟ě ěŹëë¤ěę˛ ęłě ë´ě´ěŁźě§ ěěë¤. ě´ ë§ě ë¤ě ëíë ě돴 ë§ë íě§ ěęł ě´ëě´ ěźęľ´ëĄ íěě¤ě ë¤ě´ę° ěě¤ěę˛ ěëĽëĽź ęą´ë¸ë¤. íě°ě ëíě¤ ěě ě§ëę°ë¤ íěě¤ ěŞ˝ě íë ěłë¤ë´¤ë¤. 돸íěŹě´ëĄ ëł´ě¸ íěě¤ ë´ëśěë ěŹëŹ ěŹëě´ í ě´ë¸ě ě¤ěŹěźëĄ ěě ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ëˇëިěľęłź ě ěĽë ë˛í°ě§ 몝í ě ëëĄ ëě ꡸ě ě´ęš¨ëĽź ë´¤ë¤. ꡸ë ě쪽ě ěë ěŹëë¤ě ëł´ęł ëĽź ëŁęł ěěęł , 쥰ę¸ěŠ ëł´ě´ë ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě ě°¨ę°ě ěźëа í ë˛ěŠ ě ě ě´ ěě§ěë¤. ěě¤ě íěě ě§ě¤íęł ěěë¤. ěě ě ë댰 íě°ě ěě ě ěě ë¤ëڰ ěşëŚŹě´ě ëšě í ëť ě ě ěˇě ë´ë ¤ë¤ëł´ěë¤. ë§ě ę°ěěë íěě¤ě ë¤ě´ę°ęł ěśěě§ë§, ꡸깴 ëëŚŹę° ěëëźęł ěę°íë¤. ꡸ë ë ë¤ě ëíě¤ě ë°ëźëł´ěë¤. ëśíŹëŞ í ě 댏ěě§ë§ ě´ë ´íě´ íšě í ěěě ěě ěë ěŹěąě ě¤ëٍěŁě´ ëł´ěë¤. ꡸ ěŹěë ëłěěě ě°ě°í ë§ěŁźěł¤ë íę˛˝ě´ ëśëŞ íë¤. ě§ę¸ ë¤ě´ę°ë ęą´ ěě ě ëśëëŹěě ëí ëżě´ěë¤. ě´ë° ěę°ě íě°ě ě§ě ě ě ëł´ę´í í íěĽě¤ëĄ ę° ě°ŹëŹźëĄ ě¸ě뼟 í늰 ěě¤ěę˛ ě´ëťę˛ ëë ¤ëŹëźęł í ě§ ěę°í늰 ë§ěě ě§ě ěěź°ë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ě ě´ë ę˛ ëŚę˛ ě¤ě ¨ě´ě!â ěě ěťěźëŹ ě¨ ě¸í´ ëšěę° ë¤ę°ě ě¸ěŹëĽź ęą´ë¸ë¤. â꡸ë ę˛ ëë¤.â íě°ě ëłë¤ëĽ¸ ě¤ëŞ ě íě§ ěěë¤. ě¸í´ ëšěę° ë ë í í´ě§ëĄ ěźęľ´ě ëŚěźëа ěě ě ěźęľ´ě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. âě§ë ë˛ě Dęľěě í°ě¤ëš ę° ě´ě´ ëš ěĄë¤ęł í길ë ë¤ě´ě´í¸ íë¤ęł íěëë°âŚâŚ.â âë¤ě ěę°í´ëł´ë ě´ ę˛°íź ë돸ě ě¤í¸ë ě¤ ë°ě ęą°ěě´.â â꡸ë, 결곟ě ěźëĄ ěí ě íě´ěź.â ꡸ë ę°ě기 íěĽě¤ ëŹ¸ě´ ě´ëŚŹëë ě°ěí ěíě ěŹěąě´ ë¤ě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ě ěźęľ´ě íěęł íŹëŞ íěźëа ě´ě§ ëśëŁŠí 배뼟 ě ě¸íęł ë ě¨ë޸ěě ęł ęˇí¨ęłź ě°ěí¨ě´ ëŹźěŹ í겟ë¤. í경ě 본 íě°ě ě ě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ę˛ ě´ëąę°ě´ ě겟ë¤. ꡸ë ë ěŹëš¨ëŚŹ ë¨ě 돟기뼟 ëŚęł , ěˇë§¤ëŹ´ě뼟 ě 댏í í ëěěě ëę°ë ¤ íë¤. âě ěë§ě.â ꡸ëŹë ěěě í경ě 몊ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¸ë¤. âë°Šę¸ ěŹëë¤ě´ ěľ ëšěëě´ëźęł ëśëĽ´ëë°, ěě¤ ě¨ ëšě ë§ěŁ ?â ę°ęšěě§ë ë°ě댏ě íě°ě 몸ě ꡸ëëĄ ęľłě´ěĄë¤. í경ě ꡸ë ěę˛ ë¤ę°ę° ëśëë˝ę˛ 미ě뼟 ě§ěë¤. âěě¤ ě¨ íěę° ęł§ ëë ę˛ ę°ěë° ěť¤íź í ěë§ ëíě¤ëĄ ę°ě ¸ë¤ 죟ěę˛ ě´ě? íí¸ ě¨ę° ëŹ´ě¨ ěť¤íźëĽź ě˘ěíëě§ ě ěěěěě, ꡸ë ěŁ ?â ě 8í ě ěę˛ ě죟 ě¤ěí 돟깴ě ëíëęťě ę°ě§ęł ęłěëë¤ ěľíě°ě ě´ëݏ ěŹě§ě뼟 ëěźë 믟í경ě ë§ě ë¤ě ěëŹ´ę° ěě´ ęą°ě íë¤. ęˇ¸ëŚŹęł ëŻźí경ě ëśíě ęą°ě ëŞ ë šě ę°ęšě 기ě ꡸ë ě ěŹę¸°ëĽź ëśí¸íę˛ ë§ë¤ěë¤. íě§ë§ íě°ě ě ëśěŚě´ ěě§ íěě¤ěę˛ ěěźë ë§ě§ë§ěźëĄ ěĄë¤í ěźě ë§Ąę¸°ëĄ íë¤. ëëśě´ 읤íźëĽź ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźëŠ´ě ěě°ě¤ë ꡸ěę˛ ë§ě 깸 ěë ěěë¤. íě°ě ěŹí¸íĄě í ë¤ ëěíë¤. âěę˛ ěľëë¤.â âęˇ¸ëź ëśíí ę˛ě.â ꡸ë ę˛ ë§í í í경ě íěĽě¤ě ëę°ë¤. ěě í 모ěąě ę° ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ę°ě¸ë ěę°ě´ ě ě ěěě§ë§, ěŹě í í경ěę˛ě í겨 ëě¤ë ěě ę°ęłź íë ¤í¨ě íě°ęłź ë쥰ě ě´ěë¤. ęłźęą° íě°ě ëśě í ě§ěě ꡸ë ěë íę˛˝ëł´ë¤ ëí늴 ëíě§ ëíě§ë ěěë¤. íě§ë§ ëŞ ë ě´ í뼸 ě§ę¸, íě°ě ě´ëźí ě ě¸ěë¤. ěě˛ë 겊차ě ꡸ë ë ě ě댏ě ě°ë ě ěěë¤. ęšě íě¨ě ë´ěŹëа ę°ě ě ěśě¤ëڰ í ě ëíźěźëĄ ę°ěě ęł íěĽě¤ěě ëě¨ íě°ě íëšě¤ëĄ ę°ě 읤íźëĽź ë§ë¤ěë¤. ěě¤ě íě¤í 3 í°ě¤íźęłź ě°ě 뼟 ëŁě ěëŠëŚŹěš´ë ¸ëĽź ě˘ěíë¤. íěę° ëë ěŹëë¤ě íë ëěŠ íěě¤ě ëš ě ¸ëěě§ë§ ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě ë°ę˛Źíě§ ëŞťíë¤. âë˛ě¨ ëíě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ę° ęą´ę°?â íě°ě 읤íźëĽź ë¤ęł ëíě¤ ëŹ¸ě ëëë ¸ë¤. âë¤ě´ě¤ě¸ě.â ěěě ë¤ë ¤ě¨ ę˛ě ěě¤ě ě°¨ę°ě´ 몊ěëŚŹę° ěë ě¨ííęł ëśëëŹě´ í경ě 몊ě댏ěë¤. íě°ě ěě´ ë¨ë ¤ íë§í°ëŠ´ 읤íźëĽź ěě ëťíë¤. 긴 ęł ëŻź ëě ꡸ë ë ë§ěš¨ë´ ěŠę¸°ëĽź ë´ě´ ëíě¤ ëŹ¸ě ě´ěë¤. 돸ě ě´ěë§ě ꡸ë ë ěě¤ě 돴ëŚě ěě ꡸ě 몊ě ęť´ěęł ěë í경ě ë°ę˛Źíë¤. ě´ëě ë ěěě íě§ë§ ꡸ ěĽëŠ´ě ë ëěźëĄ ëł´ë íě°ě ě§ě í ě ěěęł ěŹěĽě ęł íľěźëĄ ë°ęł ěěë¤. ëíě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ě¨ íě°ě 본 í경ě ěĄ°ę¸ ëšíŠí ëŻíë¤. âěŹę¸°ě ëęł ëę°ě늴 ëźě.â í경ě ëśëëŹě´ 몊ě댏ě ꡸ë ë ë¤ě 머댿ěě´ ëłľěĄí´ěĄë¤. íě°ě ě˛ě˛í ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ěęł ę˝¤ ę°ęšě´ 깰댏ěě ěě ě ë°ëźëł´ęł ěë ěě¤ě ëęłź ë§ěŁźěł¤ë¤. ꡸ě ëěě ëżě´ě ¸ ëě¤ë ëę¸°ę° ë¨ě¨ě ěě ě ěźěźë˛ëŚ´ ę˛ ę°ěë¤. ꡸ ěę° íě°ě ě§ę°ě ěźëĄ ěě¤ě´ ěźëśëŹ ęˇ¸ë° ëŞ¨ěľě ëł´ěë¤ë ę˛ě ěěë¤. âë´ę° ě ěë ě§ ě늴ě ëíí ęľłě´ ě´ë° 모ěľě ëł´ě´ë ě´ě ę° ëěź!â âěľ ëšěë?â ě°ěż 읤ë ě ěë íě°ě 본 íę˛˝ě´ ě ě ě´ěë¤. âë¤.â íě°ě ęł ę°ëĽź ě´ě§ ëëě´ęł 읤íźëĽź í ě´ë¸ ěě ěŹë ¤ ëě í ëë§ěšëŻ ëěę°ě§ë§ ë¨ ë 깸ě ë§ě 깸ěě ëŠěˇë¤. ë¤ěě ë¤ë ¤ě¤ë íŹëݏí ě댏ě ꡸ë ě 머댏ěě ë¤ěěź ěë ë ěŹëě 모ěľëżě´ěë¤. íě°ě ë¤ëŚŹě íě´ íë ¤ 죟ě ěě ę˛ ę°ěë¤. íě§ë§ íěŹě ěźëĄ ë˛í źë¤. ꡸ëŹë í경ě ěě ęłź ěě¤, ëë§ě ěę°ě ë°Ší´íë ꡸ë ě 쥴ěŹę° ęą°ěŹë ¸ë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ë ë¤ëĽ¸ ěŠęą´ ěěźě¸ě?â â꡸âŚâŚ.â íě°ě ëë´ ěŠę¸°ëĽź ë´ě´ ë¤ě íë˛ ë¤ëĽź ëě ë§íë¤. âě ěę˛ ě죟 ě¤ěí 돟깴ě ëíëęťě ę°ě§ęł ęłěëë¤. ëíë, ëë ¤ěŁźě¸ě.â 200ě 곹미í°ě ëŹíë ëíě¤ě ëśě기ë ěěę°ě ěźě´ëśěë¤. ěą ě ěěë ěëĽę° ě°ë미ě˛ëź ěěŹ ěęł , í° ě ě¸ ëĽź ě ęł ę°ěŁ˝ ěěě ěě ěë ěě¤ě ěëŚ ëźěšë íě ě ě§ęł ěěë¤. âě? 돟깴ě´ě?â ě´ ë§ě ë¤ě í경ě í¸ę¸°ěŹě´ ë°ëíëě§ ěě¤ě ë ę˝ ęť´ěěźëа 돟ěë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ě ëšě 돟깴ě ě¨ę¸°ë ęą°ěź?â âě, ëłęą° ěëěź.â ěě¤ě í경ě ěě íě ěĄěëšę˛źęł , íě°ě ë ěěě ë ěŹëě 몸ě ë ë°ě°Šěěź°ë¤. íě°ě ě ě ě ě§ë ęš¨ëŹźęł ě돴 ë§ë íě§ ěěě§ë§ íźëëŹźě´ ëë 기ëśě´ěë¤. ë¨ ëł´ë¤ ëŞťí ěě¤ě ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëźëł´ëа ë§íë¤. âëę°ë´.â ꡸ ë§ě ę°ë Źíęł ë ę°íšíë¤. ęˇ¸ë° ěě¤ě 모ěľě ꡸ë ěę˛ ě ëśěŚě ě˝ę˛ ëë ¤ě¤ ěę°ě´ ěě´ ëł´ěë¤. âě ě ëśěŚě´ěě.â íę˛˝ě´ ěë íě í ꡸ë ë ë¨ëě§ě ě ěźëĄ ë§í´ ě´ ěźě í´ę˛°íęł ęšëíę˛ ë ëęł ěśěě ëż ě ěë ěŹę¸°ě ë¨¸ëŹźęł ěśě§ ěěë¤. âě ě´ëݏ HT꡸룚ěě í´ě§íëë° ëíëęťě ě ě ě ëśěŚě ę°ě ¸ ę°ě ¨ëě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ę˛ ě´ě? ëíëě´ ě ěę˛ ë¤ëĽ¸ ę°ě ě´ëźë ę°ě§ęł ęłě ęą´ ěëě§ ěěŹě¤ë˝ěľëë¤. HT꡸룚ěë ěź ěíë ěŹëě´ ě°¨ęł ëěšěěě. ě ę°ě ëšěěę˛ ęˇ¸ë° ëšě´í ë°Šë˛ě ěŹěŠíě§ ěěźě ¨ěźëŠ´ ě˘ę˛ ěľëë¤.â ě 9í 모ëę° ë¤ ëł´ë ěěě ě ëíźě ë˛ë¤ ëíě¤ě ě´ěźěěĽęłź ę°ěë¤. ë íěě¤ě 쥰ěŹě¤ë˝ę˛ ëíë ěľíě°ě´ ę°ěě ě´ęł ě°¨ę°ě´ íë뼟 ëł´ě¸ ę˛ě ě´ë˛ě´ ě˛ěě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ě ë§ě ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě´ ę¸ě¸ ě´ëěěĄë¤. âě ë§ě´ěź, ěě¤ ě¨?â íę˛˝ě´ ë¤ę°ě¨ ěę°, ěě¤ě ꡸ë ę° ëěšěąě§ 몝íę˛ ëŻ¸ę°ě ě°í¸ë ¸ë¤. âě ë§ě´ę˛ ě´?â ꡸ë ěëí íě ěźëĄ ë§íë¤. âě ěŹě ë§ëëĄ HT꡸룚ě ěź ě íë ěŹëě ě°¨ęł ë쳤ě´. ě ë° ěźę° ëšěě ě ëśěŚě ěíě§ë, íěíě§ë ěě.â âí´ěŹí기 ě ě ě¸ěě¸ęłë ëë°ëĄ í´ěźě§. ě ěŹí ë ě§ę¸í ě ëíźě ě ęł ě¸ěě¸ęłë ěě´ ë ëë ęą´ HT꡸룚 ęˇěšě ě´ę¸ëëęš.â ꡸ě ěź íě°ě ěě ě ě ëśěŚě ě´ěŠí´ HT꡸룚ěźëĄ ëśëŹë¤ě¸ ěě¤ě ěë뼟 ěěě°¨ë ¸ë¤. ě´ęłłě ë¨ęą°ë ě돴ę˛ë ěě´ ë ëęą°ë. ěě¤ě ě´ë° ë°Šë˛ě ěŹěŠí´ ꡸ë 뼟 íëłľíëëĄ íë ¤ęł íěźëа íě°ě´ íëłľí ę˛ě´ëź íě íë¤. ꡸ ěę°, íě°ěę˛ ë¨ě ěë ë§ě§ë§ ě쥴ěŹęšě§ 모쥰댏 ě§ë°íë¤. âě, ęˇ¸ë° ęą°ěź? ęˇ¸ë° ęą°ëŠ´ ěľ ëšěę° ě몝íë¤.â âěę° ěľ ëšěë ěě¤ ě¨ ěŹě´ě ëę° ěë ě¤ ěěěě.â íę˛˝ě´ ěě¤ě íě ë íęł ëë ę˛ě 본 íě°ě 미ěšëŻě´ ë¨ëŚŹë ë§ěě ěľëëĽ´ęł ę˛ěě ě ëíź ěěźě ë˛ęł ě ě¸ ëĽź íëěŠ íěë¤. âë˛ěę˛ě.â ę°ę˛°íęł íě¤í ë¤ ę¸ě. âěě¤ ě¨ ë§ě´ ë§ě. ëëź ęą°ëŠ´ íě¤íę˛ ëë´ěźě§.â ꡸ë ě ę°ěě¤ëŹě´ íëě ëíě¤ě ě˝ěę°ě ęł ěí´ěĄë¤. í경ě 믿ě ě ěë¤ë íě ěźëĄ ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. ě´ëݏ ęł ę°ëĽź ěě¸ ěě¤ě ěě ěźëĄ ěźëŁŠě§ ěëí ëëšě´ ěźě´ëśěë¤. ꡸ë ěľęˇź íě°ě´ ě´ě ęłź íě°í ë¤ëĽ´ë¤ë ę˛ě ëśëŞ íę˛ ëęźë¤. ě´ ëëě ꡸ë ę° ěě ě 쥹ěěě ěě í ë˛ě´ë ę˛ě˛ëź ë§ëĄë ě¤ëŞ í기 ě´ë ¤ě´ ę°ě ě´ěë¤. ěě¤ě ěě í íľě ë Ľě ěěë¤. ěë늴 3ë ě´ëźë ę˛°íź ěíëě ꡸ë 뼟 ě ë§ëĄ ě´í´íě§ ëŞťí ęą´ ěëęš? ëíě¤ě ěëŹ¸ě´ ëš ëĽ´ę˛ íźě§ě ë§ě ě§ěë¤ě´ 돸 ěěě 기ěęą°ë ¸ë¤. ě돴ë íě ě¨ííęł ěšě íë íě°ěę˛ ęˇ¸ë° ęą°ěš ëŠ´ě´ ěě ęą°ëź ěę°íě§ ëŞťíë¤. ě ě¸ ëĽź ë˛ě íě°ě íě ëěë§ ě ęł ěěęł , ꡸ë ě ěëŚë¤ě´ ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ëëŹëŹë¤. ꡸ë ě ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ëëŹëě ë°ě ěë ëëŁë¤ě ě ě ë¤ëŹźě§ ëŞťíë¤. âě ë§ ë˛ě ě¤ě 몰ëě´ě, ęˇźë° ěľ ëšěë 몸매 ě§ě§ ěěë¤ěâŚâŚ.â âěë, ě°ëŚŹ ě ëíźě´ ě´ë ę˛ ííźě§íë° ëę° ěľ ëšěë ëŞ¸ë§¤ę° ě ë ę˛ ě˘ěě§ ěěę˛ ě´ě?â 꾏ëíě ëź ë댏ë ë§ëĄ ꡸ë¤ě ěë¤ę° ëŠěˇë¤. âě죟 íę°íě§? ěź ě í´? ě ëś ěę¸ěě ęšěź ě¤ ěě!â ëŞ¨ěŹ ěë ě§ěë¤ě ěëĄě ëěšëĽź ëł´ë¤ ěŚě ę°ěě ěëŚŹëĄ ëěę°ë¤. ꡸ě ěź ëíë ě´ě§ ě´ëڰ 창돸 íěźëĄ ěě ë¤ěŹë¤ëł´ěęł ě´í´ę° ě ëë ëśëśě´ ë§ěěěě 윊ëíë¤. âëíëě´ ě´ëݏ í´ěŹí ěźę° ëšě ë돸ě ěźě ě´ë ę˛ ě´ë ľę˛ ë§ëë ęą´ ě˛ě ë´, ëë체 ëŹ´ě¨ ěźě´ ěěë ęą°ěź?â ëíě¤ ěěě ëě íëë§ ě ęł ěë íě°ě ę°ěě¤ëŹě´ ě°Ź 곾기ě ěě°íë¤. ꡸ë ë ěśě뼟 겏ë í ę°ě í ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ěë¤. âëíë, ě´ě ě ě ëśěŚ ě˘ ěŁźě¤ëě?â íě°ě ęˇ¸ę° ë ë¤ëĽ¸ ě´ě 뼟 ë늰 ęą°ě í ęš ë´ ęąąě í늰 ë§íë¤. âë§ěíě ě¸ěě¸ęłë ě ę° ě댏뼟 ěĄě í 꾏 ě¤ěĽëęť ě´ëŠěźëĄ ëł´ë´ę˛ ěľëë¤. ëíë ë§ěě ë¤ě§ ěěźëŠ´ ě§ë ëŹ ěę¸ě ě 죟ě ë ëŠëë¤.â ě´ë ěě¤ęłźě ę´ęłëĽź ěě í ëę˛ ë¤ë ëťě´ěë¤. ěě¤ě ę˛ě ëëěë ěëí´ěĄęł , íęł í íě°ě 모ěľě ě ě ěë ę°ě ě´ ę°ě´ ęšě ęłłěěëśí° í몰ěěšęł ěěë¤. ě 10í ě¤ëš ě ë§ě¤ âěě¤ ě¨?â 믟í경ě í ęłľę°ě ę°ě´ ěë ě´ ë ěŹëě´ ě´ë¤ ę´ęłě¸ě§ 모뼸 ěą ęˇ¸ě ěľíě°ě´ ëě ęą°ěŹëŚŹę¸°ë§ íë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ěźëĽ¸ ěŁźęł ëł´ë´! ě¤ë ě°ëŚŹ ëśëިëě´ ë´ę° ëšě ë°ëŚŹęł ě¤ë ě¤ ěęł ę¸°ë¤ëŚŹęł ěě´, ě¤ëŤëě 몝 ë§ëŹěě, ě°ëŚŹ ëśëިëě´ ěě¤ ě¨ ëł´ęł ěśë.â ëśëëŹě´ ꡸ë ě 몊ě댏ě íěě¤ě ě ě ě ě°¨ë ¸ë¤. íě¨ ę°ëʏě ëŻźě¨ ę°ëʏě ę°ěą ě ëëźęł ěě´ ęˇ¸ë ëŻźě¨ ě íě 밊돸íě´ěź íë¤. íě§ë§ ě´ ë§ěë íě°ě ěźęľ´ě ěě¤ě ëí 모ë ę˛ë¤ě´ ë ě´ě ꡸ë ě ě돴 ěę´ě´ ěë ę˛ě˛ëź íě¨íë¤. ěě¤ě ëľëľíęł ëłľěĄíë¤. âě 기 ěě´.â íě°ě ęˇ¸ę° íąěźëĄ ę°ëŚŹí¨ ěŞ˝ě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. ꡸곳ě ě ëśěŚě´ ě ě기 ë°ě ě돴ë ę˛ë ëë¸ëŹě§ ěą ë§ěš ꡸ë ě˛ëź ë˛ëŚźë°ě ę˛ě˛ëź ëł´ěë¤. âë¤.â íě°ě ěě¸í ë§ěě ěľëëĽ´ęł ě ëśěŚě 죟ěë¤ě ë¤ ë¤ë ëěëł´ě§ ěęł ëěěě ëíě¤ě ë ëŹë¤. ꡸ ë¤ěë ë ěš´ëĄęł ě°¨ę°ě´ ěě ě´ ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ë°ëźë¤ëë ę˛ ę°ěë¤. ëíě¤ ëŹ¸ě ě´ęł ëę°ë ěę° ěŹëŹ´ě¤ ě§ěë¤ě ěě ě´ ěźě í ě ë ¸ë¤. ꡸ě íĽëݏëĄę˛ ëł´ë ěŹëë ěęł ëě íë ěŹëë ěěě§ë§ ꡸ë¤ě ěě ěë ę°ě깰댏ëźë ë°°ę˛˝ě´ ęšë ¤ ěěë¤. ëęľ°ë¤ë íěŹěě íě°ě´ ěě¤ě ꟏ě ě ꡸ěę˛ ěŤę˛¨ëŹë¤ë ě돸ë ëěë¤. ꡸ë ë ë˛ě ěźëĄ ěě¤ě ëśě¸ě´ěě§ë§, ë´ě°ë ëĄ ěšëśëë¤. íě°ě ëěě¸ě´ ëśě´ěĄë¤. ë돟ě 참기 ěí´ ě ě°ëа 1츾 ëĄëšě ëě°Šíě ë ë¤ěě ë¤ę°ě¤ë ë°ěęľ ěëŚŹę° ë¤ë ¸ë¤. âěľ ëšěë, ë°ě ëš ěě. ěśě°ě늴 ě ę˛ěˇ ë댴ę˛ě.â ě°ě°ě ę°ě ¸ë¤ě¤ ěŹëě ë¤ëŚěë 꾏ëíěë¤. â매ě í HT꡸룚ěë ë°ëťí ěŹëě´ ě긴 í꾏ë.â ę˛ěˇě ë˛ěźë ¤ë ëí뼟 본 íě°ě ꡸뼟 ë§ëŚŹëŠ° ěě¸í¨ě 몊ě ěźěź°ë¤. âěëěě, ęł ë§ěě 꾏 ě¤ěĽë. ě´ě ë§ë ěźë ěę˛ ë¤ě.â ꡸ë ě ěě¸í íě ě 본 ëíë ě ě ěě§ěě§ë§ íëě ëŹ´ě¨ ë§ě í´ěź í ě§ ëŞ°ëë¤. ęˇ¸ę° ë¨¸ë깰댏ë ěŹě´ íě°ě ëŻ¸ë ¨ěě´ ě댏뼟 ë ë ëš ěěźëĄ ë°ě´ë¤ěë¤. ě´ë´ ëë ííě°ë§ě´ ężěě ꚨě´ë ě ěë ě ěźí ë°Šë˛ě´ěë¤. ęłľíěźëĄ íĽíë íěě ěě ě°˝ë°ěźëĄ ěěě§ë ëšě¤ę¸°ëĽź ë°ëźëł´ë íě°ě ëŞ ë ëě ě´ěë ëěę° ëě ë¤ě´ě ě°¸ě§ ëŞťíęł ě í뼟 깸ěë¤. ě íę° ě°ę˛°ëěë§ě ě§ěš ꡸ë ë ě 먚ë íě ë¤í´ ë§íë¤. âě¤ëš âŚâŚ.â ꡸ë ë ěëěę˛ ëŞ ë§ë ë§ě í ë¤ ě í뼟 ëěë¤. 8ěę° í, ě ěŠę¸°ę° Bě ęłľíě ě°ŠëĽíë¤. íě°ě í¤ę° íŹęł ę˛ě ěˇě ě ě í ë¨ěě íě ě겟ë¤. ë¤ě ěë 경í¸ěě´ ęˇ¸ë ě ěşëŚŹě´ëĽź ëęł ë ěŹëě ě ěŠę¸°ě íě ë¤. âŚâŚ ëŚě ë°¤, ę˛ěě 벤í댏 í ëę° ě˛ě˛í íě¨ ęł íěźëĄ ë¤ě´ě°ë¤. ëˇě˘ěě ěě ěë ěě¤ě ęł ę°ëĽź ë¤ě´ 돴ěąí ę´ëŞŠ ěë ęł ě¸ľ ě íě ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. íě ë ëśě´ ěźě ¸ ěë 욨ě¤ë ě´ëĄę¸°ë§ íë¤. âě§ě§ ę°ęľŹë.â í경ě ěëí ěě¤ě 기ě´ě ëęźęł , ěěŹ ě댏ěě ꡸ë ě ěë˛ě§ę° í ë§ ë돸ě íë ę˛ ëśëŞ íë¤ęł ěę°íë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ë°Ľ 먚ě ë ě°ëŚŹ ě¸ëë ěě¤ ě¨ ěŹě´ě ěźě´ë ěźëĄ 기ëśě´ ěíë¤ë ęą° ěě. 결íźě ěëëĽ´ě§ ěěë ëź, ě°ëŚŹ ěëš ë ě 경 ě°ě§ ë§. ě°ëŚŹ ěëš ë ë´ę° íźě ěě ě´ëź ěŹě´íë ę˛ëżě´ěźâŚâŚ.â í경ě ë§ě ěě¤ě ěę°ě ë¤ëĄ 미ë¤ëęł , ꡸ë ę° ěĄě ěě ě ě매 ëě 보늰 ë§íë¤. â꾏겨ěĄë¤.â í경ě ꡸ě ë§ě 돴ěěě ěźëĄ ěě ëë¤. ꡸ í ěě¤ě 돸ě ě´ęł ě°¨ěě ë´ë ¸ęł , í경ě ě¸ě¸í ë ëë ꡸ě ëˇëިěľě ëŠíë ë°ëźë´¤ë¤. âě¤ë ëíě¤ěě ě기 ë¤ëŚŹ ěě ěíěźëŠ´ě ě´ëťę˛ í루ë ě ě§ëŹëë° ë´ ěŹëě´ ë ęą°ěź?â íě§ë§ ꡸ë ë ěę°ě ě ě 미ë¤ëęł ěě¤ě ë¤ëĽź ë°ëź ě°¨ěě ë´ë ¸ë¤. ě 11í ě°¸ę° ěę˛Šě´ ë°íëšíë¤ ęł íěě íě°¸ě 기ë¤ëڰ ę°ě ëśë ëěě¨ íěě¤ě ě¸íŹëĽź ë°ěë¤ěęł , ěě¤ě ë¤ě ěë 믟í경ě ëł´ęł ě ě ëŠí´ěĄë¤. âí경 ěę°ě¨, ë°Šě ě¤ëší´ ëěľëë¤. ě´ěŞ˝ ëłľë뼟 ë°ëź ěŹëźę°ě늴 ëŠëë¤.â ěě¤ě ë°ëź ęłë¨ěźëĄ íĽíë í경ě ëŠěś° ěě 믿ě ě ěë¤ë ëŻě´ ěłë¤ë´¤ë¤. âěě¤ ě¨, ě°ëŚŹ ę°ě´ ěë ęą° ěëěě?â ꡸ë ę° ęł íěźëĄ ë¤ě´ě¤ë 깸 ëěí ěě¤ě 결íźë ě돾ě ěźëĄ ëěí 겊ě´ěë¤. í¨ęť ěŹë ęą´ ëšě°í ěźě´ěë¤. ꡸ë ě ë§ě ěě¤ě 미ę°ě ě°í¸ë ¸ë¤. â꡸âŚâŚ.â í경ě ë ě´ě ě´ë í ë§ë ę°í íě§ ëŞťíë¤. ë¨ěěë íě°ě íě ě´ ěŹëźě§ęš ë´ ęˇ¸ë ę°ě ëśěę˛ ë¤ëĽ¸ ë°Šě ě¤ëší´ëźęł ě§ěíěë¤. âë ěě§ í ěźě´ ë¨ěěźëęš ë¨źě ěëŹ ę°.â ěě¤ě 돴ę´ěŹí ě´íŹëĄ í경ě ë°ëźëł´ëа ëëšě ëł´ëë¤. âíě§ë§âŚâŚ.â ěěëëĄ í경ě ěŹě í ëŹę°ě§ ěě ěśęśě í´ ěęł , ěě¤ě ě§ě뼟 ë°ě ë°°íěě´ ęˇ¸ë 뼟 ë§ěë¤. âí경 ěę°ě¨, ě ë°ëźě¤ě¸ě.â ęł íě ěëŚŹë˛ ě´í° ëŹ¸ě´ ëŤí늰 ě°¨ę°ę¸° ě§ě´ ěë ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě´ ę°ë ¤ěĄë¤. í경ě ë§ěěě ëśë§ě ěľëë ë¤. âęˇęľí íëĄ ěě¤ ě¨ě íëě´ ë돴 ëŹëźěĄě´.â ę°ęšęł ë 먟 ꡸ě ë§ěě ëě í ě ě ěěë¤. ěěŹëĄ ëěě¨ ěě¤ě ě¤ě뼟 íęł ëŞŠěę°ě´ě ě ě ë¤ ěě ë 돸ě뼟 íě´ë´¤ě§ë§ ě ě ě ë´ ë°ëĄ ę° ěěë¤. ěě ę°ěźëŠ´ íě°ě´ ěěŹě ë°ëťí ěí뼟 ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźęł ěš¨ě¤ëĄ ę° ęˇ¸ëĽź 기ë¤ë ¸ě ę˛ě´ë¤. ëëĄë ěěŹěě ë°¤ě ě§ěě°ę¸°ë íęł , ëëĄë 욨ě¤ëĄ ëěě ꡸ë ë ěíěě, ěě¤ě 욨ëěě ě기ë íě§ë§ ꡸ë ë í루ë ëš ě§ěě´ ěí뼟 ę°ě ¸ë¤ě¤Źë¤. íě§ë§ ě¤ëě ě돴댏 기ë¤ë ¤ë ěí뼟 ę°ě ¸ë¤ěŁźë ěŹëě´ ěěë¤. ě´ë° ꡸ë ě íě ě ěě¤ě ę´í ě§ěŚě´ ëŹë¤. ě´ë ě íę° ě¸ë ¸ë¤. í늴ě ëŹ â꾏 ě¤ěĽâě´ëźë ę¸ě뼟 ëł´ęł ěě¤ě ě ě§ ëŞ¨ëĽ´ę˛ ëëě´ ě˘ě§ ěě 미ę°ě ě°í¸ë ¸ë¤. [ëíë, ë°Šę¸ Dęľ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëí ë´ëšěěę˛ ě°ë˝ě´ ěëë° HTęˇ¸ëŁšě´ ę¸°ëśę¸ěĄ ě ë¤ë ě´ě ëĄ ě°¸ę° ě겊ě ë°íëšíë¤ęł íŠëë¤.] ěě¤ě ěźęľ´ě ę¸ě¸ ě´ëěěĄë¤. ěë ě´ ëŞ¨ë ę˛ě íě°ě´ ë´ëšíě§ë§ ꡸ë ę° ë ë ě´ě 모ë ęą´ ëíě ëŞŤě´ ëěë¤. â기ëśę¸ěĄ ě ë¤ęł ? ë°ëí ě°¸ę° ě겊ě ę° ęˇ¸ëŁšě´ ě ěěěŹě 기ëśí ę¸ěĄě 기ě¤ěźëĄ 결ě íë ęą° ěëěź? HT꡸룚ě ěë ě ě´ëݏ 600ěľ ěě 기ëśíě´, ęˇźë° ě ë¤ęł ?â ëíě 기ëśě´ ěŹěěš ěë¤ë ę˛ě ëë ëíë ëąě ěěëě´ íë ë¤. [ě ë ě´í´ę° ëě§ ěě ě´ ëŹ¸ě ě ëí´ ěěëł´ë ¤ęł ěľ ëšěëęť ě°ë˝ëë ¸ě§ë§, ěŹěŠí ě ěë ë˛í¸ëźęł âŚâŚ.] ââŚâŚ.â ëíë ë¤ě ë§ě ęłě ě´ě´ ëę° ě ěěë¤. ęł§ ěěŹë ě ě ě íŠě¸ěęł ěě¤ě ě¸ěě ě§ěźëа ě¤ë ëíě¤ěě ě ëíźě ë˛ë íě°ě 모ěľě ë ěŹë ¸ë¤. ꡸ë ě ě ěë ę°ě ě ę°ě´ě´ í몰ě쳤ë¤. ꡸ě 기ěľě´ ë§ë¤ëŠ´, íě°ě ě골ěě íě´ë ěëęś ëíě ě ííë¤. ꡸ë ë ë ¸ë Ľ ëě ěˇę°ę˛ëĽź ě´ěě§ë§ ěě¤ęłź 결íźí í ěźë§ ëě§ ěě 돸ě ëŤěë¤. ꡸ë ę˛ íě°ě íě¨ ě§ěěě ě 기ě ěźëĄ 죟ë ěŠëě ě ě¸íęł ë ěśę° ěě ě´ ěěë¤. âëë ěë ěŹěę° ě´ëëĄ ę°ěęš?â âě°ě ěęł¨ëĄ ę° ë´.â ꡸ë íě°ě´ ěë ¤ě¤ ęł íĽ ěŁźě뼟 ěě§ë 기ěľíęł ěěęł , ꡸ë 뼟 ě°žě ě ěë¤ęł íě íë¤. âęˇ¸ëŚŹęł Dęľ ęľě ëłě ë° íŹě¤í íŹ ë°ëí ë´ëšěěę˛ ě íí´. ě´ěą ěěë ě기뼟 í´ ë´ěź ę˛ ě´.â ě í뼟 ëě ěě¤ě í´ëí°ě ě§ě´ ëěĄęł , ꡸ě ěźęľ´ě ě ě ë ě´ëěěĄë¤. ě 12í Dęľě ë¤ěŻ ě¤ëš ë¤ ě ë˝í 깴돟ě í¸íëĄě´ ě¤ěí¸ëُ, ěľíě°ě ěľěí ëŻ ę¸°ě§ę°ëĽź í´ęł ěźě´ëŹë¤. ë°Š 꾏쥰ë ę°ęľŹë¤ě ꡸ë ę° ë ëŹě ëě ë¤ëŚěěë¤. íě°ě 머댏맥ěë ë°ëťí ě°¨ę° ëěŹ ěěęł , 욨ë ěěë ě¸ë ¨ë ěˇë¤ě´ ěŹëŹ ë˛ ëěŹ ěěë¤. ě˝ ëě´ ěí°ęą°ë ¸ë¤. Běěěë ężë ęž¸ě§ ëŞťí ëě°ěë¤. âí ěë˛ě§ë ëší기 ěśë˝ ěŹęł ěěě ë¤ěźěęł ë¤ę° ě í뼟 ě ë°ěě ěŹě ě§ę° ě¤ě ¨ě´, ěě§ë ëłěě ëěęłě .â ë¤ěě ë°ěëŚŹę° ę°ęšěě§ëë ę˛ě ěˇě ě ě í° í¤ě ë¨ěę° ěš´ëŚŹě¤ë§ě ěě°ëźëĽź í기늰 ꡸ë ě 욨ě¤ě ëíëŹë¤. ꡸ë BěëĄ íě°ě ë°ëŚŹëŹ ě¨ ě¤ëš ěľí믟ě´ěë¤. í믟ě íěŹ ěľě¨ ę°ëʏě 경ěě ě´ëęł ěęł íě ě¨íí¨ě ě ě§í늰 í ë˛ë í뼟 ë¸ ě ě´ ěë¤. í ěë˛ě§ę° í¸ě°Žěźěë¤ë ěěě íě°ě ë일 ę˛ě´ ë ě¸ë¨šěë¤. âě¤ëš , ë§ě´ ěě¤íě ęą°ěźâŚâŚ?â âěŹę°í ě ëë ěëěź, ë ë¤ ëŞ¸ě´ë ěąę˛¨.â í믟ě íě°ě ěě ěĄěëšę¸°ëа ëę°ë ¤ë ꡸ë 뼟 ë§ěë¤. âě§ę¸ ë¤ ęź´ě ë´, ě´ę˛ ěŹë ěźęľ´ě´ěź? ěě ě í ě˝ě ěěě´?â ě´ ë§ě ë¤ě íě°ě ë°ęą¸ěě ëŠěˇë¤. ëšě°í ěě§ ěěë¤. ꡸ë ë í ěë˛ě§ěę˛ íěě¤ě´ ěě ě ěŹëíě§ ěęł ëěę° ě´íźęšě§ íę˛ ëë¤ëŠ´ ěěí ěľě¨ ę°ëʏě ë¨ě ę°ě ě ëę˛ ë¤ęł ě˝ěíë¤. ěŹě§ě´ íě°ě ěľě¨ ę°ëʏě ěŹě ě íěĽí기 ěí´ 4ë ę°ëʏ ě¤ íëě¸ ëě¨ ę°ëŹ¸ęłź 결íźíę˛ ë¤ë ě ěě ěěí ë°ěë¤ě´ę¸°ëĄ íë¤. âě¤ëš ę° ę°ě기 ě´ë° ë§ě íë 깸 보늴, ë˛ě¨ ěŹëě ě°žě ëě ęą°ěź?â âëě¨ ę°ëʏě ěë¤ě ěě죟ë ë°ëëĽě´ëźęł íëë°âŚâŚ.â âęˇźë° ě¤ëš ë ě´íźíě§ë ěźë§ ě ëęł , ěě§ ěŹíźí ěę°ě´ ěě´âŚâŚ.â ꡸ë ë ęą°ě ëšë¤ěíź ë§íë¤. ěę° í믟ě íě ě íëë ě ëł´ë¤ í¨ěŹ ëśëëŹěě§ ëŞŠěëŚŹëĄ ë§íë¤. ëšě°í ę˛ěŁźë ¤ęł í ë§ě´ěë¤. âë ěľě¨ ě§ě ë¸ě´ěź. ě°ëŚŹ ę°ëʏě ěěě í늴ěęšě§ ě§ěě í¤ě°ě§ ěě íě§ë§, í ěë˛ě§ę° ěěšíě¤ ëęšě§ë ë´ ěěě ě¤ëĽ¸í ěí ě ëëí í´.â ě´ ë§ě ě미ë Dęľě ěë í믟ě DS꡸룚ě ë¤ě´ě¤ëźë ë§ě´ěë¤. íě°ě ę°ěĄąë¤ě ꡸ë ę° ěě´ë ę¸ëĄë˛ëšě§ëě¤íëśě ë¤ě´ę° ëëśí° ě´ ěźě ěźëě ëęł ěěë¤. íě§ë§ íě°ě´ ěě ě ężě ě´ëٍ揰 ěí´ ëěě´ë ë¸ëë ěě ě´ęł ěě¤ěę˛ ě˛Ťëě ë°í ě¤ě ëę° ěěě´ëźë íěęš? âě¤ëš ë í ěë˛ě§ę° ë§ě´ ěěí´íě¤ ęą°ěź.â âěę˛ ě´.â ꡸ë ë ěŹíźë§ ěëëźëŠ´ ëë ę´ě°Žë¤ęł ë§íë¤. í믟ě ěíš í¨ě¸ ëěźëĄ ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëźëł´ëа âěâíęł ëëľíë¤. âě°ëŚŹ íě°ě´ë§ 보늴 ę°ě´ě´ ěíë¤. íě§ë§, ě´ë˛ 결íźě´ íě°ě´ěę˛ ęľíě 줏ě ęą°ěź.â âëíë.â ꡸ë, ëęľ°ę°ę° ë°Š 돸ě ëëëŚŹęł ë¤ě´ěë¤. í믟ě ëšěěë¤. âíěě¤ ě¨ę° ě°¸ę° ě겊 ë°íě ëí´ ęśę¸í ě ě´ ěě´ ëíëęłź ë§ë 꾏체ě ěźëĄ ě´ěźę¸°ëĽź ëëęł ěśë¤ęł íŠëë¤.â íě°ě ꡸ ě댏ěě ěźě´ëśěë¤. âě¤ëš , ě¤ë§âŚâŚ.â í믟ě ꡸ë 뼟 ë°ëŚŹęł ě¨ í ě ěíęł ëŹ´ěëšíę˛ íě¨ ę°ëʏě 곾겊íë¤. ě´ë ěě¤ě´ íě°ë§ ëŻżęł ě´ë˛ ë°ëíě ę´ěŹě´ ěěë¤ë 깸 ěě기 ë돸ě´ë¤. íě°ë§ ëŻżęł ěë ěźě´ ě´ë ę˛ ë°ë ę˛ě´ëźęł ëę° ěěę˛ ëę°? âě´ęą´ ěľě¨ ę°ëʏ ë¸ě ꡸ ë꾏ë ęą´ë댴 ě ěë¤ë 돴ě¸ě ę˛˝ęł ěź. ě´ě ë¤ę° ë í´ěź í ě§ ěęł ěě§?â í믟ě íě°ě´ ěęł ěě ęą°ëź ěę°í늰 ꡸ë ě ě´ęš¨ëĽź ę°ëłę˛ ëë댰 ë¤ ëšěě í¨ęť ë ëŹë¤. ꡸ě ëěě ꡸ë ëšěěę˛ ě§ě뼟 ë´ë ¸ë¤. âëŠ°ěš ëě íě°ě´ëĽź ë°ëŚŹęł Dęľě 죟ě ě°ě ë¨ě§ëĽź ëęł ěě ëšěě 모ë ě 돴뼟 ěě§íëëĄ í´.â âěę˛ ěľëë¤, ëíë.â ꡸ë¤ě 몊ě댏ë ě ě ëŠě´ě ¸ ę°ęł , ëě 욨ě¤ě ë¤ě 쥰ěŠí´ěĄë¤. âěě ëšěâŚâŚ.â ě´ ě§ę¸ě ëí ë¤ěěźëĄ ëě ě§ę¸ě´ěë¤. íě°ě ěě ě ëłźě ě¸ę˛ ꟏ě§ěë¤. âě´ë˛ěë ě¤ëš 뼟 ě¤ë§ěí¤ëŠ´ ě ëź.â âěíëźě´ěŚ!â íě°ě´ DS꡸룚ě ěľęł 츾 ěŹëŹ´ě¤ëĄ ë¤ě´ě¨ ě§ ě´íě´ ëë ë , ęą´ë¤ęą´ë¤í í ë¨ěę° ë¤ě´ěë¤. | LEARN_MORE | https://www.mlyqjqpr.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | ěě¤ě ě¸ęł | https://www.facebook.com/61557428073507/ | 671 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | mlyqjqpr.com | IMAGE | https://www.mlyqjqpr.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=15149&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/466002718_1085606979958967_7121558704551842248_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=1nSkGBKCHO0Q7kNvgGLEhf8&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A7-JEhrKQNM2DZqEUWZb2gy&oh=00_AYA-o5hU58piOw20h_Gtqz05LQKrotFshz8xQzWv1iMxzA&oe=67480AF9 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | ěě¤ě ě¸ęł | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,513,016 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2513015}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đĽđĽClick to read the next chapter for freeđ | Chapter 1 Scented candles, champagne, and rose petals⌠check! Haley strolled across the bedroom. A crimson silk gown hugged her curves, flowing down her ankles, with a daring slit that revealed a glimpse of her slender leg. In the background, a soft melody played, lulling her to give in to the exhaustion from spending the whole day getting ready. For twenty-nine days, she'd been anticipating and preparing for tonight. Liam rarely came home. They'd been married for three years, but their relationship was nothing more than a distant coexistence. Her husband was always conveniently busy with work, hardly having time for her. The only proof of their relationship was the intimacy they shared once a month. Tonight marked their third anniversary. As one of the few nights Liam would get intimate with her, everything must be perfect. If only he'd come home now. The business trip should be over. His assistant told her Liam's plane landed an hour ago. Did an emergency come up at his company and he needed to take care of it? Bored, she picked up her phone, checking into her tiktok to kil-l time. Just then, a piece of news popped up, featuring NK Enterprise, her husband's company. Excited, Haley tapped into the news; "William Nash, Famous CEO of NK Enterprise, Checks Into Hotel With his Mystery Girlfriend, Relationship Revealed" William? Her Liam? Haley stood up, her eyes glued to her phone's screen, shock and disbelief taking over. Angry as well when she saw the image of her husband walking into the famous Eden Suites Hotel, his arm snaked around a woman's waist. And when the woman's face was revealed, so many thoughts flooded Haley's mind at once. Disbelief, fear, and uncertainty. Leah! The girl who looked a lot like Lisa, Liam's Ex. Leah was a mere receptionist at NK Enterprise until one day, Liam noticed the similarities she shared with his Ex. Not a week went by before he promoted her to the secretary position. Rumors were flying around at that time that William Nash had a soft spot for his secretary, Rumors Haley found hard to believe. Liam might be cold and unromantic with her, but he wasn't the kind of person she believed would have an affair, talk more with his secretary. But what was this news about? Liam must have gone to the hotel with his secretary for some business dealings, right? Still, what was with holding Leah's waist? Sinking in confusion was pointless. Haley dialed his number. He didn't answer the phone, heightening her anxiety. On her third trial, he finally picked up. âWhat's up?â His deep voice, heavy with tiredness, murmured through the phone. Haley inhaled deeply, controlling her emotions. âLiam, where are you? Today's our third anniversary, remember?â âSo?â From his careless tone, Haley couldn't help but imagine him rolling his eyes. âNot coming home. Sleep by yourself.â Knowing what she wanted, he still rejected her brutally, his voice holding no remorse, a gut-wrenching punch to her pride. Just then, a female voice, soft and seductive, came on the phone. âWilly, I'm thirsty.â Willy? Even Haley wasn't allowed to call him that. He truly was with a woman! At this hour, her husband was with a freaking woman! The phone beeped. He hung up the call. Dazed, Haley's gaze fell on the decorations; her hard work. She sank onto the bed, her thoughts spinning and that voice echoing. Leah. That was Leah's voice. What was happening? Did she misread Liam's lack of displaying affection for her as a part of his cold personality? Sleep departed Haley's eyes, and her throat was suddenly dry. She longed for anything to distract her from the confusing and heartbreaking thoughts, so she gulped down the champagne, wishing it'd wash her sadness away. Why did he love to hurt her feelings? During the times he never returned home, was he really with his secretary as the rumors had it? Haley stirred in the middle of the night, drowsy and starkly aware of the strong hands fondling with her gown. She found Liam hovering over her, trying to undress her. Haley blinked. Urgh! Why was she dreaming about this man who only knew to break her heart? Yet, as his fingers grazed her body, goosebumps spread across her skin, and she winced. âHey, waitâŚâ Haley stopped him, her voice hoarse from crying, still wanting to confirm if she was dreaming. Liam smirked. âYou called me back. Isn't it for this?â Haley blushed. He came back. Maybe she'd misunderstood again. âI've got you our anniversary present. Wanna see it?â She asked. âBoring.â He trailed kisses down her neck, pulling her nightgown down. âUhm, LiamâŚâ Irritation flashed in his eyes when she interrupted again. Haley gulped, summoning courage, grateful for the whole bottle of champagne she'd emptied in her stomach. âC- Can⌠Can you not wear it tonight?â Liam halted. His dark eyes bore a hole through her heart, his expression frosting over. The atmosphere became so stale and suffocating, and her breathing hitched when he pushed her away. âYou're always okay with me wearing protection.â His dark voice made her shudder. âWhy not now?â Haley cowered to the bed's headboard, flushed and embarrassed. She looked down. âIt's your Grandma. She laments every day about us not having a baby.â âGrandma, huh?â He scoffed, pinning her with a glare. âMore like you're desperate to have a child to keep the title of Mrs. Nash in this family!â His mouth spat venom. Haley held back her tears and clenched her fists, the bitterness in his words spreading from her heart and numbing her whole. Chapter 2 She loved him and wanted to have his baby. Was it a crime to ask? A marriage was supposed to be a union of mutual consent where the couple lived harmoniously. But she didn't even have a right to voice out her heart desires. His words fell over her like chilled water, dousing the wine's effect, and dampening her hope. Haley sobered up immediately, grief clutching her heart. âLiam, do you think I married you just for money?â Haley didn't see those words coming from him. Through her actions, her genuine love was obvious. While he spent most nights outside, she maintained a perfect home for him to return to. She neither complained nor demanded his affection, just giving and never taking. Why couldn't he see it? The suspicion in his eyes as he stared at her hurt more than daggers piercing her heart. If only she could read his thoughts- his mind. âWhat else do you expect me to think!â Liam spat out, unaware of the poisonous effect of his words on her heart. Or maybe he was aware. âHaley Nash, don't overstep your limits. I'll never have children with you. Don't forget how you plotted to marry me in the first place!â His words weren't only insulting, but also heartbreaking, reducing her to a desperate woman eager for his affection. Where did she go wrong? She gave him her heart, and he didn't have any trouble with crushing it at every opportunity he got. âYou're still not over Lisa, are you?â Haley shouldn't have asked the now obvious truth. Back then, Lisa had been the only obstacle to her happiness; the man she loved. While she'd desperately longed for him, he never spared her a glance. His eyes were only for Lisa. However, didn't Leah share a great resemblance with Lisa, his Ex? Instead of acknowledging Haley's feelings, he'd transferred all the love he had for his Ex to Leah. To him, Leah was a mirror, reflecting his first love, Lisa. Liam didn't answer her question, his dark eyes narrowing into slits, the emotions in his eyes unreadable. He left the room, slamming the door. Desperation fueling her grief, Haley scurried off the bed and went after him. Wiping her tears furiously, she hurried to catch up with him. âLetâs get a divorce,â Haley blurted out. Liam halted in his steps. His back facing her, his body went rigid. A moment of silence went by, filled with tension. Haley watched him with bated breath, her heartbeat picking up. âFine.â He moved. Without a glance in her direction, the man walked away. Fine. Just fine? Haley chuckled, her laughter mixed with tears. For three years, she'd overworked herself beyond measure only to please the man she loved. She was the perfect wife, the best daughter-in-law. Whenever he came back home sick, she stayed up all night nursing him. While she always hid her illness from him so as to not bother him. She might look pale and fragile, but he never cast her a glance talk more of asking how she was feeling. Despite that, Haley never complained. She only wanted to be perfect for him, to melt his cold heart someday. Yet, her divorce proposal was only received with a single word, almost insignificant. 'Fine.' It showed he never cared, and would never. If only she'd realized that earlier. On the first day she saw him in college, he stole her heart. That was the most bizarre thing that had ever happened to her. At that time, he was with Lisa. She dared not be the third wheel. Haley had been bold enough to confess her feelings when Lisa left and dumped him. She'd offered him comfort, striving to mend his heart. She worked hard to get his attention, getting into his family's good books, and sacrificing her own familyâs happiness. Her hard work paid off as Liam eventually noticed her. Thinking he'd forgotten Lisa, Haley married him happily. But the nightmare began on their wedding night. He set rules for her; Their intimacy would only happen once a month. She wasn't allowed to call him with any endearing name. She wasn't allowed to cook his food or touch his things. She wasn't allowed to ask more than he gave her. She was never allowed to make their relationship public. Thinking he only needed time to adjust to her, she'd had no objections. Tears blurred Haley's vision. She leaned by the wall, blinking at her phone's screen that suddenly lit up. A message notification appeared. Wondering who was messaging her this late, she clicked on the message. [I'm pre-gnant. It's time for me to become the new Mrs. Nash.] A message from his secretary. To put it accurately, his mistress, Leah. Haley gripped the phone, her body trembling. Accompanying the message was a screenshot of a pregnan-cy test result. It turned out, Liam didn't hate babies after all. He just didn't want to have one with her! How disappointing that she'd wasted her time thinking he only disliked having babies. What's the point in sticking with a man who wouldn't value her? Haley wiped her tears. She'd been having second thoughts whenever the decision came to her mind to just leave the man, because a part of her mind always held hope for a better future for them. But right now, the future seemed ridiculous, almost laughable. Even Leah whom he only hired three months ago was now pragnant with his child. The more Haley clung onto this man, the more he'd enjoy breaking her, reveling in her misery. That night, Haley retrieved the document she'd hidden in a dark corner of the closet. Staring at it, her heart throbbed tremendously, a part of her dying in that moment, A pain brought by watching her years of hard work crumbling right before her. She took in a deep breath, sniffing back the tears she now hated more than anything, Tears that reminded her of how weak and helpless she'd reduced herself to all in the name of begging for love. Never again. Chapter 3 The Next Morning. As Liam ate breakfast in the dining room, the atmosphere was stale and somehow still as if something was amiss. He glanced at the empty chair across from him now and then, his thoughts wiring back to last night. Where was that crazy woman? Was she still inside the bedroom shedding crocodile tears? Spending the whole night in the study room was enough to teach her a lesson. At least, she'd lost the chance of him touching her this month. She would never bring up that ridiculous topic again. Yet, halfway through eating, Liam's indifference turned into a small frown that formed on his face, his eyes darting upstairs. Did she think that starving herself would make him give in and grant her wish? How silly. Liam summoned the maid. âWhy isn't Mrs. Nash coming down? Go and get her.â But the maid lingered, her fearful gaze avoiding his eyes. With a hesitant look on her face, she extended a gift box to him. âActually⌠M-Mr, Nash. Mrs. Nash left the house an hour ago. She left this box for you.â Liam's frown deepened. What was that woman up to? He took the box impatiently, and his eyes caught the tag on it. â3rd Anniversary Giftâ âHow childish.â The corner of his li-ps twitched mockingly, a subtle smile forming. Liam tore the wraps around the box, wondering if this was the present she insisted on giving him last night. Once he revealed the content of the box, however, he narrowed his eyes at the white document with the word âDivorce Agreement!â boldly written at the top. Liam smashed his fist on the table and shot to his feet. He snat-ched the papers. Divorce! Was she serious last night? His nerves rippling with rage, he flipped through the papers, his eyes widening more seeing her signatures on each section. [Reason for Divorce: Disharmony in se-x!] His anger hit the ceiling when he saw that. The words sounded more like he didn't satisfy her enough in bed. How dare she mock him in such a demeaning manner? She was becoming bold, huh? Dramatic! Liam grabbed his phone, clutching it. His breathing ragged, he dialed her number. âWhere the hel are you!!!â âJust sign the divorce, William Nash.â Her calm voice was devoid of the desperation from last night. âThen you're fr-ee to have kids with any woman you want.â She hung up instantly, leaving him in a daze. For several minutes, Liam stood in the same spot, staring at the papers, not believing his eyes. Was she really serious? Then a thought came to his mind and he snickered. After trying all possible means, she resorted to this silly trick to get his attention. That crazy woman never ran out of ideas. Well, an hour was enough for her to return to her senses. She'd soon beg him and claim it was a joke. With that in mind, Liam got ready and left for his company. In the afternoon, he found himself thinking about her tantrum, unable to finish any work. So he took his phone and called the house's telephone, knowing she'd answer it. But instead of Haley, the maid answered the phone. âMr. Nash, is there something you need?â âWhere's Haley?â Liam gritted out. âUhm, Mr. Nash⌠Mrs. Nash hasn't come back,â the maid answered with a sigh. Liam cut the call brutally! Haley! What was she still doing outside? Did she go to his Grandmother to complain about him? When evening approached, Liam dialed the house's telephone again, ready to lash at her. Yet, it was the maid who answered the phone again. âMr. Nash, Mrs. Nash didn't return.â She sounded worried. âShe has never left the house for this long.â Liam cut the call. He tugged at his necktie and began pacing in his office, his emotion a mix of anger and disbelief. Haley was going too far. She'd better end this prank before he extended her punishment. While he was walking back and forth, his assistant, Joye, came in with some documents. âMr. Nash, these are from the HR-â âCheck the money on Haley's card. Is there any change from yesterday?â Liam interrupted him, his voice sounding desperate. Danmit! Was he desperate? He just wanted to find more reasons to punish that woman in case she spent his money recklessly. âRight away, Mr. Nash!â Joye returned later, the look of horror on his face making Liam wonder if someone died on his way back. âMr. Nash- Mr. Nash, you won't believe this!â Joye barged into the office. Liam was impatient. âWhat is it!? And where's the task I gave you?â Joye opened his mouth wide, looking as if he'd seen a ghost. âIt turns out Mrs. Nash has never touched a single penny on her card! Isn't that strange?â That was impossible. It was hard to believe. If Haley had never spent a single penny on his card, where did she get all the money she used to bu-y meaningless gifts for him? Those expensive wristwatches, the cufflinks made of gold, the expensive neckties and designer shoes⌠and also the expensive perfumes she'd stacked inside his closet, not to mention the limited edition sports car she got him as a birthday gift two months ago! Weren't they all bought with his money? Did she swindle them from his Grandmother? After all, she'd always pretended to be nice to his clueless Grandmother in or-der to get close to him. âErm, Mr. NashâŚâ Joye said, snapping him from his thoughts. His assistant scratched his head nervously, giving him a worried look. âYou look pale and you're sweating⌠is everything alright?â Liam threw him a glare. âIt's nothing.â âUhm, but, Mr. Nash, if you feel sick, I can call the Madam as always,â Joye suggested. âBy the way, isn't she an amazing woman? All women out there would lavish your money, but she-â âGo away.â Liam chased the noisy guy out. For the first time, he was a bit flustered. But as he sat on his chair, he whispered to himself, âWell, she's a nobody without me. She'll soon run back and apologize.â Chapter 4 At IvoryRains Apartment Building, located downtown. Haley settled in her new apartment, the small and cozy interior a stark contrast to the luxury and glam of Liam's Villa. Yet, in this mini apartment, she felt somehow at peace with herself. Her mind, once clouded with thoughts of Liam alone, was now clearing up. Every minute of her life had been filled with thinking about him, brainstorming different ways to make the man happy. Even though she loved Liam, it was worthless to live in a marriage with three people in it. Haley could stomach anything the man threw at her, but not a betrayal as big as having an affair and impregnating another woman. Lost in her thoughts, the sound of her phone's ringtone snapped her back to the present. Haley picked up the phone from the small table stand, staring at the contact display name. She'd developed this habit of shuddering in fear whenever her mother-in-law called, and now she found herself repeating the same thing. âHabits die hard, don't they?â Bracing up herself, Haley pressed the answer button, knowing too well not to put the phone any way close to her ears, lest she risked losing her eardrums. âWhat's keeping you from coming, you stup-id insignificant girl!â Vera Nash seemed to be in a very bad mood, as her voice blared like a trumpet through the phone. âWhy don't you come and help me clean today! Did you forget it's Monday!?â Haley pursed her li-ps. Indeed, she used to go to Liam's mother's place every Monday to do house chores for her every week, under the woman's stern command. Haley replied, âI won't go there today.â âEh? Not coming!?â Vera shouted, disbelief ebbing her tone. âDo you know who's speaking, Haley? How dare you talk to me like that when you're a barren woman? You should be happy I even let you stay with my son!â And so began her train of insults. Vera never missed any opportunity to tell Haley how useless she was without a child in the Nash family. Haley digested the insult, always keeping a perfect attitude in 0rder not to anger her mother-in-law. But right now, she felt abu.sed, the woman's insult angering her so much that her body was shaking. âVera Nash, soon there will be someone to help your son have a baby.â Haley cut the call, something she'd never done before. But it felt so satisfying to hang up on the spiteful woman. She couldn't live like this anymore. Years of hard work didn't get her recognized by Liam's parents. Even if Haley hanged herself someday in the name of her love for the man, she doubted if Liam and his parents would even bat an eye. Why should she live her life for others when she could be herself? With that in mind, Haley unpacked her belongings. She spent half of the day cleaning the apartment, decorating it to her liking, and hanging her clothes on the rack. As the evening approached, Haley left the apartment building, heading to DG Jewelry Corp., her favorite jewelry company. They had recently opened up vacancies for physical applicants. With her portfolio in handy, Haley spent more than an hour in the HR Department, undergoing the initial interviews and some physical tests. âAlthough we're open for applications, this company is top-notch among Its competitors. Don't think you can get in so easily, Young Lady,â Seemingly amazed by Haley's confidence, the manager warned. Haley only smiled, her rapt attention fixed on the pieces of gemstones scattered on the desk in front of her. Carefully, she picked each one with a holder, crafting an intricate design on the plain golden necklace. It was only a demo that lasted for thirty minutes, yet, the outcome had all the employees gathering around, their widened eyes gleaming with awe and astonishment. âOh my Gosh! I can't breathe.â âIt's perfect! How did she even do that in such a short time?â âShe must have years of experience to be able to pull it off so effortlessly without a single mistake.â âWho's she? Can we see her portfolio?â However, the manager in whose hands was her portfolio looked a bit pale, his hands shaking. His voice cracked as he spoke, his gaze darting from Haley to her portfolio. âSo it's youâŚâ Haley raised an inquisitive brow, smiling. âI beg your pardon.â âScratch that! You've been approved, Young Lady. Go ahead and meet the CEO while I forward him your documents!â The Manager's action surprised other employees. Haley wasn't a bit astonished but relieved that the man was quick-witted enough to grasp the situation and hid her secret. The first floor was the fine jewelry customization area and the fifth floor was the designer's office. She lingered by to admire the pieces of jewelry each encased inside a glass stand. Wowed by the glittering objects and inspired by many designs, she lost track of time admiring the jewelry. Some of the jewelry looked very familiar, and for the first time, Haley was happy, seeing the jewelry on display. For a few minutes, she forgot the chaos and the heartache caused by Liam's betrayal. Knowing it was near closing time, Haley proceeded to the fifth floor. She was about to take the elevator when she heard the most annoying voice. "Haley, what are you doing here? It's such bad luck." Chapter 5 Turning around, Haley came face to face with Leah. Her good mood plummeted instantly, replaced by irritation and disgust when Leah all but flashed her a sweet smile, rubbing her flat tummy. âDo I need to tell you where I'm going?â Haley replied. âYou're just a mistress.â Leah's eyes dimmed, and her smile faded into a deep scowl. âI might be a mistress now, but not anytime soon.â Her tone filled with arrogance, she eyed Haley from head to toe. âAs you can see, I'm here to pick out mine and Will's wedding rings.â âOw?â Haley put on a surprised look, feigning happiness. âFinally, someone to pack off my garbage. Congrats, and please talk to Liam and let him sign the divorce papers soon. Or you will still be the mistress.â Her tone light and full of mockery, Haley was surprised at her own calmness as she stood in front of the woman who literally seduced her husband. Forget it. Liam was no better. Leah's expression switched from white to green, her fingernails digging into her palms. She breathed heavily. âI know you're jealous because you can never give Willy even a single child. Doesn't he hate you?â Leah went on caressing that spot in her ab-domen, giving Haley a taunting look. âForget it, I wonât waste my time with you, after all, I'm pragnant now, it's not good for the baby to be angry.â Disgusted, Haley felt like vomiting. Just how morally twisted Leah was to flaunt an affair in public? They'd only met a few times in the past. Haley once visited Liam's office to deliver his launch to pave the way for their closeness. While the man chased her out, Leah was there and had a triumphant smile on her face. Haley disregarded it. To not irritate Liam further, she avoided getting into a fight with any of his employees. But one day, Liam brought her home for dinner with the excuse that they were just back from a business gala. It had been evident in Leah's eyes that she wanted to covet her husband but Haley didn't mind because she trusted Liam. Very funny! The two deserved each other. Deeming standing there a waste of her time, she turned to walk into the elevator when Leah screamed at her. âStop right there!â Leah trotted forward on her high heels, blocking Haley's path. âDid you bu-y jewelry here using Will's card, poor bit-ch? You're such a greedy woman, you're getting divorced and you still spend his money.â Haley pushed her out of the way. âTsk, a cheating man deserves a dumb woman. Who said I came here to bu-y jewelry? I came here for an interview, duh!â Waving her portfolio at her, Haley snickered. She didn't waste time to watch the dumbfounded look on Leah's face, and she walked into the elevator which took her to the fifth floor. There⌠A stream of other applicants was waiting for the final round of interviews. Haley found an empty spot and sat on one of the waiting chairs. She glanced at her wristwatch nervously, tapping her feet on the floor. With this many applicants waiting in line, it would take a miracle for her to get the final interview. âGosh! I'm so nervous!â A female sitting beside her shuddered. âI heard the chairman of the design department is so strict!â Another female whispered. âHe's not only the chairman, but also the CEO of the DG Group,â said the guy sitting by her right. âAwwwn, Andrew Woods. I heard he is handsome and charismatic. Lavishes money on his women mercilessly!â Said the girl sitting close to Haley. âI've pulled many stunts to get to this final interview! I have to get this job!â She added with resolve which made Haley chuckle a bit. âYou're quite ambitious, Amby. Rumor has it that he's married. Can you afford that?â âSo what? As long as he's willing-â Haley shook her head. It turned out not all applicants were here for the job. Her gesture caught the girl's attention. She eyed Haley, a look of displeasure evident in her eyes. âYou're not also here to covet Andrew Woods, are you?â âBelieve me, I'll pass.â Haley chuckled. âIs she crazy?â âI bet Andrew Woods will glance at her twice because she's pretty. Isn't he only into pretty women?â âI think she's just arrogant. Let's see if she even gets the job.â The females whispered among themselves, making Haley the center of attention. The guy sitting by her right sighed. âIt's hard to believe that you're not interested in the god of money, Andrew Woods.â He lowered his voice. âYou just earned my respect, Young Lady.â âYou never know what's inside someone's mind,â said the girl called Amby. âDon't believe her so easily, she might have a trick up her sleeves just like we all do.â âAnother thought. She's giving up early because she knows she'll never stand a chance!â The second female rolled her eyes. âYeah. From the looks of it, she comes from a poor background.â Laughed the third female. Their words fell on deaf ears because, at that moment, the secretary came out and called Haley's name. âMr. Woods requests to see a lady called Haley. Is she here?â Haley raised her hand and stood up. âPlease follow me, Young Lady.â The secretary smiled warmly, leading the way. As Haley followed her into the office, the whispers behind her increased, their voices filled with disbelief and suspicion. Haley stepped into the office. Sitting across the wide mahogany desk was the strong man. The air around the office seemed to thicken, his intimidating presence capable of snatching anyone's breath away. Not Haley's breath, though. Her heartbeat was intact. The man didn't didn't look up, his eyes fixed on the computer screen in front of him, concealing his face. Haley could only imagine, her heart sinking in gloom as she fiddled with her fingers, a slight guilt tugging at her heart. âPlease introduce yourself,â he murmured deeply, his tone lacking patience. Sighing, Haley cleared her throat, her voice crisp and nervous. âI'm Haley, here to interview for the designer position.â Instantly, the man lifted his head as if compelled by a rapid force, and Haley saw his face. Chapter 6 The man's expression was masked by surprise for a few seconds, then he laughed. âWhat took you so long to visit my company?â Haley loosened up. Her li-ps pulled into a happy smile and she ran over and hugged him. âI'm finally here, Brother. How's life treating you?â âFantastic!â He stood up and lifted her in the air, his laughter resounding in the office walls. âIt was boring all day long before you appeared. What a huge surprise!â Seeing the happiness in her brother's eyes as he welcomed her warmly, Haley's guilt expanded. She pursed her li-ps and sighed as he put her down. âWhy the gloomy look? Lemme guess, you miss your husband already just after arriving here.â Her brother pinched her cheek, taunting her. Then his brows pulled together in a displeased frown. âYou've lost a lot of flesh. What's with the skinny look? Are you on a diet?â Haley shook her head. It was true that she'd lost a tremendous amount of weight in the past few years. Ever since she married Liam, Haley couldn't help but notice that. The years of house chores had greatly worn her out. âBig BroâŚâ she tugged at his jacket sleeve, acting spoiled. âThe truth is⌠I'm divorcing Liam-â âWhat!?â Her brother didn't let her finish speaking. Looking flabbergasted, Andrew Woods sank into his chair. âYou're pulling my legs. That is the most ridiculous joke ever! Don't you love that guy like your whole life depends on it?â It hurt to be reminded of how silly she'd been. âYou even went against us, your family, to marry him, remember?â He reminded her. âSo stop cooking up lies. As your Big Bro, I won't punish you for running off to marry him in secret.â Blinking her eyes, Haley fought to hold back her tears. She sat beside him on the chair's armrest and narrated everything to him. âSo you see, it's not worth living in a loveless marriageâŚâ Haley was afraid she would run mad someday because of that heartless man. She was even happy she survived the torture of those three years. After hearing her story, her brother sighed. âThree years ago, you left us to marry William. I thought you could live happily with him. I didn't think he'd dare bully you.â Haley had been so blinded by love that she refused to listen to any word her family said. She ended up getting disowned by her own parents. âHow about forgetting that as-shole and coming home with me today? Mom and Dad miss you,â her brother suggested. Haley would jump at the opportunity, but⌠"I'll definitely go back, but not now. As soon as Liam signs the divorce papers, I'll move back home.â She couldn't meet her parents at the moment. What was she gonna tell them? How was she gonna apologize? Would they be able to forgive her? Her Brother was kind and understanding enough, but sometimes Haley couldn't understand her parents who had a bad temper. Crossing them was one of her biggest mistakes. "In the meantime, how about taking me in as a designer in this company?" Haley asked. "I'm using my first name anyway, people won't know you're my brother." Andrew's eyes shone with happiness. âYou want to work here? As long as you are willing, the whole company can be given to you." âHaha! That's too much to ask, Bro.â Haley laughed. âLook at you being picky.â He ruffled up her hair. âIf it's the DG Group you want, I'll hand it all over. You're my only Sis anyway.â But Haley denied. âI just want to work as a designer.â Disappointed, Andrew nodded. "I donât understand. Why don't you let me announce you to a higher position in the company?" That would be too much. Knowing her brother well, he'd insist on giving her the best. So Haley changed the topic. "Actually, I've been working with this company for a long time." Her brother looked pale immediately. âWait, what do you mean?â âDo you like last month's newest necklace "Treasure"?â Haley asked. Her brother was speechless. âSo you are âCrystalâ? The most mysterious jewelry designer?â Haley smiled and nodded. Andrew looked thoughtful. "I wondered why Crystal is willing to work with our company, it's you!!!â Haley flushed in embarrassment. "I just want to start as a new designer in this company, so I don't need to let anyone else know who I am.â âWhy though?â The frown returned to Andrew's face. âYou're an exceptional designer! Everyone's dying to meet âCrystalâ and I can't wait to boast about you!â The more he spoke, the more embarrassed Haley felt. âCome on, Bro⌠let's keep this our little secret.â She added, âI'm confident that I can prove myself, and I don't want to attract Liam's attention.â Under the alias âCrystalâ Haley had designed countless jewelry and sold them out at huge prices. She wanted to feel confident about her love for Liam, so she worked hard to afford the gifts a powerful man like him would appreciate. But instead of appreciating those gifts, Liam left them to rot. The only sensible thing he'd ever done was hand over the sports car she'd bought as his birthday gift to charity. âYou've suffered all these yearsâŚâ Andrew patted her hair gently. âI'll help you get revenge and teach that heartless man a lesson.â Haley shook her head and whispered, "No need, it's not worth wasting energy on unimportant people.â âHave you really let go?â Andrew asked worriedly. Haley nodded. âThe future is bright. I'll never look back.â âYou've matured a lot.â Her brother stared at her proudly. âSince you've said so, I'll let him off. Just promise me you'll always be happy.â Haley hugged him again. âI promise.â Three years of hardship was enough for her to mature. She would never be stu-pid again. Haley's phone rang, disrupting the silence. Seeing Liam's name blinking on the screen, her eyes dimmed. âHave you made enough of a scene? Now come back home!â The first words he said when she answered the phone. Haley almost laughed out loud, but his words weren't funny. For three years, she'd gotten used to his authoritative voice always 0rdering her around, but now it sounded foreign in her ears. âWilliam Nash, I told you to just sign the divorce papers. Leave me alone,â she replied, her low voice calm. Haley had been so used to him yelling at her but not anymore. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12277&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 840 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | redtgb.com | DCO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12277&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/449452517_462535613167429_5933236077574096394_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=lNznzUy9UmcQ7kNvgFgtSe_&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Ahlm0DIrIqs4rpvahhKiqCh&oh=00_AYCdxQA_j_hNxxraIXgVAVXYaNRAWnk1QNe1OODtZqb-EA&oe=67480B95 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,513,036 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2512978}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đRead the next chaptersđ | This wasnât the first time I received photos of Owen cheating on me. The blonde hair and slender build of the woman kissing him reminded me of my best friend Josie. But it couldn't be her⌠Right? With trembling fingers, I dropped my phone. How could he do this to me? I thought he cared. I thought I was the most important person in his life. I was like a sister to him, and now I am his wife! After losing my parents, I was adopted by Owenâs family. I saved Owen's life when we were young. His family was so grateful that they decided to take me in. I grew up with Owen. We used to be inseparable. At first, he was like a brother to me. But as we grew older, things changed⌠He went from an awkward, geeky boy to a tall, handsome young man. I changed with the years, too. Puberty transformed me from a skinny little girl into a fit, voluptuous young woman. My dark brown hair grew long and wavy, spreading on my shoulders like seaweed. My bright green eyes with soft sight were framed by long black lashes. My fair skin and slim figure let me win the admiration of many Suitors. Owen always said he loved my eyes. He said my eyes were as charming as a clear lake. Since we were teens, we felt a strange, forbidden attraction to one another. But neither of us ever dared to admit it. Until that one fateful night, when we shared our first kiss. We got married when we were 22 years old. I couldnât believe that was almost 3 years ago now. I always thought we knew each other best. I thought nothing could ever come between us. But Owen had been acting very strange recently. These photos seemed to explain why⌠I had to confront him. âOwen?â I called out. âOwen, where are you?â He didnât answer. He must be upstairs. I walked up the stairs and heard him talking to his friend Simon on the phone. As I was about to knock on the door, I overheard: âNo, I donât think I love her anymore.â His words gave me icy chills. âYou should be happy, Simon. I know you like Noah. If we get a divorce, you can have her.â Owen continued. âHe said...what?â I couldnât believe my ears and cried in my heart, âHow dare he talk about me like that? I wasn't just some object he could give away! â Hearing Owenâs frivolous talk with his friend, I felt sick. I grew up with him and got married for so many years. But he recently acted like a stranger. Did he have a new love? Why he treated me in such a cruel way?! I was almost to open the door to question him, but suddenly I hesitated, âQuestion him and then what? Owen may not love me love before. Do I want divorce? No, I donât think so. Anyway, I have to calm down. At least I need to have a talk with him first. I need to know what happened to our marriage.â So, I quietly made my way back downstairs. I tried to forget about what I heard by preparing dinner. As I was dishing up our pasta, the delightful scent of italian herbs drifted through the house. I heard Owen come downstairs. âJust in time for your dinner, hun!â I said, trying to sound normal. But he was wearing his coat and gelled hair. He looked handsome as ever and ready to leave. I could smell his aftershave - my favorite smell in the world. âWhere are you going? Itâs getting late and dinner is ready.â I said. âDinner with a client. Donât wait for me.â Owen replied and left without hesitation. I sat alone at the table, looking at the food Iâd carefully prepared for him. Tears were streaming down my cheeks. I listlessly turned the spaghetti round and round with my fork. I wasnât hungry. After storing away the leftovers, I stared at the TV for a while. Nothing could get my mind off of Owen and whoever that blonde tramp was. I made my way to the bathroom. I washed my mascara stained face and looked at myself in the mirror. Why did he stop loving me? Am I not beautiful enough? Did I not do enough to make him happy? I gave my body a scrutinizing glance, suddenly seeing all the parts of me that werenât perfect. My belly wasnât as flat as it used to be. Maybe I shouldâve had my lips done, like my friend Josie. Mine always used to be fuller than hers. But now she had the plump, luscious lips of a model. After washing up, I went to bed. Dropping my face into my pillow, I felt miserable. I tried to fall asleep, but my mind kept wandering. Where was Owen? And with who? Will he even come home tonight? At 1 am, I finally heard the key turn in the front door. From all the stumbling I could hear Owen was very drunk. I swiftly made my way downstairs to help him to the bedroom. He started kissing me and said a blurry name. I tried to identify what it was. After he repeated it for many times, I was shocked. It sounded like... âJoiseâ! âJosieâŚ? Were you with Josie?â I asked with panic in my voice. I helped his heavy body into bed. He grunted some words I couldnât understand. I couldnât believe my husband cheated on me with my best friend. I cried and pleaded with him to see that it was me, not Josie. He pushed me away. As his head hit the pillow, he started snoring right away. Looking at my husband - completely drunk - I didnât recognize the man I knew and loved. I tried to sleep next to him. But it felt like I was lying next to a stranger. I went downstairs and sat on the sofa all night, wide eyed, thinking about what happened between us. The next morning, Owen came downstairs after a shower. I wanted to ask him how he was feeling. He must be hungover. When I got up from the couch, I felt very weak and feverish. The sleepless night must've made me sick. âOwen, are you OK?â I asked as I struggled to walk over to him. I really wanted to hug him. If only for a sense of comfort. He swept my arms away and told me to leave him alone. I was so weak and dizzy, his push made me fall. Owen was stunned for a moment. Then he said coldly, âIf youâre sick, go see a doctor.â I scrambled up to my feet, and looked at him with a shocked expression. Suddenly, his phone rang. As he lifted it to his ear, the screen lit up. I could clearly see who was calling: âJosieâ. Chapter 2 - Hope Noah My heart sank when Owen picked up the phone. The screen clearly said âJosieâ. He answered: âHello? Yes, of course, sir. I can take a look at those documents for you.â I couldn't believe Owen was lying to my face. He glanced at me, then quickly walked over to the kitchen. When he thought I couldn't hear him, his voice softened. He sounded so sweet. Although I couldnât hear his words, the way he spoke to Josie reminded me of the beginning of our romance. Owen was still trying to hide his betrayal from me. He must have forgotten that he gave away his secret last night, when he called me Josie. Those pictures on my phone left no doubt. He was cheating on me, with my best friend. I leaned up against the wall. I felt weakened by my fever and this emotional rollercoaster. I stared at my husband as he came back inside the living room. He avoided my eyes. It felt as if he had become a stranger. In the past, he wouldâve never let me suffer like this. âIâll pick you up later.â Owen said, ready to go. I grabbed his hand and begged him to stay with me. âPlease, donât leave. I'm sick, Owen. I need to see a doctor. Iâm too weak to be all by myself.â He was very impatient. He said he had some important business to deal with. I couldnât help crying as I watched him leave. My husband and my best friend were betraying me, behind my back. I walked up the stairs slowly, carefully holding on to the railing. I was so weak and fragile. Bed rest was my best option right now. I really needed my husband to take care of me. When we got married, he vowed to me: âIn sickness and in health, in good times and badâ. This was definitely a bad time, and he was nowhere to be seen. When I woke up from my nap, I felt even worse. In my feverish haze, I reached for my phone and tried to call Owen. I opened my recent contacts and found that Owen had not had any calls with me these days at all. I had to open the contact list to look for him, few minutes later I dialed out with a headache and dizziness. Almost immediately I heard: âHello, Noah?â The voice on the phone sounded very deep. I figured Owen got a cold after his late night out. âIâm so sick, Iâm so weak. I need to get to the hospital. Please, come back, pleaseâŚâ I pleaded, my voice weak and trembling. âIâll be right there.â Said the voice on the phone and hung up right away. His voice sounded different from before. And his tone was a little urgent. Whatâs wrong? I didnât have enough energy to think about it. At least he might still care about me. That comforted me a lot. Before long, there was a heavy knock on the door. Did Owen leave his key? I opened the door, expecting to look into Owen's gray eyes, but found Raymond's kind, hazel brown eyes instead. What was he doing here? Raymond was Owenâs uncle. He was only several years older, but very mature. He was tall, tanned and handsome. His chocolate brown hair matched his eyes. With his strong, square jaw and muscular body. I always thought Owen was one of the most attractive men I knew. It wasn't until Raymondâs appearance that I realized how dominant the handsome genes in this family in terms of good looking. After living in Australia for most of his life, he had come back 10 years ago to take over his familyâs business. By now, he was the most successful CEO in the city. Although all women admired him, he remained single. âDoes Owen know youâre sick?â Raymond said, looking concerned. âHow did you know I'm sick? Do I look that terrible?â I asked, suddenly aware that I was only wearing my little nightgown, had no make-up on and had my hair up in a messy bun. Raymond smiled. âDon't worry, Noah. I got your call earlier.â Oops, I must have pressed the number of âOwenâs Bossâ instead of âOwenâ. I apologized for the inconvenience. âYou are a member of our family, Noah. Itâs my duty to take care of you. And you are never an inconvenience to me.â Raymond said as he took me by the arm to support me. He led me to his streamlined, dark gray Mercedes to drive me to the hospital. I sat down on the cream colored leather seat. His car smelled brand new. The seat was heated, which helped warm me up, but I was still shivering. Raymond took off his suede blazer and handed it to me. His simple act of kindness made me feel warm, inside and out. âThank you, Raymond. This means a lot to me.â I said with a relieved sigh. âOf course, Noah. Whenever you need me, Iâll be there.â He responded. He still had a slight Australian accent. He asked me what happened. I wouldnât have shared my familyâs private problems with another man who I didnât even know him very well. But at that time, I was on the very edge of a breakdown. I really needed someone to talk to. Yet when I lost two of my closest persons on the same day, my husband and my best friend, who else could I talk to? âI donât think Owen loves me as much as before. It seems that he has some secrets with another woman, who used to my best girlfriend. I couldn't sleep all night. I think that's what caused my fever.â I concluded. I was in tears again by the time I finished the story. âHow could they do this to you? You are the best thing that's ever happened to Owen. If he can't see that, he is an even bigger idiot than I thought!â Raymond shouted out. His shocked, angry expression showed me how much he cared. âPlease, don't say a word about this to Owen. I haven't confronted him yet. I need to do this myself.â I responded. We sat quietly for a while, his hand resting very close to my thigh. I felt so weak and miserable. But his presence helped. When we seeing the private doctor. I tried to get out of the car but almost fell. Raymond flung an arm around me, just in time to catch me. I blushed as I looked up to him. My face was very close to his. His piercing eyes looked at me with an intensity I hadnât seen before. I smelled something fresh. It might be his aftershave. I remembered Owen also used it, and I always told he that I love what he smelled. But I found Raymondâs aftershave smelled a little special. âRaymond? Noah? What are you doing?!â I suddenly heard Owenâs angry voice. Chapter 3 - Truth Noah Raymond quickly let go of me as Owen approached us. Just before taking a step back. I stumbled over to my husband. I wanted to lean on him for support, but he didnât seem to care about me at all. All I could read on his face was anger. I tried to be strong and stand by myself, shivering with fever. âSo, youâve got a new love, huh? I saw you flirting with my uncle!â Owen spat his angry words at me. I turned pale. How could he say this to me? Especially after what he had done? I wasnât the one who couldnât be trusted! âOwen! How dare you talk to her like that! Itâs not our familyâs manner!â Raymond berated him. He was fuming with rage at the injustice. He also knew about Owen's betrayal. Owen was a little timid when Raymond got angry. Although Raymond was only 31 years old, he had become a successful CEO. He had idolized Raymond when he was a child. And now, Raymond was also his boss. Owen had recently started working at his company. Raymondâs fists were clenched and his tense muscles were visible through his buttoned up shirt. He looked like he was about to hit Owen. I didnât want them to fight over me, so I tried to calm them both down. âRaymond, itâs okay. Owen will take me in to see a doctor. Thank you for driving me here.â I said gratefully. âPlease, donât say anything about Josieâ, I tried to tell him mentally through the look in my eyes. He nodded slightly, as if he understood. He relaxed and his eyes softened when he looked at me. I turned back to my angry husband. I couldnât detect any sign of trust in his eyes. I supposed he should he should be concerned about my health rather than the relationship between me and Raymond. âOwen, I can explain. I tried to call you, but I was so sick I accidentally dialed Raymondâs number. He brought me to see the doctor. You should be grateful to him. Without him I would still be miserable in bed, all alone.â Owen grabbed me and said, âWell, I was just on my way to come and get you. Then I saw you get out of uncle Raymond's car and âfallâ right into his arms.â He looked at Raymond with an arrogant smirk. âYou can go back to your important job now, uncle. Iâll look after my wife.â Raymondâs eyes were cold, but he respected my wishes. He didn't object. After warning Owen that heâd better take good care of me, he got back in his car and drove off. Although I was glad I could lean on Owen, something didn't feel right. I realized I was still wearing his suede jacket. It was so soft and warm, protecting me from the cold autumn wind. When the doctor dealt with my fever, Owen didnât want to speak to me, let alone look at me. He was engaging himself in typing on his phone. The doctor told me I shouldn't have waited much longer. My fever was so high I could have fainted. After getting examined and taking medicine for my fever, Owen drove me home. We sat next to each other in our car that held many memories. All our road trips and getaways together. Those times were over now. After an uncomfortable silence, I decided to address the elephant in the room. âOwen⌠What is going on? Do you still love me? Do you still regard me as your wife?â I asked. âSo what? Whose wife do you want to be?â Owen hissed. I couldn't believe how horrible he was to me after what he had done. âI know you cheated on me, Owen.â I uttered with pain in my voice. âYouâve been seeing Josie, right?â Owen stopped the car with a jerk and pulled over. We sat in silence for a while as he processed my words. âWhat do you know, Noah?â he pressed, looking me in the eyes at last. I finally confronted him about all the things that had been weighing heavily on my heart. I explained: âSomeone sent me photos of the two of you together. The first time, they didn't show your face. So I didnât want to believe it. But in the ones I received yesterday, it was clearly you. All those nights, when you told me you had to leave town for business... You lied to me. You spent them at a hotel with another woman! Then, last night, you kissed me and called me Josie. And this morning, I saw it was her calling you. You pretended it was a client. âOwen, we have grown up together since we were kids. I always thought we know each other the most and could trust each other. I canât believe you would cheat me like that!â I cried, âOwen, did you fall in love with another woman... Is she my best friend Josie?!â His eyes showed a moment of doubt. Then, resolution. His mouth tightened as he clenched his jaw. Just when I thought he wouldnât answer, Owen said: âItâs true. I love her. I love Josie.â Chapter 4 - Hurt Noah I just couldn't accept it. I loved him so much. How could he cheat on me? âWhy, Owen? I thought we loved each other. I thought we would be together forever. Did I do something wrong?â I cried. Owen didn't respond. He drove us home in silence. His cruelty was too much for me to bear. I stared at the raindrops on the window. I felt more depressed than ever. That afternoon, Owen left again. I tried having some food and a nap, hoping that would help me heal. But I just couldn't fall asleep until Owen came back home in the early evening. I had to talk to him. I got out of bed and met him at the top of the stairs. âOwen, we need to talk about what happened. You can't keep going out and avoiding me.â He was obviously drunk again. All he said was, âI donât have anything to say to you. I am moving out, Noah. I supposed our years of marriage is a mistake!â I took his hands in mine and begged him to stay and try to work it out. But he shook off my hands and pushed me away. I was standing right on the edge of the staircase. His push made me lose balance, and I tumbled down the stairs. I managed to grab onto the railing so I didnât fall all the way down. But my head hit the wall when I tried to break my fall. I felt my forehead was bleeding. It was so painful that I couldnât get up. I thought Owen would help me, but only heard: âYou lost your footing. Itâs not my fault.â There was a sudden knock on the door. Owen stumbled past me down the stairs. âRaymond? What are you doing here? Now is not a good time.â âI came to ask you what is going on. You need to give me an explanation. You havenât ⌠Noah?â Raymond suddenly saw me sitting on the stairs behind Owen. He pushed Owen aside and ran over to me in alarm. Seeing my messy hair and injured forehead, he instantly knew what happened between us. He punched Owen in the face. âThis is how you treat your wife?! I donât believe you. Donât you see Noah is bleeding? Did you hurt her? What a disgusting thing you smelled! You drunk idiot!â Raymond raged at his nephew. I didnât even have time to explain. Raymond immediately wrapped me up in his suit jacket and took me to see the doctor. âTwice in one day? That must be a record.â The doctor said wearily. I gave her a wry grin and answered, âNot by choiceâŚâ The doctor took care of my wounds. I needed a couple of stitches and had some pretty bad bruises, but I would be okay. Thankfully, I didn't break any bones. It was getting dark outside. The autumn breeze was busy blowing the leaves off the maple trees surrounding the hospital parking lot. Raymond and I made our way back to the car. Our feet rustled through the thick carpet of yellow, brown and scarlet red leaves. After my second - and hopefully last - doctor's visit of the day, we sat next to each other in silence. We were back in his beautiful Mercedes. I could get used to these comfortable, heated seats. I felt a bit embarrassed. Raymond kept on having to save me. At least this time, I was wearing clothes and make-up, and my brown hair was neatly tied in a long, wavy ponytail. âI donât normally need so much help, you know.â I broke the ice. âI happen to be a strong, independent woman most of the time.â Raymond laughed heartily. âJokes aside, I'm really grateful for everything you've done for me.â I continued. âWhy did you come over tonight, Raymond?â âOwen hadnât come to work at the company for days. And I wanted to speak to him about what happened this morning, with you. I tried to call him, but he never answered. I decided to come over. To see for myself what was wrong with him.â Raymond explained. âI just canât believe what he did to you!â He continued. âIf he ever does anything like that again, please tell me. Iâll teach him a lesson.â His stern face showed how much he meant it. I took a deep breath. He had a way of making me feel safe and secure. âThank you, Raymond. Iâm okay now. It was an accident. Owen didnât push me off the stairs on purpose. He didnât mean to hurt me.â I explained. Raymond looked a little angry, but he still carefully drove me home. âGoodbye, Raymond. Thank you again, for everything.â I said with feeling as he hugged me. âBye, Noah. Itâs been my pleasure. Please be safe. Call me if you need anything.â He said. He gently patted me on my head as comfort as if I was a little girl and got back in his car. His simple actions made me feel warm. I thanked him and walked home. I entered the house. It was quiet and dark downstairs. I walked up to our room. When I opened our bedroom door, all I could see was Owen and Josie kissing on the bed. Chapter 5 - The Necklace Noah I couldnât believe my eyes! While the hours I was leaving, my husband was screwing with my best friend in my room! Didnât he remember I got hurt because of him?! How ridiculous! Even though I had seen Owen and Josieâs betrayal before in photos, witnessing it in real life was way worse. It felt like a million knives stabbed me in the chest. My heart shattered. âHow dare you cheat on me in our home! In our own bed, for Godâs sake!â I cried out. They hadnât heard me open the bedroom door over the romantic music that was playing. They turned around with shocked looks on their faces. If I wasnât so devastated, it mightâve been funny. Owen's mouth had lipstick smears all over it, and Josieâs blonde hair was disheveled. They were both in their underwear. Clothes were spread out all over our bedroom floor. I tried to hold back my tears. I didn't want to show them my pain. My crying might come across as weakness. I demanded an explanation. âI donât believe this. Owen! Did you forget I am your wife?! Josie, why you betray me too?! I treat you as my best friend. How dare you take my husband away from me!â I insisted. Josie hid away in Owenâs arms. Owen comforted her gently, then snapped at me: âYouâve already seen us together anyway, haven't you, Noah?â âI am done with you.â He continued. âOur whole relationship was based on a lie. Josie shouldâve been with me all along!â I didnât understand. âWhat are you talking about, Owen?â He held up a delicate golden necklace with a tear shaped ruby that had been resting on Josieâs collarbone. âRemember this, Noah? The truth has finally come out. It was Josie who saved my life all those years ago, not you. You pretended that it was you in front of my parents. Youâve made her suffer long enough!â I was shocked. Why did Josie have my necklace? I couldn't believe her betrayal. I tried to explain to Owen that I lost that necklace before I was adopted by his family. I told him I would never lie to him. Especially about something so important. But Owen didnât believe me. âJosie,â I cried. âHow could you do this to me? Why would you steal my necklace? You know how much it means to me! Weâve been best friends since the orphanage, havenât we? Does that mean nothing to you?â âNoah, you know this necklace has always belonged to me. I was the one who saved Owen. But you stole my life to be adopted,âJosie played innocent with me, âI should have been the one who grew up with Owen! I see you as my sister, so I never attempted to reveal your lie until Owen found this necklace in my old jewelry box several months ago.â This convinced Owen even more that I had been bullying her. He wrapped his arms around her. Over his shoulder, when he couldnât see, Josie gave me a quick, mean smirk. I knew Josie had a mean side. She always had, even when we were kids. But so far, she had only taken it out on her boyfriends and whoever got on her bad side, not on me. I never thought she might treated me in such a mean way! I had searched everywhere but couldn't find my that necklace. It turned out that she was the thief who was always around me. How could she tell such outrageous lies as if it were naturalďź I left the bedroom, rushed downstairs and broke down on the couch. Oh, what a nightmare! How could I make Owen see the truth? A little later, Owen and Josie came downstairs, all dressed up again. Josie was wearing her Prada pumps and the sleek, mint green dress I gifted her for her birthday. It accentuated her long legs and slender silhouette. I had to admit, she looked beautiful. I used to dress in a simple way such as simple jeans, white blouse and sneakers. Maybe I looked less attractive compared to Josie. Owen had an arm around Josieâs waist and warned me, âYouâd better stay out of our life from now on. Iâll move to another villa with Josie.â I couldn't believe it. After 3 years of marriage, he trusted her story over mine. And now he wanted nothing to do with me. We used to be happily married. Our whole lives, ever since I saved him, we had been so close. We used to laugh together, cry together, play pranks on each other⌠But now, everything changed, simply because of a necklace. In fact, ânecklaceâ is just an excuse for his betrayal. I didnât believe our years of affection couldnât prove my heart. âNoah, my life were ruined by you. You owe me that.â Josie said. âOne day youâll both regret this. I didnât do anything wrong.â I sobbed. As they walked out, I faintly heard Owen reply: âItâs my fault. I should have found you earlier, or you wouldnât have suffered so much.â I could only guess at his last insult as the door closed behind them. I zoned out in front of the TV and poured myself some of Owenâs whisky. The past couple of days had been the worst of my life ever since I lost my parents. My body and mind had been through so much. I felt numb. I must have fallen asleep on the couch. The sudden loud jingle of my phone ringing woke me up. The bright midmorning sun was shining in through the large windows. Looks like I slept in late. Disoriented, I picked up my phone and saw it was Owen calling. I accepted the call and brought the phone to my ear. Before I could say a word, I heard Owenâs angry shouting: âHow dare you do this to Josie! Those guys you hired? They put her in the hospital! I canât believe your jealousy would drive you this far!â Chapter 6 - Choice Noah âWhat?! What guys? I just woke up, Owen. I have no idea what youâre talking about.â I replied to the angry voice on the phone. âMore lies! I canât believe you, Noah. You're despicable!â Owen shouted. He was so loud, I had to move the phone away from my ear. âOwen, please calm down. All I remember is you leaving with Josie last night. I fell asleep on the couch. What happened?â âJosie is in the hospital because of you. I demand that you come here right now and apologize to her!â He ended the call before I could reply. What was this about? Would my life ever go back to normal? I decided to find out what was going on. My fever was over. Although my head still hurt, the wound was healing rapidly. I took a refreshing shower and got into a pencil skirt and light blue blouse. I combed my hair and decided to wear it in natural loose waves today. After a quick breakfast, I slipped into my high heels and coat, and made my way to my car. It was a crisp sunny day. I arrived at the hospital. At least it wasn't me who needed to see the doctor this time. âOh, itâs our âold friendâ.â The nurse said jokingly. I smiled as she directed me to Josieâs room. As soon as I knocked on the door, Owen opened it with an enraged look on his face. âFinally! That took you long enough.â He whispered angrily. âJosie is sleeping.â He came out and gently closed the door behind him. We walked towards the chairs in the hallway. âI have no idea what happened, Owen.â I said honestly. âCan you please tell me what is going on? Some guys attacked her?â âAre you still pretending you weren't behind this? You are unbelievable.â He shook his head, then continued. âJosie was attacked by some hooligans this morning, on her way to work. She shouted out and fainted from fear. Thankfully, a police officer was nearby. He heard her scream. She has a heavy concussion from the fall. She'll have to stay here a few days to recover.â âWhat? That's horrible!â I replied in shock. Although I was angry with Josie, I wouldn't wish this on anyone. âStop your act now, Noah. Those guys were arrested. They told the police someone paid them to kidnap Josie, because she broke up a marriage.â No wonder he doubted me. But I couldnât believe the trust between us was so fragile. âWould you believe me if I swore to you it wasn't me?â I asked with a last glimmer of hope. His reply made it clear to me that there was no hope left for us: âNever again will I believe a single word you say, Noah.â I refused to apologize. I didn't have anything to do with this. If there is anyone needed to stand out and make an apology, it was them for what they had done to meďź On my way out, I contacted a friend who had lots of connections all over the city. I asked her to investigate the situation. I also called the office on my way home, to let them know I was still recovering from my fever and head wound. My boss was understanding. She told me to take as long as I needed. In the evening, Owen came home just as I was about to have dinner. âI didnât prepared your dinner. I guess you would have dinner with Josie?â I said plainly. I didnât know why he came back at this time, but I didnât care about it anymore. He ignored my words and said, âYou still donât want to apologize, right? You have two choices, Noah. Apologize and make amends with Josie, or divorce me and get out of this house!â âJosie is the one who betrayed us both. She lied to you, Owen. She stole my necklace. She is the one who should apologize!â I argued. Owen burst out in rage and slapped me in the face. I stared at him in disbelief. I was totally disappointed. Over the past few days he had hit me, pushed me, cheated on me. He had hurt me in every way. I made up my mind. âI choose divorce.â I said coldly. âOkay, good. My lawyer will contact you in the next morning. Oh, and Iâve prepared another âsurpriseâ for you.â Owen said ruthlessly with a wicked smile. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12088&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61560831098071/ | 21 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | redtgb.com | DCO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12088&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/448779987_1262869391355075_4601790756563973166_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=e-OLS2TeXkgQ7kNvgGRNmC6&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Ahlm0DIrIqs4rpvahhKiqCh&oh=00_AYAG8DtVA8w1KLNhVHhZP9EIc6aOppTPfNLnM0X0XJYabA&oe=67481CBB | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,513,054 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2511462}' |
No | 2024-11-23 15:12 | active | 1910 | 0 |
|
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | Chapter 1 "Get the defibrillator! Increase the voltage!" "Doctor! The patient is experiencing massive bleeding, and the A-type blood from the blood bank was just urgently taken away." The intern nurse's hands were covered in blood, and she trembled. The operating room reeked of blood. She had never seen so much blood before. At that moment, a thought flashed through her mind. 'Who would suddenly take away A-type blood from the blood bank?' The woman lying on the bed was pale. Her lips were dry, and her eyes started to lose focus. "Juan..." "What?" "Juan Nichols..." The intern nurse made out the name murmured by Debra Frazier. Juan Nichols was the most influential businessman in Seamar City. The doctor was on the verge of collapse. He dialed the wrong number three times before finally getting it right. He quickly pleaded with the person on the other end of the phone, "Mr. Nichols, your wife is experiencing massive bleeding, but the blood from the blood bank has been taken away. Please, come and see her for the last time." But Juan's voice was filled with indifference. "She's still alive? Call me when she's dead." With that, he hung up the phone. All the light disappeared from Debra's eyes. 'Juan, do you hate me so much? Even at this point, you wouldn't come to see me.' The machine emitted a flat, cold beep, indicating the patient's vital signs had disappeared. Debra felt her soul leaving her body. Her withered, frail body collapsed weakly on the bed. Debra felt exhausted. At just twenty-seven, she passed away because of postpartum hemorrhage in the hospital. In her lifetime, she loved Juan dearly. As the only daughter of the Frazier family, she should have enjoyed the best life. But to marry Juan, she sacrificed herself and her family. In the end, she met a tragic fate. Debra slowly closed her eyes. Given another chance, she would never make the same mistakes. ... "Madam, Mr. Nichols wants to take you to the auction. Which outfit would you like to wear?" Sophie asked. Debra gasped and opened her eyes. Everything in front of her was strikingly familiar. This place was Juan and her home. They had been married for a month, but Juan had rarely visited her. She remembered that Juan was attending a land auction, and due to the occasion, he had to bring his family along. But this was all five years ago. 'How could it be? ' she thought, deeply confused, 'Am I reborn?' "Mr. Nichols has never stayed overnight before. You should seize this opportunity." Sophieâs voice brought Debra back to reality. She picked out a white gown, hesitating. "How about this one, Madam?" Looking at it, Debra gave a self-deprecating smile. It was well known that Juan favored Shelia. In the past, she often dressed like Shelia to please Juan. Shelia liked white dresses, so she followed suit, just to earn a little favor from Juan. For this auction, Juan didn't inform her of the change in companion and brought Shelia instead, making her look ridiculous in a white dress similar to Shelia's. The thought of the past made her laugh. "No, I'll wear that one," she said, picking up a red dress. Debra never liked plain clothes. Shelia was just a poor college student. Debra felt that she must have lost her mind to wear cheap clothes for a man. It only lowered her status and self-esteem. "But Mr. Nichols likes white dresses," Sophie said hesitantly. Debra simply ignored her hints. "I'll wear this one," she said. "Throw away all those white dresses. I don't like them." Sophie sighed and complied. Debra looked at herself in the mirror, still vibrant and beautiful. But in a few years, she would be worn down by Juan's torment. Before that happened, she would end it all. In the evening, Debra appeared in a burgundy dress that accentuated her curves. Her delicate makeup, curls, and a mole under her eye made her mesmerizing. She looked like a painting, untouchable. Not far away, a man in a white shirt and black leather combat boots saw her. Marion Houston asked, "Who is she?" "You don't know her? She's Debra, the daughter of the Frazier family and Juan's wife," said his friend, Randy Osborne. "I just saw Juan entering with another woman. Maybe we'll witness a showdown between the mistress and the wife. It will be fun." Marion made no comments. Randy clicked his tongue. "Juan's taste is just terrible, preferring a skinny woman to his beautiful woman. Don't you think?" Randy turned around, but Marion was nowhere to be seen. He cursed, quickly catching up with Marion. Shelia, in a white dress, held Juan's arm timidly. "I've never been to such an event before. Maybe I should go back." "You'll get used to it. You'll be attending these events frequently in the future," Juan said. Shelia nodded. Juan was about to enter with Shelia when Joe spoke up. "Sir, won't we wait for Mrs. Nichols?" Juan frowned. "Didn't I ask you to tell her not to come today?" Joe glanced at Shelia, and she quickly said, "It's not Joe's fault. I told him not to inform Debra. With my status, I'm afraid of gossip, so I thought it would be better for Debra to accompany you in." Shelia lowered her head like a scared hare. Juan rubbed his temples. He didn't want Debra to show up at all. "Mr. Nichols," Shelia murmured. "It's alright." Juan patted Shelia's head and said to Joe, "Go intercept her and send her away." In the crowd, there were murmurs of surprise. Joe looked over and was also shocked. "I'm afraid it's too late." Chapter2 Juan also looked over. A red figure stood out in the crowd. Debra, clad in a burgundy dress, seemed to captivate hearts with every gesture. Cameras flashed at her like she was a reigning superstar walking the red carpet. 'Debra?' Juan took a moment to recognize her. In the past, Debra preferred light makeup and plain dresses. This was the first time Juan had seen her like this. Seeing Debra for the first time, Shelia was filled with jealousy. Compared to the alluring Debra, she seemed too plain. "Debra looks stunning." Shelia's tone carried a subtle envy. Debra spotted them and walked over. Shelia thought Debra, unaware of her relationship with Juan, would be surprised or awkward, but Debra was poised and smiling. "Mrs. Nichols is here. Who's the lady beside Mr. Nichols?" whispered a reporter. Debra approached, linking her arm with Juan's, and extended a hand towards Shelia. "You must be Shelia mentioned by Juan. Nice to meet you! I'm Debra. You can call me Mrs. Nichols." Shelia withdrew her hand from Juan's and shook hands with Debra. "Nice to meet you, Mrs. Nichols," Shelia said awkwardly. "Juan told me that he sponsored you. You're going to study abroad, right?" Debra said. Shelia glanced at Juan. "Shelia excels in her studies. She's planning to go abroad this year, but she's a bit timid, so I brought her here today to broaden her horizons," Juan said. He had brought Shelia here to see the world of the upper class. Juan hadn't completely fallen for Shelia yet. It was only after Shelia returned from abroad that Juan fell in love with her. Even so, Juan attended all kinds of events with Shelia, to the point where everyone in Seamar City knew that Juan liked a college girl. But none of this mattered to Debra anymore. She came to the auction not to compete with Shelia but for a more important purpose. "Well then, take good care of Miss Miles. I'm going in," Debra said, letting go of Juan's arm. Juan was stunned. He hadn't expected these words to come from Debra's mouth. By the time he realized it, Debra had already get into the venue. Juan frowned. 'When did the unruly Debra become so agreeable?' Debra sat in an inconspicuous corner. The auction venue was filled with influential figures. If she remembered correctly, an abandoned piece of land that nobody wanted was bought by an obscure merchant at this auction. Later, because of the upscale developments around it, the land became valuable. The successful investment elevated the merchant's status, making him a commercial magnate. Since she had decided to leave Juan, Debra wanted to build up her own assets. After sitting down, Juan searched for Debra's figure. Beside him, Shelia asked, "Mr. Nichols, do you really want me to bid on your behalf?" Juan's attention returned, and he said, "Yes, I trust your judgment." Shelia blushed. She had studied finance for so long at school, just for this day. On the second floor, Debra watched them chat happily. Shelia indeed had some talent, which was one of the reasons why Juan would be attracted to her. In her last life, Shelia had once identified a prime piece of land, which impressed Juan. But that piece of land was valuable, to begin with. The Nichols Group's properties were around it, and Shelia inflated the price with Juan's money. In the end, the value of the land and the surrounding properties all increased, so Juan couldn't lose. Even without Shelia, Juan would have secured that piece of land. As the auction started, Shelia began to bid. She successfully won the first three prime pieces of land. Juan sat beside Shelia like a guardian. "The price of Crescent Manor starts at one billion." "Two billion." Debra's bidding caused a collective gasp. Juan frowned. What's gotten into this woman? Shelia whispered, "This piece of land isn't worth much. Debra's going to lose money." Juan texted Debra. [What are you doing?] Debra read the message and ignored it. "Two billion once!" "Two billion twice!" ... "Is Debra crazy? Two billion for this piece of junk?" On the second floor, Randy was flabbergasted. "Three billion," Marion bid. Randy nearly flipped the table. "Marion! Are you insane too?" Across from them, Debra frowned. She wanted to know who was crazy enough to compete with her for this wasteland, only to see Marion. She vaguely remembered Marion was doing gray business. 'When did he start real estate development?' "Four billion!" Debra raised the stakes. Downstairs, Juan furrowed his brow and texted her again. [Debra, shut up!] Debra simply turned off her phone. "Five billion," Marion said. His provocation annoyed Debra. 'Alright, you want to play? Let's play.' "Ten billion!" she bid. "What! She's gone mad!" Randy exclaimed. Juan stood up, losing his composure. He couldn't quite grasp Debra's intentions. To him, this piece of land wasn't even worth one billion. Yet Debra was offering ten billion. Marion smiled at Debra and made a gesture of concession. "Ten billion!" The auctioneer exclaimed, "Any further bids? Ten billion, going once, going twice. Sold!" As the gavel fell, a weight lifted off Debra's heart. The land was finally hers, but she had unnecessarily spent an extra eight billion. It was all because of Marion. She glared at him. Randy nudged Marion, "Hey, Debra's glaring at you. If I were her, I'd probably be plotting your demise." Marion shrugged indifferently. Downstairs, Shelia tugged at Juan. "Mr. Nichols, Debra is going to make you bankrupt." "She set her own price. No one will help her pay the bills," Juan said. Chapter 3 Due to this episode, Juan's attention was solely on Debra. Shelia's performance was completely ignored. When the auction ended, Debra was about to leave when she bumped into Juan and Shelia. "Debra, if you don't understand real estate, don't mess around," Juan said bluntly. Shelia chimed in, "Yeah, Debra. Your actions have cost Mr. Nichols ten billion." Debra chuckled, "Miss Miles, you misunderstand. This piece of land is mine to get. What does it have to do with Juan?" Shelia blurted out, "But that's ten billion." "It's just pocket change for me, not to mention for her." From not far away, Randy's voice came. "Isn't that right, Ms. Frazier?" Debra caught sight of Marion and said, "It's just a plaything for purchase." Shelia blushed with embarrassment. Ten billion meant nothing to Juan and Debra. In front of these people, Shelia felt inferior. "Heard Mr. Nichols got married. Is the lady beside him Mrs. Nichols?" Marion chimed in. Shelia blushed, stammering, "N-no." "This is my wife, Debra," Juan said, pulling Debra close. Debra tried to shake off Juan's hand, but he held on tight. Since earlier, he had felt Marion's gaze on Debra. Men understood men best. He could see through Marion's thoughts. "So, Ms. Frazier is Mrs. Nichols. It's my bad. I saw Mr. Nichols chatting with this lady in the venue earlier, thinking she was Mrs. Nichols." Randy slapped his head. "Then this lady must be Mr. Nichols's secretary. No wonder she was holding up signs for Mr. Nichols earlier." Debra almost burst out laughing. Though she didn't care about Shelia and Juan anymore, hearing Randy's words still made her pleased. Shelia was totally embarrassed. "Joe, take Shelia home," Juan requested. "Yes, sir," Joe agreed. Randy grinned, "We'll get out of your hair. Bye!" After Randy and Marion left, Debra shook off Juan's hand. "Had enough?" Juan didn't expect Debra to pull away. Before, Debra couldn't wait to touch him. She seemed different tonight. "If you're trying to get my attention, you don't need to do this," Juan said. Debra was speechless. She wanted to argue, but she couldn't find the right words. Considering how much she cared about Juan in the past, she might have done so. But she wasn't that person anymore. "Whatever!" Debra shrugged. "Wait." Juan stopped her. "What now?" "What's your relationship with Marion?" "I don't even know him." Juan spoke coldly. "No matter what your relationship is with him, you are Mrs. Nichols in public. You better watch your identity and keep your distance from other men." Debra scoffed, "Before you demand anything from others, how about demanding it from yourself? Did you consider your status and my reputation when you brought Shelia here today?" "I had Joe inform you today." "Oh? Is it to tell me not to come?" Juan remained silent. He knew he was in the wrong. "Even Marion, an outsider, mistook Shelia for Mrs. Nichols. If you like her, let's get a divorce," Debra said. "Did you get up on the wrong side of the bed?" Juan frowned. Although he didn't love Debra, it didn't mean he wanted a divorce. Their marriage was based on interests. It was not something one person could dissolve. From Juan's serious expression, Debra could tell that he wasn't thinking of divorce now, but it was only because of her family. In a few years, when she became worthless, he would discard her like trash. Thinking of the miserable end of her last life, she'd rather end it now than wait for that moment. "I said, let's divorce." The next day, news of Debra's extravagant purchase of wasteland swept through major platforms. Debra was the sole heiress to the Frazier family, and ten billion was just a figure for her. However, with her family's businesses operating, she had limited liquid assets. It was not easy for her to raise the money. Debra lay on the bed, rubbing her brows. 'Should I find Juan? No.' He left without a word yesterday when she proposed a divorce. She couldn't understand. She was even willing to relinquish the Frazier family's wealth to him, yet he still didn't want a divorce. But besides Juan, who else could she turn to? Suddenly, Debra sat up. She had an idea. "Marion!" People in high society were in one circle. Debra managed to contact Marion through her connections. Debra remembered that Marion's influence was overseas, but in recent years, he had stationed himself in Seamar City. Others might not know why, but she did. In the coming years, Marion would rapidly take over local enterprises, competing head-to-head with Juan. In the conference room, Marion played with his lighter. Debra got straight to the point. "I want to borrow eight billion from you." Randy spat out his tea. He'd seen straightforward, but never this blunt. "Ms. Frazier, that's a large amount of money." Debra blinked. "Last time you said ten billion was nothing." "I just rolled the logs for you, and you're giving me a hard time." Randy shook his head. Beautiful women were always a bit sick in their heads. Marion flicked his lighter. "Why should I lend you any money?" "I could've secured Crescent Manor with two billion, but because of your meddling, I have to pay an extra." "Not a convincing reason." Debra fell silent for a moment before saying, "Your industries are all overseas, but for the past two years, you've been frequenting Seamar City. I guess you want to launder your overseas money here. Am I right?" Randy paused his tea-drinking motion, subconsciously glancing at Marion. He didn't expect Debra to understand these things. Chapter 4 The room fell silent for a moment. Marion smirked and said, "Mrs. Nichols, you can't wrongly accuse good people." "Yeah, we're all legitimate businessmen," Randy chimed in. "In the realm of legitimate business, it's not up to me to judge. But I think Juan might be interested," Debra said. "I'm just a clueless rich girl, while Juan isn't. If I tell him what happened, I wonder if he'll take notice." "You're sneaky!" Randy couldn't contain his frustration. Debra looked at Marion seriously. "Lend me eight billion, and I'll pay you back with interest in three years." Randy's eyes widened. "Are you kidding? Do you know how much interest that'll be? If you can't pay it back, we'll lose eight billion. You're Juan's wife. Who can hold you accountable?" "I know the interest. I'll sign a contract with you. If I can't repay, I'll give you my family's properties and stocks, and I'll work for you for the rest of my life." Randy paused and continued, "And besides, my marriage with Juan might not last three years. Even if I'm still his wife then, he won't protect me." Marion looked up and stared at Debra for a while. Randy's ears perked up as he smelled gossip. But he quickly composed himself. "No, I disagree!" But Marion agreed, "Okay, I'll lend it to you." "What?" Randy jumped up from his chair. "Have you gone mad?" "I'll have the finance department transfer the money to you. We'll draft the contract later," Marion said. "Marion!" Randy stomped his foot. "Thank you, Mr. Houston." Debra stood up, saying, "I'll await your message. Happy cooperation." She smiled and left the office. Randy ground his teeth. "That's eight billion! Are you out of your mind? She's Juan's wife! Why would you lend her money?" Marion grinned. "She's pretty." "Why should you get the girl while I pay?" Randy exclaimed. Marion stood up, tossed a bank card to Randy, and said, "I pursue the woman I fancy. It's only right that I foot the bill." "What? Foot the bill? She's Juan's wife! What bill are you talking about?" Randy ranted. Ignoring his protest, Marion walked out of the office. "Both of you are insane!" Randy muttered. Debra had just stepped into the Nichols family's mansion when she saw Juan sitting in the living room. She frowned. In her last life, Juan rarely came home. 'When did he become so attached to home?' Assuming he was just lounging around, she turned to go upstairs. "Debra!" Juan called out. Debra halted. "What is it?" Juan felt uneasy about Debra's recent coldness. "The auction house is pressing for payment." "I know," Debra replied coolly. "If you don't have enough money, you can tell me," Juan said. "No need. I've sorted it out," Debra said dismissively. "Where did you get the money from?" Ten billion wasn't a small amount, and Juan knew every movable asset under the Frazier family's name. She couldn't produce such a sum on short notice. "It's my business. You don't need to concern yourself," Debra replied. "Don't forget that I'm your husband," Juan said. Debra chuckled bitterly. 'Husband?' Juan always considered it a disgrace. When did he remember he was her husband? "You're so anxious because you're afraid I'll lose money and drag down the Nichols family," Debra said. Juan fell silent. Seeing his reaction, Debra knew that she had guessed right. "I won't drag you down. I understand our marriage is a business alliance. We rise and fall together. You don't have to come home often," Debra concluded. Juan was speechless. He used to think that way, so after getting married, he was cold towards Debra and didn't even touch her. But after hearing those words from Debra, he suddenly realized his excessiveness. Juan was about to say something when suddenly a remittance message came on Debra's phone. She didn't expect Marion's actions to be so fast. In just an hour, the money arrived. With the matter resolved, Debra gave a smile. Juan pursed his lips, suddenly remembering how Debra used to follow him. She showed him the same smile, but he never cared. "There's a party tonight. You're coming with me." "Me?" Debra frowned. Juan asked, "Don't want to?" "Why don't you bring Shelia with you?" Debra was puzzled. In her last life, whenever there was a banquet, Juan would take Shelia. If her memory served her right, it was an international banquet that night. She insisted on going, but Juan brought Shelia in the end, indirectly paving the way for Shelia. For such an important occasion, why would Juan suddenly think of bringing her? "You're my wife, so naturally, you should come to such occasions with me." Debra didn't get it, thinking it was only because Shelia had something else to do. Then again, she should go to such occasions more often. To start her own business, she needed connections. "Alright then, I'll go get ready." Juan breathed a sigh of relief. At least, Debra was still willing to be the nominal Mrs. Nichols. Perhaps she wasn't completely disappointed with him yet. Shelia was in the dormitory, arranging the dress sent by Juan's secretary. Her roommates looked at Shelia with envy. "Shelia, your boyfriend is so sweet, giving you such a beautiful dress." Shelia's cheeks turned rosy. "Shelia, when will you introduce us to your boyfriend?" "Yeah, your boyfriend is so rich, and he takes you to various banquets all the time. We're curious." Shelia shook her head and said, "He's very busy. I'll introduce you to him when he's available." Shelia's phone rang. Seeing that it was a call from Juan's secretary, she answered the phone happily. "Joe, did Mr. Nichols send you to pick me up? I'll come down right away," she said. "Mr. Nichols said you don't need to come today," said Joe. Chapter 5 Shelia's smile froze. "Why?" "Mr. Nichols is taking his wife tonight, so it wouldn't be convenient for you to attend." Shelia forced a smile. "Oh, so he's taking his wife. That's great. I didn't want to go anyway." "That's good." Shelia held her phone and bit her lip. Her roommates exchanged glances. "Shelia, did your boyfriend stand you up?" "I heard this event is international. Didn't your boyfriend organize it to introduce you to some foreign entrepreneurs?" Facing their skeptical looks, Shelia managed a weak smile. "He has an important client to accompany. I shouldn't disturb him." Shelia glanced at the dress in her hands, her expression dimming. 'Juan never likes Debra. Why did he suddenly...' She tightened her grip on the dress. She had looked forward to tonight's event for so long. She couldn't just give up. As the night fell, Juan had a splendid black dress sent to Debra. He had been waiting downstairs for a while when he saw Debra descending the stairs. Though he had seen Debra in a burgundy dress the other day, seeing her in this outfit still took Juan by surprise. He hadn't realized how beautiful Debra could be. "I'm ready," Debra said, lifting her head. Juan pursed his lips. "I'll have my secretary bring the car around." Debra opened the door to see Joe waiting outside. Seeing Debra in the black dress, Joe was amazed. "Mrs. Nichols, you look stunning in this dress, better than Miss Miles." Juan glanced at him. Joe realized his mistake and quickly shut his mouth. "It's okay." Debra didn't care, and she got into the car. Juan glared at Joe and muttered, "You won't get your bonus this month." Joe felt wronged but dared not say more. That was what he got for being too talkative. Outside the club, Juan helped Debra get out of the car. People around them cast admiring glances at them. "Who's the lady with Mr. Nichols?" "Seems to be Mrs. Nichols." "I don't recall seeing Mr. and Mrs. Nichols together before. They make quite the power couple." ... Juan took Debra's hand. Debra wanted to retract her hand, but with so many people around, she had to go along with Juan. Debra glanced around and saw many faces she had encountered in her last life. Juan had a certain prestige in the business world. To be able to attend such a high-level international event, the people here were all top entrepreneurs, philanthropists, or real estate tycoons. Debra had studied finance to impress Juan, but it never paid off. Suddenly, the sound of shattered glass grabbed everyone's attention. A gardener accidentally broke a vase of roses, and the manager scolded him. "Where did this old man come from? Get him out of here!" the manager barked. "Hold on." Debra stepped forward, picking up the roses from the ground. She noticed they were carefully pruned and rare. "This man ruined Mr. Houston's flowers and startled the guests. Let me have him removed," said the manager. "If it's broken, just ask him to prepare a new one," Debra said. "These roses were brought by Mr. Houston for everyone's enjoyment. How about each lady take one to appreciate his gesture?" Debra suggested. Everyone nodded, and the manager waved off the gardener. Juan stepped forward, lowering his voice. "I didn't expect you to liven up the atmosphere here." Debra shrugged. "Just trying to please Mr. Houston." Outside the club, Shelia stepped out of a taxi in a black dress, feeling strange gazes around her. She ignored them and tried to get into the club. The security guard glanced at the taxi and stopped her. "Miss, do you have an invitation?" Shelia was taken aback. She didn't know about invitations. With Juan, she could go anywhere. It was the first time she had been stopped by a security guard. "Sorry! No invitation, no entry." "I'm here to see Mr. Nichols. I'm his companion," Shelia lied. Squinting at her, the guard asked, "Mr. Nichols is already inside with Mrs. Nichols. Who are you?" Feeling the stares all around, Shelia blushed with embarrassment. Joe saw her and hurried over. "Excuse me, she's our company staff." The guard nodded, allowing Shelia through. Shelia breathed a sigh of relief, but Joe asked sternly, "Miss Miles, why are you here?" "I just wanted to broaden my horizons. Mr. Nichols always said I was too timid. I'll be going abroad in a few months, so I wanted to experience this kind of event. Joe, could you take me in?" Joe hesitated. "I'll return from studying and help Mr. Nichols. The piece of land Debra bought cost billions and was a loss. She probably doesn't understand finance. So many financial elites are here. I'm worried Mrs. Nichols won't be able to handle it," Shelia pleaded sincerely. Joe nodded in agreement. In the past, it was always Shelia by Juan's side because Debra knew nothing about finance, and Joe respected Shelia, who was talented in this area. Shelia joyfully entered the club and spotted Juan conversing with some guests not far away. She lifted the hem of her dress to run over, but she accidentally collided with an old man. The gardener's vase slipped, and the water splashed on Shelia's dress. She instinctively exclaimed and freaked out when she saw the stain. "What's wrong with you? Can't you watch where you're going?" Chapter 6 Her cry pierced through the room. All eyes, including Juan's and Debra's, turned to her. In their eyes, Shelia was a rude and uncultured woman. The old gardener bent down to pick up the scattered roses and apologized profusely. Feeling the stares around her, Shelia quickly changed her attitude. "I'm sorry. I was in haste. Are you okay, sir?" Debra watched from nearby. Even though Shelia tried to fix it, it only came off as insincere. Shelia also noticed Debra beside Juan. "How did she get here?" Juan frowned. Given his expression, he seemed clueless about Shelia's arrival. Debra wondered if Shelia came on her own. Debra stayed silent. This plot was different from that of her last life. Juan brought Shelia to the party, where Shelia impressed Caleb Houston. It led to a smooth path overseas and success after graduation with support from Juan and Caleb. Debra thought that Shelia would not show up this time. Yet here she was. "Mr. Nichols!" Hearing the commotion, Joe rushed in. Juan's tone was curt. "Who let her in?" "It was me." Joe bowed his head. "I thought Miss Miles could help you." Juan rubbed his temples. He used to be very tolerant of Shelia. But in this situation, Shelia shouldn't have appeared. "Miss Miles isn't familiar with the place. Go check on her," Debra said, taking a sip of champagne. Juan saw Shelia's scared looks, and he couldn't bear to leave her alone to handle the situation. "I'll be back in a moment." Debra said nothing. That was expected. He could never let go of Shelia. Juan went over and asked, "How did you come here?" Shelia lowered her head, looking pitiful. "I'm sorry. I just wanted to see the event." Seeing her tear up, Juan couldn't bring himself to say anything harsh. In a sense, Shelia was trained by him, and he had seen all her efforts. "I'll have Joe take you back." Seeing Juan about to leave, Shelia hurriedly grabbed his sleeve. "Mr. Nichols, can I stay?" Juan frowned. In the past, Shelia was always obedient and aware of her identity, never crossing that boundary. Shelia felt his displeasure and said, "I'm sorry, Mr. Nichols. I..." Juan relented in the end. "You can stay. This event could be helpful for your overseas studies." Shelia finally broke into a sweet smile. "Can I stay with you?" Juan glanced at the surrounding crowd, concerned about leaving Shelia alone here. "Yeah." Shelia was delighted. Joe couldn't help but ask, "Sir, what about Mrs. Nichols?" "Go accompany her. Don't let her cause trouble like last time." Juan knew that Debra often attended such events, but as someone unfamiliar with finance, she was here merely to pass the time. As long as she didn't cause trouble like last time, it was fine. Debra watched as Joe approached her. Before he could say anything, she asked, "He's gone to accompany Shelia?" "Miss Miles is a key candidate for the company, so..." "I understand." Debra looked as if she was not bothered at all. Joe breathed a sigh of relief. But somehow, he felt that Debra had changed. Shelia followed Juan and confidently conversed with some bigwigs, which was noticed by Debra. Although Shelia had good grades at school, she was still just a student. In front of these seasoned businessmen, what she said wasn't very insightful. They were only praising Shelia out of respect for Juan. However, soon Shelia faced difficulty with a foreign elderly gentleman. Debra recognized that man as a financial tycoon from Dawnreach. He only spoke his native language and didn't know any foreign languages. And his translator was absent. "Mr. Nichols..." Shelia bit her lip, glancing at Juan. Juan was pondering how to defuse the awkwardness when Debra approached and fluently conversed with the man. The man seemed quite pleased with what Debra said and shook hands with her. Shelia finally noticed Debra, dressed in an identical black dress. Compared to her, Debra seemed like a refined lady, while she looked like a street vendor. Shelia clenched her fists and forced a smile. "Debra, that's impressive. You can speak the Dawnreach language." Debra smiled without saying anything. Juan remembered that Debra could speak foreign languages, but Dawnreach language wasn't widely used. Not many people knew it, so he was surprised that Debra was fluent in it. "What did you say to Mr. Stephen? He seemed quite pleased," Shelia asked. "I told him that the piece of land he bought near the southeastern sea is going to get a good prince, so he's happy," Debra replied. "That piece of land will get a a good price?" Shelia looked puzzled. The land didn't seem extraordinary. "Maybe," Debra replied casually. In her last life, that piece of land did get a considerable sum. The area suddenly developed into a tourist destination, making a hefty profit from tourism. Mr. Stephen probably foresaw its development, hence his purchase. Shelia lacked that foresight. Juan stared at Debra, which made her uncomfortable. "Why are you looking at me like that?" Debra asked. "How did you know that the land would get a good price?" Juan said. Chapter 7 Given his expression, Juan knew that this plot of land would fetch a hefty sum. Yet he chose to let Stephen have it as a favor. That was just Juan's style. "I was just paying a compliment. You're reading too much into it," Debra replied. Juan furrowed his brow, assessing the sincerity of Debra's words. It made sense. Given Debra's intelligence, how could she see the future value of that land? Juan realized he was overthinking it. "Hope so." Juan turned away, leading Shelia to meet other people. Shelia glanced at Debra. Debra managed to capture the hint of triumph in Shelia's eyes. She downed a glass of champagne. In the eyes of others, she was just a failed woman abandoned by her husband. Her husband left her and took another woman to meet business partners. Could anything be more of a joke than this? Debra felt disheartened. She had planned to mingle with the business elites, but with Juan gone, it became difficult. How could she approach those entrepreneurs without seeming intentional? Debra scanned the surroundings and spotted a piano not far away. A smile played on Debra's lips as she got an idea. With graceful steps, Debra approached the piano and exchanged brief greetings with the pianist before sitting down. As the heiress to the Frazier family, she had to learn many things, though she never thought she'd use them. But now they had come in handy. It had been a while since Debra played the piano, so she was a bit rusty. But soon enough, the piano keys followed her fingers, producing a melodious tune that perfectly matched the atmosphere of the party. The guests were captivated by the unexpected piano music. Many turned to look in her direction, and after she finished playing, applause filled the room. Seeing Juan and the businessmen stop their conversation, Shelia kept her eyes on Debra and said, "Debra is amazing. She can play the piano." "She is a pro," Juan remarked casually. Among these people, many could play the piano, and passing relevant exams was quite common. The fact that Debra received so much applause showed her musical talent. It was then that Shelia realized the gap between her and Debra. She used to think Debra was just lucky and pretty, but utterly useless. Now she was proven wrong. She was dead wrong. After Debra finished playing, many wealthy ladies approached her for conversation. While she couldn't directly approach those business magnates, getting close to their wives made it easier to reach them. "I didn't expect Mrs. Nichols to be so talented at the piano," Randy remarked from a corner. "Not bad," Marion agreed. "You don't know music, do you?" Randy teased. "I don't, but I like it," Marion replied. He didn't understand music, but because it was Debra playing, it felt different. When she went to the restroom, Debra was pulled into a secluded corner. She tried to cry out, but the man behind her covered her mouth. "Don't make a sound," the man whispered. Feeling the warmth of his body, Debra adjusted her breathing and bit down on the man's hand. "Ouch!" he grunted in pain. "You bit me?" The man released her. Debra quickly put some distance between them and was surprised when she saw his face. "Marion?" "Who else did you think it would be?" "Why the cloak and dagger?" "I sneaked in. Don't want to be seen." "What kind of joke is this? Caleb is your..." Before Debra could finish her sentence, she immediately shut her mouth. Marion raised an eyebrow. "Hm? What were you going to say?" Debra averted her gaze. In her last life, Caleb left all his assets to Marion. It was only after that she found out the truth. But so far, no one knew Marion was Caleb's grandson. "I mean, Caleb is kind-hearted, and you're a dominant owner of overseas enterprises. Even if you snuck in, no one would dare say anything." "Maybe, but I prefer to play it safe," Marion said. "Don't tell me you snuck in here just to say these things to me." She didn't think Marion would be so boring. "This is for you." Marion handed Debra a contract. Debra looked down and saw the contract for her borrowing. "Just for this?" she asked. Marion nodded. "Boring!" Debra signed the contract and threw it back to Marion. It was crazy that he found her to sign the contract at the door of the ladies' room. "As your creditor, can I ask you a question?" "Go ahead." "Why spend ten billion on that land?" Marion's voice was low, tempting her to answer his question. "I can't tell you now," Debra said. "What if I insist?" Marion could tell Debra had other plans. But he couldn't figure out what could be worth ten billion there. It was a loss-making business, but Debra's actions made him believe the land would be worth far more than ten billion. "If I told you this land would be worth a lot in six months, would you believe me?" Debra asked. "No." Marion couldn't see any signs of it yet. "What if I said high-end properties around that wasteland are about to come into the market?" Debra asked. "What high-end properties?" Marion frowned. He had never heard of that. "You'll find out soon enough," Debra smiled, walking past Marion into the restroom. Frowning, Marion walked to the lobby, where Randy asked, "Done signing?" "Yeah," Marion said. "Why the long face?" Randy asked. "Is there any high-end property near the wasteland Debra bought?" "There aren't any." "Check who owns the land around that wasteland." "That wasteland is in the sewage area. There's nothing to check. Forget high-end properties. No one would even build a basketball court there," Randy said. "Sewage area?" Marion was surprised. Chapter 8 Moments later, Shelia emerged from the restroom, her face looking grim. She was now dressed in a white gown. "What's wrong?" Juan asked. "I just changed in the restroom and thought I saw Debra." "Debra?" Shelia nodded. "I saw Debra with that man. They seemed intimate." Shelia observed Juan's expression and quickly added, "But I might have been mistaken. How could Debra know someone like Marion? I heard he's a desperado." "Debra..." Juan's tone turned cold. He had noticed Marion's interest in Debra last time. 'Doesn't she know how to avoid danger? Even getting close to someone like Marion.' Juan felt upset. Debra emerged from the restroom and was puzzled about Juan's dissatisfaction. "Where did you go?" Juan whispered. "Me? I went to the restroom." Debra was confused. Shelia stepped forward, pretending to be affectionate, as she grabbed Debra's hand. "Debra, I saw it just now. Marion is not a good person. Don't let him deceive you." Debra instinctively withdrew her hand. Shelia's hand hung in mid-air, and she looked aggrieved. "I didn't tell Mr. Nichols about it on purpose, but Marion is really not a good person." "I know what kind of person Marion is. I don't need others to judge," Debra huffed. "I..." Shelia bit her lip, looking hurt. "Shelia is looking out for you. Don't be oblivious and offend the wrong people," Juan warned. Shelia tugged at Juan's sleeve, as if to imply he was being too harsh. If other people saw it, they might think that Shelia was Juan's wife. "In any case, it's best not to get close to Marion. You're a woman of high standing, while he's a man without upbringing. How could you have any ties with him?" Shelia said. Suddenly, the sound of a cane hitting the ground came. Everyone turned to see an elderly man with gray hair standing in the center of the hall. Debra turned around, feeling a sense of familiarity. Soon, she recognized the old man as the gardener who had been arranging vases in the hall earlier. Now, the old man was dressed in a suit, flanked by two bodyguards. His stern gaze carried a hint of ruthlessness, making people wary. "This is Mr. Caleb Houston," one of the bodyguards introduced. Everyone in the vicinity raised their glasses respectfully to the old man. Only Shelia was pale. The old man she had scolded just now turned out to be Caleb. Shortly after, Marion emerged from behind Caleb and stood by his side, supporting him. Debra suddenly had a bad feeling. Marion looked at Debra and slowly smirked. "Ladies and gentlemen, I invited you all here today to declare that Marion is my grandson, the sole heir of the Houston family." Caleb coldly glanced at Shelia. Shelia felt a chill. "He is not some wild man without upbringing," Caleb said. Everyone in the room was astonished, and Debra's heart was pounding. 'Something is not right. The timeline has changed. How could this happen?' | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1 | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61559743679549/ | 320 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | DCO | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13914&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/459267710_1921783964961503_8946365676895315333_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60_tt6&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=HNx1xgihGrwQ7kNvgFw6T3l&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=Ahlm0DIrIqs4rpvahhKiqCh&oh=00_AYDufHyIrCl6cVsPBrV7ZSfDftgMHFDXiu0QYztMuG9Lew&oe=6748226F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete |
Page 7 of 128, showing 20 record(s) out of 2,541 total